summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/60926-0.txt9757
-rw-r--r--old/60926-0.zipbin174156 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60926-h.zipbin732974 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60926-h/60926-h.htm12492
-rw-r--r--old/60926-h/images/cover.jpgbin134810 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60926-h/images/i_028fp.jpgbin84695 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60926-h/images/i_098fp.jpgbin94408 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60926-h/images/i_148fp.jpgbin76867 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60926-h/images/i_208fp.jpgbin69887 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60926-h/images/i_frontispiece.jpgbin87766 -> 0 bytes
13 files changed, 17 insertions, 22249 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6dbe525
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #60926 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/60926)
diff --git a/old/60926-0.txt b/old/60926-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index c96db53..0000000
--- a/old/60926-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,9757 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook, Captains of Harley, by Hylton Cleaver,
-Illustrated by H. M. Brock
-
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-
-Title: Captains of Harley
- A School Story
-
-
-Author: Hylton Cleaver
-
-
-
-Release Date: December 15, 2019 [eBook #60926]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-
-***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CAPTAINS OF HARLEY***
-
-
-E-text prepared by Richard Tonsing, Tim Lindell, and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team (http://www.pgdp.net)
-
-
-
-Note: Project Gutenberg also has an HTML version of this
- file which includes the original illustrations.
- See 60926-h.htm or 60926-h.zip:
- (http://www.gutenberg.org/files/60926/60926-h/60926-h.htm)
- or
- (http://www.gutenberg.org/files/60926/60926-h.zip)
-
-
-Transcriber’s note:
-
- Text enclosed by underscores is in italics (_italics_).
-
-
-
-
-
-CAPTAINS OF HARLEY
-
-
- * * * * *
-
-SCHOOL STORIES BY
-HYLTON CLEAVER
-
-
- BROTHER O’ MINE:
- A Story of Harley
-
- THE HARLEY FIRST XI
-
- ROSCOE MAKES GOOD
-
-HUMPHREY MILFORD
-
- * * * * *
-
-
-[Illustration:
-
- “WHEN HE HIT THE BOARDS HE LAY STILL.”
-
- [_See p. 273._]
-
-
-CAPTAINS OF HARLEY
-
-A School Story
-
-by
-
-HYLTON CLEAVER
-
-Author of “Brother o’ Mine,” etc.
-
-With Illustrations by H. M. Brock
-
-
-
-
-
-
-Humphrey Milford
-Oxford University Press
-London Edinburgh Glasgow
-Toronto Melbourne Capetown Bombay
-1921
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
- CONTENTS
-
-
- CHAPTER PAGE
- I. THE BOY IN THE CORNER 9
-
- II. THE GREAT GAME 20
-
- III. COMING EVENTS 31
-
- IV. A SLIGHT MISTAKE 40
-
- V. BREAKERS AHEAD 54
-
- VI. A RISING STAR 62
-
- VII. A CABINET MEETING 71
-
- VIII. THE THUMB-SCREW 82
-
- IX. A MOLE-HILL AND A MOUNTAIN 94
-
- X. THE WATCHERS 101
-
- XI. THE HOLD 110
-
- XII. CIRCUMSTANCES HAVE ARISEN 127
-
- XIII. SOMETHING UP HIS SLEEVE 135
-
- XIV. THE FIRST ROUND 142
-
- XV. THE SAFETY VALVE 152
-
- XVI. YESTERDAY’S CAPTAIN 165
-
- XVII. SALVE 182
-
- XVIII. THE UNCOUNTED COST 188
-
- XIX. THE CUP OF BITTERNESS 197
-
- XX. THE LAST ROUND 218
-
- XXI. SECRET SERVICE 230
-
- XXII. HARD ROE 243
-
- XXIII. THE DAY OF RECKONING 261
-
-
-
-
- LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS
-
-
- “WHEN HE HIT THE BOARDS HE LAY STILL” (See page 273)
- _Frontispiece in colour_
-
- FACING PAGE
-
- “HE BEGAN TO TROT UP THE FIELD LIKE A PUP WITH A SLIPPER” 28
-
- “THE HEAD ADVANCED UPON THEM IN GROWING ANGER” 98
-
- “‘THE MATCH IS SCRATCHED, SIR,’ SAID HE” 148
-
- “‘I THINK YOU’VE SEEN THAT BEFORE?’” 208
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I
- THE BOY IN THE CORNER
-
-
-A wiry, grave-faced youngster sat in the corner of the railway carriage
-watching a stupid parent saying good-bye to a stupid boy.
-
-He was glad that nobody had come to see him off, for he had now the
-satisfaction of knowing that his own father was a father more worth
-having than any other he had seen yet. Also he could look upon the
-pitiable scene now being enacted before him from the standpoint of one
-who at least could be trusted to get into the right carriage without
-leaping out by the other door to see if it were really labelled “Harley”
-on both sides. This fat boy had done that, and afterwards he had sat
-down very heavily on a packet of sandwiches and was unaware of it. The
-boy in the corner wondered if they would be sticking to him when he
-stood up. As for the parent of the fat boy, he stood outside looking
-nervously towards the engine, and his raincoat, which was unbuttoned,
-blew this way and that in the breeze; once it had somewhat foolishly
-knocked some buns off a push-cart. He wore a hat poised far forward over
-his nose, and he had flat feet.
-
-Whilst the boy in the corner sat watching with thoughtful eyes, the man
-broke suddenly into a rapid clog dance and beckoned to his son. Above
-the rat-a-tat of his feet upon the platform could be heard his voice
-plaintively upraised:
-
-“Arthur! Arthur! _Come_ here! Jump out as quickly as you possibly can. I
-have something to say to you.”
-
-Arthur took just one glad leap into the open, landing upon his father’s
-foot. Then, clapping his ear against his father’s lips, he listened with
-a coy interest to his urgent whispers, until he was suddenly gripped by
-the elbow and spun upon his heel.
-
-“Get in at once, my boy, get in at once!” his parent was commanding. “At
-once, I say. The train is about to go. Get in quickly ... quickly.”
-
-Arthur fell in head-first, and arrived limply half on the seat and half
-on the floor. Then he slowly clawed his way on to the cushions and
-subsided. But now once again there sounded that terrible parent’s
-staccato voice. The unhappy boy was hooked by the arm with an umbrella.
-
-“It is not going yet after all,” he was told. “Come out again. Come out
-for a moment. I have something to say to you.”
-
-The wiry boy in the corner began to feel sorry for Arthur: he was
-perspiring so very freely. However, there followed confidence after
-confidence until, finally and for the last time, the father threw his
-son bodily into the carriage like a sack of potatoes.
-
-The blast of a whistle had reached his expectant ears.
-
-“Get in! Get in!” he was crying. “For goodness’ sake do get in! What a
-foolish boy you are. You will certainly miss the train. Be sure to
-write. Good-bye ... good-bye ... good-bye!”
-
-Then the train was really moving out of the station at last. Numberless
-boys in Harley caps were scrambling into carriages, and as the little
-man with the goatee beard gave one final wave of his glove to his
-departing son, two young men cannoned into him from behind, and his hat
-flew violently forwards and outwards, causing him to make a somewhat
-ludicrous exit from the boy in the corner’s field of view. Next the
-foremost of his assailants had sprung for the carriage door and they had
-tumbled in.
-
-One of the two seemed a little embarrassed at the diversion they had
-caused, and sat down modestly in a corner. The other wiped his forehead,
-and then turned and beheld Arthur with both interest and delight.
-
-The portly Arthur was sitting stiffly upright and staring at his ticket
-with wide protuberant eyes, the while he trembled like unto one smitten
-with ague. He looked up at the boy in the corner and gaped. He tried to
-speak. Words failed him. At last a low moan escaped his lips.
-
-“My ticket! My ticket! Father has taken it away with him and he—” he
-paused and collected himself for a bellow of despair—“he has given me
-his own return ticket to _Ealing_!”
-
-The boy in the corner looked at him as if one might have expected
-something like this would have occurred after all that palaver, and the
-brief silence that followed his sensational news was only broken by a
-peculiar grunt that would not be stifled. Then up spoke one of the late
-arrivals. Both were evidently boys of some seniority and wore bowler
-hats. The one who spoke now had a lean and humorous countenance lit by
-strangely bright eyes.
-
-“Nick,” said he to his companion, “look out of the window. Do you see
-anyone coming?”
-
-The young gentleman addressed as Nick was beaming thoughtfully as if to
-himself, and he did not at once obey.
-
-“I will look myself,” said the other, rising impatiently and leaning far
-out. “Yes, I can see a cloud of dust. Right in the middle of it there is
-the figure of a man bounding along the road at such a break-neck speed
-that his feet are scarcely touching the ground at all. It appears,” he
-added, turning to Arthur, “to be your sportsmanlike father.” He coughed.
-“His chances of catching us are somewhat small, of course. The train is
-now going at full speed. Your father is certainly making a very fine
-effort indeed ... his movements are not unlike those of a good-class
-cat ... but he will, I fear, be outdistanced by the puff-puff. Your
-father——”
-
-The fat boy could stand this no longer. He pushed his head fiercely out
-of the window under the other’s arm.
-
-“Where?” he demanded. “Where’s my father?” He looked harder still.
-“Why,” said he, “we’re only just out of the station. There’s no cloud of
-dust at all.”
-
-“No,” confessed the other. “Now that I come to look with my other eye I
-must admit that I do not see it so clearly myself. Still there might
-have been. It is a pretty picture to conjure up—your father absolutely
-running himself to a standstill to get back his ticket to Ealing.”
-
-After this there was silence for a little while. The bright-eyed youth
-resumed his seat and appeared to be thinking things over. He threw his
-bowler on to the rack and passed a hand thoughtfully over his hair.
-
-At last he leaned forward, resting his elbows upon his knees, and faced
-Arthur.
-
-Then he inclined his head sideways towards his fair-haired comrade.
-
-“That robust-looking fellow over there is known as Terence Nicholson,”
-said he, weighing his words. “He has been three years in the Harley
-Cricket Eleven, and now he’s in the Rugger side, so be careful what you
-say. His brother’s called ‘Old Nick,’ and he’s a master at school. Very
-likely you’ll see him walking along the footboards on his hands if you
-look outside. My own name,” he paused, in order to give added emphasis
-to the noble word, “is Rouse.”
-
-He did not care to introduce himself as the probable captain of Rugby
-football during the coming term, for Rouse was not conceited about the
-things that he _could_ do. Oddly enough he was only conceited about the
-things that he could not.
-
-“A beak called Mould,” he announced, “once told me when I was construing
-Latin that I had a very inventive brain.” He tapped his forehead
-significantly. “He was entirely correct. You see in me a man who thinks
-for exercise rather than for profit, and it will comfort you to know
-that I have already devised a way of escape for you in your astounding
-dilemma. I ask myself: ‘Now how is this poor misguided creature ever
-going to pass through the iron barriers of Harley with only a silly
-little ticket to Ealing in his hand?’ And the answer is this: ‘I will
-ask him to give that ticket to me.’”
-
-The fat boy reached out a trembling hand and gave over his ticket
-somewhat fearfully.
-
-Rouse took it and solemnly tore it into a hundred pieces. The fat boy
-screamed.
-
-“Oh, you’ve spoilt it!”
-
-“Certainly,” admitted Rouse, “it is a trifle bent. But why? Because now
-nobody knows whether it is a ticket to Harley or the Federated Malay
-States. Will they, however, suppose that you would be such an ass as to
-buy a ticket to Ealing when you intended proceeding to Harley? I think
-not. You have to give up your ticket at the other end, and you’ll give
-it up, that’s all. It will be in pieces, but there’s no law against
-that. The warden at the gate will say: ‘Hi, here you! What’s this?’ and
-you’ll say: ‘That, sir, is my ticket,’ and you’ll pour it generously
-into his open hands. He’ll never know. He’ll think it’s a practical
-joke, scowl at you, and pass you through with the toe of his boot.”
-
-There was an awed silence. Rouse was well satisfied with the effect of
-his words. Suddenly however there spoke up Terence Nicholson from his
-corner. It was the first time that he had been able to get a word in and
-he spoke modestly.
-
-“Yes,” said he, “that’s all very well; only the ticket to Harley is
-green and his ticket to Ealing’s red. That’s all.”
-
-There came a silence of several moments, whilst those present considered
-this point with new interest, and at last Terence shook his head
-regretfully.
-
-“There’s always something wrong with your schemes,” said he. “You don’t
-grow any older. You don’t improve a bit.”
-
-And thereupon there came a rush of air and a roar and the train had
-entered a tunnel. The light spluttered hopefully for a moment and then
-died a natural death. They were plunged into darkness.
-
-At last the melancholy voice of Rouse was again uplifted in a sonorous
-protest that came heavily through the darkness as if in pleading:
-
-“Well, you’re always very clever at picking holes,” said he. “In common
-with the rest of Harley’s populace you cherish that silly notion that
-except for a certain knack in playing footer I am one of the most
-useless and incapable creatures ever built. Let me hear you make a
-suggestion, my lad.”
-
-“Well, if you ask me,” said Terence, “I should say, let him tell the
-truth.”
-
-Rouse cleared his throat.
-
-“Well, I think you may be right. It’ll be difficult for anyone to
-believe _that_ poor boy capable of practising deceit. In fact one may
-say that he looks strongly like a boy who could be depended upon to
-forget his ticket.”
-
-The train came suddenly into daylight again and Rouse stopped abruptly.
-
-The fat boy was weeping.
-
-Rouse stared at him for a moment, then looked askance at Terence, and
-finally he turned a sternly prefectorial eye upon the boy in the corner
-who had hitherto somewhat escaped his notice. The boy looked back at him
-a little uncertainly with a half smile. He was not at all sure whether
-it was good form to laugh at a boy who was crying. Rouse gave him no
-hint. He just looked: and presently the other blinked at him
-apologetically. Actually Rouse was deciding, as he afterwards told
-Terence, what a peculiarly good-looking kid he was.
-
-“What’s your name?” said he at last.
-
-“Carr,” said the boy in the corner.
-
-“And which house are you going to?”
-
-“Mr Morley’s, I think.”
-
-“Over that house,” said Rouse, “I weave my spell. Also Friend Nicholson
-there. We were in that house when an arch-idiot named Mould ruled over
-our form, and at one time I must confess we appeared to be sinking. Yet,
-as we came up for the third time, so to speak, he was removed, and we
-survived. You’ll find Morley all right.” He turned to Arthur a little
-awkwardly. “Don’t answer if you’d rather not,” said he courteously, “but
-to which house are you being admitted?”
-
-The fat boy did not raise his head. He simply continued to weep, and at
-last there broke from his lips these sad words: “I want my t-t-ticket.”
-
-Rouse fumbled in his pocket and at last produced a small piece of chalk.
-
-“Here you are,” said he. “Draw yourself one on the wall.”
-
-From that time onward the conversation was maintained solely by the
-expectant captain of Rugby football. Nobody else seemed to have anything
-to say, but he had a great deal. Terence Nicholson sat in his corner
-with the reminiscent smile of the man one may notice in the stalls of
-any theatre—the man who has seen the show twice before but who is
-enjoying it all none the less for that.
-
-Bobbie Carr listened with deep and genuine interest, but he said
-nothing. He was too hypnotised. His large eyes followed Rouse’s every
-movement and never wavered.
-
-Arthur merely swayed backwards and forwards in his seat, and sometimes
-when the train stopped with a jerk he was jolted forward on to the knees
-of the boy in the corner, over whom he hung with sagging head; then when
-the train started again was bumped back so that he cracked his skull
-against the wall of the compartment, but he seemed not to care.
-
-At last they reached Harley.
-
-As soon as they had alighted the large figure of a man suddenly appeared
-from nowhere and loomed over them. The man was dressed exceedingly well
-and exceedingly comfortably in Harris tweeds. He wore a soft hat and a
-club tie, and his large feet were enclosed in large brogue shoes. Even
-his pipe was large. His hand reached out and rested upon Terence’s
-shoulder. Finally he looked at Rouse.
-
-“As for you,” said he, “it’s no use you saying you’re not there, because
-I can see your ears flapping behind that grin.”
-
-The gentleman addressed endeavoured to keep a straight face, whilst from
-the near locality Arthur was to be heard lamenting his ill-fortune and
-crying aloud for advice.
-
-For the last year or so Terence had been doing his best to overtake Toby
-in point of size, but he was still a trifle overshadowed by his
-brother’s large form, and he stood beside him modestly, as if pleased to
-claim a certain reflected glory. He could never see any reason for
-self-conceit in the fact that he had been three years in the Harley
-Cricket Eleven and one year in the First Fifteen. The only thing he was
-really proud about was the fact that Toby was his brother.
-
-“There’s rather bad news,” said Toby at last. “I’m afraid you’ll be very
-sorry.”
-
-They looked at him inquiringly.
-
-“The Grey Man has been very ill,” said he, puffing slowly at his pipe,
-“and he’s not coming back. We’ve got a new Head.”
-
-The boy who had sat in the corner was standing hesitantly behind them,
-and he was amazed to find Rouse struck dumb. For Rouse just stood and
-looked first at Toby and then at Terence, and it was a long time before
-he spoke.
-
-Terence asked quietly: “Who’s coming instead of him then?”
-
-And Toby answered: “He’s a man called Roe. That’s all I can tell you.”
-
-And then the pair of them seemed to consider the news with a fresh
-gravity, until at last Rouse shook his head sadly and said:
-
-“I loved that man, you know.”
-
-Coming from one who throughout the journey had seemed to be merely a
-rather superior sort of clown, this statement took Bobbie Carr by
-surprise. He stood there beside his bag, watching with wide eyes,
-waiting for more. But little more came. Rouse was a young man who could
-never make up his mind to grow up, and with the Grey Man he had never
-had to don any hypocritical cloak of stiff severity just because he was
-becoming one of the oldest boys at Harley, and he had got along very
-well indeed. Perhaps it was going to be different now. He picked up his
-bag and moved slowly away beside Terence, whilst Toby watched them go
-slowly and sadly along the platform towards the barrier, and as Bobbie
-followed after them he saw Rouse shake his head solemnly and heard him
-say:
-
-“It’s a bad business. A bad business. Except for Toby, he was about the
-only master who’ll ever understand me, Terence, my lad.”
-
-And when he knew them better Bobbie came to realise that it was only in
-moments of considerable gravity that Rouse ever called his friend by his
-proper Christian name.
-
-At the barrier Rouse turned. He seemed suddenly to have remembered the
-fat boy. At last he observed him making his way flat-footedly and in
-extreme distress along the platform, and he beckoned.
-
-Arthur increased his speed and came up alongside, breathing heavily and
-with his mouth open. Rouse looked at him gravely. All the heart seemed
-to have gone out of him. He drew the ticket-collector’s attention to the
-fat boy indifferently.
-
-“This boy,” said he, “has come without his ticket. Will you chronicle
-the incident in your annals?”
-
-The collector looked at him resentfully. In four years Rouse had never
-yet passed his barrier without saying something to him which he could
-not for the life of him understand.
-
-“Will you,” continued Rouse, “record his history in your black book?”
-
-The man turned patiently to the fat boy.
-
-“You come without your ticket. How did you do that?”
-
-“He found it easy,” observed Rouse in a hollow voice.
-
-“What’s your name?”
-
-Arthur trembled before the glare of the man in uniform, and stuttered
-out the simple answer: “Coppin.”
-
-“What will he do?” he inquired of Rouse as soon as they were clear of
-the station.
-
-“He will communicate with the Headmaster,” answered Rouse, “and you will
-never be allowed to travel by train again.”
-
-And then he lapsed into silence. At last Terence turned to look at him,
-and Rouse glanced up and sighed.
-
-“I shall miss the Grey Man,” said he. “The school won’t seem the same.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II
- THE GREAT GAME
-
-
-Rouse was walking slowly from the school towards the playing fields. He
-was clad in a blazer surmounted by a wide school muffler, wound several
-times round his neck, and upon his head he wore a velvet cap heavily
-embroidered with brocade. Rouse was at peace with all the world. The
-wonderful thing had happened at last: he was captain of Rugby football
-at Harley. That it would come had been a foregone conclusion amongst
-those who knew. Rouse himself had been a little doubtful. For one thing
-he was not yet in the Sixth, and though he had certainly been made a
-prefect in spite of this fact the previous term, he knew that he was
-commonly regarded as a boy who could see nothing but the silly side of
-things. He had been sorry about this because, in spite of his
-extravagant sense of humour and his consistent lightheartedness, he
-could be serious enough over things that really mattered, and to him
-Rugger was one of the things that really did. Only his closest friends
-were permitted to understand this side of his character, for he was
-sensitive about it, but he found that just as it pays one man to seem a
-fool so it sometimes paid him to maintain a reputation for
-irresponsibility. Toby and Terence knew him best, and the Grey Man had
-grown to understand him; extraordinarily well too. These had known that
-if he were elected captain of football he would make good. Moreover the
-school had wanted him to be elected. He was easily the most popular
-player in the whole of Harley, and besides, he was the most senior of
-the old colours, which was always the main consideration in electing the
-new captain.
-
-Well, they had elected him. It had been quite an uproarious meeting,
-too; there had been no end of enthusiasm. One small clique had certainly
-put up another man whom they claimed was of equal seniority in the
-Fifteen, but on hearing his name proposed the gentleman in question had
-instantly and somewhat confusedly refused to stand, loudly disclaiming
-any desire to skipper a team which could claim the leadership of a man
-like Rouse; and amidst loud and approving cheers he had seized the hand
-of Rouse and wrung it with the utmost enthusiasm; after which his
-friends had been at some pains to explain to their neighbours that they
-had only mentioned his name to let him know that he had not been
-entirely forgotten.
-
-So Rouse had really achieved his great ambition.... It was hard not to
-chuckle. He progressed steadily towards the practice Rugger ground,
-singing gently to himself and picturing the season they were going to
-have. Secretly he longed to organise some great rag which should
-celebrate this event, for hitherto his life had been largely made up of
-rags. He realised now, however, that he would have to steady down. He
-had to train a team and lead them on the field, and he had to help Toby
-Nicholson teach small boys Rugger. That would take all his time, and for
-such employment it was worth while foregoing rags.
-
-Presently he came within sight of the football ground that was his
-destination. Already a crowd was spreading along the touch-lines. He
-fingered the switch in his hand with affection. This switch had seen
-very good service, for it had been handed on from captain to captain
-from time immemorial. You may have thought that Rouse was about to play
-Rugby football. He was not. He was about to teach it. On the first day
-of each winter term at Harley (and also on other days throughout the
-season) two teams are selected to compete in a practice game, and they
-consist of small boys and idle boys and new boys. The excuse that some
-of these may not know Rugby football is of no account. They attend for
-instruction, and the remainder of the school line up with their
-waistcoats comfortably loosened in order that they may laugh the more
-heartily. The games master referees and the captain of football is armed
-with this switch, a cut from which is awarded, on the occasion of each
-scrum, to the last man into it, whilst whenever a three-quarter becomes
-possessed of the ball he is pursued up the field by this selfsame man,
-running rapidly and urging him with word and gesture and such occasional
-flicks of his switch as cause each boy, before the game is done, to feel
-himself possessed of a demon of speed and agility. There is also a cut
-for any boy who, in making a tackle, fails to go for his man at the
-knees. It may be noted that old Harleyans attribute the great success of
-the school at Rugby football very largely to the excellent effect
-produced by the captain’s switch in junior games; and one famous
-international has laid it down that in any big match in which he has
-broken through with the ball upon his chest he has invariably reached by
-instinct for that extra yard of speed which comes from the fear of a
-young man racing behind him with a switch, and has thanked his Alma
-Mater that he was taught to do so. Nor will you ever see an old Harleyan
-last into a scrum or tackling high. It is a good sign.
-
-The crowd made way for Rouse admiringly, and a characteristic smile,
-which in a young boy would have looked more roguish than anything else,
-began to appear at the corners of his mouth. In a game like this Rouse
-was in his element. He looked thoughtfully round the players and finally
-glanced up and down the touch-lines as if in search of any who had
-evaded his clutch. There came a ripple of amusement. Some of those
-present recalled that on the occasion of the corresponding match last
-year those who laughed the most uproariously from the touch-line had
-been marked down by Toby Nicholson’s eagle eye during the game, and at
-half time had been called upon to perform themselves. It was possible
-that this would occur again, and throughout the world those who have
-once succumbed to any catch are the keenest layers of the trap for the
-next man.
-
-At last the whistle blew. Next moment Rouse had skipped nimbly into the
-midst of things, encouraging all with loud cries, and the idea of the
-switch in Rouse’s exuberant hands caused a great and lasting enthusiasm
-amongst the players that was exceedingly stirring. Forwards fought for a
-place in the front row of the scrum, and many a youth who thought
-himself likely to be considered late might be heard loudly declaiming
-the fact that he had already packed down once, but finding himself the
-fourth man in the front row had been compelled to retire.
-
-At last one line of three-quarters was fairly away with the ball, and
-Rouse went racing across from one to the other, whirling his arm to
-ensure that each man took his pass at top speed. Ultimately the wing
-received the ball, and being entirely new to the game clearly did not
-know what to do with it. For a moment he paused and looked round in
-sheer bewilderment. It was fatal. There came a rush of air, and Rouse
-was up alongside, driving him forward and shouting aloud definite
-instructions. A tall thin boy came towards them and made his tackle; in
-a mad moment he went high. Too late he realised his mistake. Out of the
-corner of his eyes he was conscious of the switch, and his hands slid
-down to the runner’s knees and tightened their grip till both came to
-the ground and rolled over and over, whilst the ball flew forwards and
-was gathered by an excited youth in abnormally long knickerbockers of
-homemade design. Then, high above the laughter of the crowd, there
-sounded a great bellow, something akin to the cry of a thoroughly mad
-hyæna. At first it was difficult to locate. Rouse paused and his eyes
-passed swiftly down either touch-line. The laughter stopped, and he
-stepped out and cut lightly at a boy who had just received the ball in
-his hands and had not got away so smartly as he should. The game
-proceeded. Now and again that loud, extravagant laugh sounded across the
-field and caused others to turn in search of it. As a noise it was
-altogether novel. Evidently some poor boy was absolutely unable to
-control his merriment, and unaware of the fate that would follow him he
-gave it full rein. At last there could be no doubt who was doing it; the
-laugh became a magnet. Every head was turned towards it. Half time came,
-and Rouse spun on his heel and located it definitely. He walked across.
-On the touch-line he stretched out his hand and pointed out the
-unfortunate creature. It was the boy of such surprising fatness, the
-stupid-looking boy, and he stopped laughing abruptly. Toby Nicholson had
-moved up alongside Rouse.
-
-“Look here,” said he, “why is it _you_ are not playing?”
-
-The fat boy shook his head.
-
-“I don’t play _that_ game.”
-
-Rouse thrust his hands into his pockets and nodded his head.
-
-“Ah,” said he, “many a man is walking down the Strand to-day with the
-linings of his pockets hanging out, many a lordly mansion has been
-crumbled into dust, many a stately avenue of elms laid low, many a boy
-will be knocking at the door of Dr Barnardo’s Home to-night ... all
-because somebody hasn’t learned the lesson of Rugby football. Do you
-know that?”
-
-“Why, no,” said the fat boy quakingly.
-
-Toby had produced a small book.
-
-“Your name?”
-
-“Coppin, sir.”
-
-“Go quickly to the changing-rooms and attire yourself for the fray. You
-will be just in time for the second half.”
-
-“But I ... I ... I can’t play _this_ game.”
-
-“You will soon learn,” said Toby consolingly. “Time was I didn’t know
-how to play it.” He turned. “You see that boy over there in the long
-knickerbockers? That boy’s name is Henry Hope. That boy will _never_
-learn how to play Rugby football. He has every disadvantage. For one
-thing he is short-sighted. He cannot distinguish one jersey from
-another. He tackles his own side. It doesn’t matter. He plays the game
-just the same and he says that it does him good. You’ll find the same.”
-He turned to Rouse. “You’d better take this young sportsman to the
-changing-rooms and fit him out with togs.”
-
-Rouse moved alertly to the fat boy’s side and piloted him out of the
-crowd and rapidly across the field towards the changing-rooms; and as he
-went he bubbled to himself delightedly. He turned at last and regarded
-the unhappy Arthur.
-
-Arthur’s trousers were short and very tight. The sleeves of his coat
-reached midway between the elbow and the wrist, the buttons of his
-waistcoat were straining in the leash, and his neck bulged over the top
-of his collar. The pace was too much for him. He began to pant.
-
-“You’ll feel better with your clothes off,” said Rouse encouragingly.
-“Hold your breath for just a few minutes longer; you’ll be able to let
-off steam properly as soon as you’re unfastened ... and you _will_ look
-bonny in shorts.”
-
-He chuckled.
-
-“What is going to happen?” demanded Arthur. “What are they going to make
-me do?”
-
-“_Run_,” said Rouse hoarsely.
-
-“Shall I be thrown to the ground like those other boys?”
-
-“You will be thrown to the dogs,” was the immediate answer.
-
-“Oh, but it’s such a _rough_ game. I shall be hurt.”
-
-“What? _You?_ Never!” Rouse assured him. “Everybody who falls on you
-will think you’re an air cushion.”
-
-Further bursts of laughter reached them from across the open, and they
-turned. To the fat boy’s satisfaction other stragglers were being led in
-his own track. There was a tall thin boy, and a square boy with hair
-like hay, and an ordinary-looking boy and an extraordinary-looking boy.
-They had all been sorted out. He supposed they had all been laughing.
-Arthur turned back. His world was very drear. He was filled with acute
-foreboding. They had reached the changing-room. He was led in. Here, so
-far as those who were waiting on the touch-line were concerned, the
-curtain fell. At last it was lifted again. The sight was astounding.
-Arthur was being led back. Behind him came the other boys who had
-laughed so heartily, but they were unimportant. Arthur held the eye. His
-extraordinary fatness was now entirely disclosed. Wherever it was
-possible to bulge Arthur bulged. And his eyes were bulging most of all.
-
-Rouse held him by the arm. Evidently he had had some difficulty in
-fitting Arthur out, but he was apparently well pleased with the result.
-
-Toby met them and spent a few moments in outlining the theory of the
-game for Arthur’s benefit. Arthur nodded his head dolefully. It was
-clear that he had not another laugh left in his system. Also he looked
-cold.
-
-He was led on to the field. The other new-comers were sorted out and
-instructed to replace some of those who had had enough of it. Then the
-whistle blew. There came a thump of a boot meeting leather and the ball
-was sailing towards Arthur. For just one second Arthur regarded it
-stiffly, transfixed with horror, then he turned and ran rapidly in the
-other direction. There was a howl of derision. Arthur turned. There was
-no way of escape. The ball was bouncing after him. It was like a
-nightmare. From all sides of the field boys were rushing towards it. He
-gave one choking cry, threw up his hands and fell heavily on his face.
-Next moment a swarm of forwards had crowded round him and were packing
-down over his prostrate body. Somebody seized him by the leg and pulled
-him out of the way. He rose and looked round him with wild eyes. His
-hair was ruffled. There was mud upon his nose.
-
-Rouse came up and explained to him what he ought to have done. He looked
-at Rouse dazedly. Rouse inserted him bodily into the scrum, head down,
-and told him to push.
-
-He fell on his face. Rouse picked him up, and he tottered and fell on
-his back. The game went on and left him there. Rouse shouted to him, and
-he rose and stood for a moment with boggling eyes and nodding head,
-thinking. Toby pointed into the distance and spoke cheering words.
-
-“Chase after it, man! Scoot! Catch ’em up!”
-
-He began to trot foolishly up the field, with Rouse behind him. And then
-suddenly the ball came sailing towards him again and dropped directly on
-to his chest. He clutched at it as if for support and Rouse let loose a
-loud shout of delight.
-
-“NOW! You’re off. Nothing can stop you!” He whipped him gently into a
-gallop.
-
-As if suddenly imbued with the spirit of the game Arthur began to show
-determination. A boy flew at him. Arthur handed him off with violence.
-
-“_Let_ me alone!” he cried, suddenly very wrath.
-
-Another essayed to tackle him. Arthur struggled clear of his grasp but
-overbalanced and let go the ball.
-
-Immediately another boy had sprung forward and gathered it.
-
-Arthur shot after him. He suddenly understood. Everybody was against
-him. He had to get the ball and everybody was trying to steal it away.
-The sole idea of the game was that he should be allowed to run about the
-field holding the ball, and they were all cheating. They wouldn’t let
-him do it. He caught the thief by his jersey and tugged him back.
-
-His fierce cries sounded across the field.
-
-“Give it to me! Give it to me! Give it to _me_!”
-
-He had nearly got it. Somebody pulled him back, and he struggled in his
-grasp.
-
-“Let me to the ball,” he besought, sobbing with bitterness. “Oh, _let_
-me to the ball.”
-
-So they stood back and let him to the ball. Rouse had signed to them.
-
-He had it at last.
-
-He smiled gleefully. He begun to trot up the field like a pup with a
-slipper. He looked from side to side as if for applause, began to raise
-his knees higher and higher from the ground. Rouse ran joyously beside
-him, pointing out the distant goal-line as if it were a promised land
-and instructing him what to do.
-
-He was delighted beyond measure. He did not know that everybody was
-standing about the field watching him go, and trying to throttle
-hysteric laughter. He thought that he was the hero of the hour. At last
-they were nearly there. It was a good thing because he was beginning to
-puff.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- “HE BEGAN TO TROT UP THE FIELD LIKE A PUP WITH A
- SLIPPER.”]
-
-“Put it on that line,” said Rouse. “Put it down there, then touch it
-down.”
-
-He had arrived. He bent obediently and did as he was bid.
-
-“There you are,” said Rouse happily. “You’ve scored a try.”
-
-Arthur turned and looked round and about. Everywhere boys were throwing
-caps into the air and cheering. It was a great moment. Toby had come up
-and seemed to be speaking to him, but in the wild noise of applause he
-could not distinguish a word. He grinned broadly.
-
-At last the thunder of cheers died down.
-
-“That’s Rugger,” said Toby. “It’s a great game. Don’t you think so?
-You’ll play it all your life now. That’s your first game and you’ll
-never forget it.”
-
-He never did. Nobody who learns Rugger at Harley ever does.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The boy who had sat in the corner had been learning Rugger that
-afternoon too, and as he walked slowly off the field a tall fellow,
-considerably older than he, came up and touched him on the arm.
-
-“What on earth are _you_ doing here?”
-
-Bobbie Carr looked up, then slowly seemed to remember, and to the other
-it appeared that he turned a little pale. At first he made no answer. He
-just looked. Eventually he turned away.
-
-The other still held his arm.
-
-“D’you mean to say your father has sent you to a public school?” said
-he.
-
-He was not a nice-looking fellow. He had a remarkably long and
-disproportionate nose. Also his lips had a sarcastic turn. His name was
-Coles.
-
-“This is _good_,” said he, and gave a short laugh. “I must write and
-tell the gov’nor about this. He’ll be awfully amused. What do you think
-the fellows here will say when they know what your father is?”
-
-Bobbie Carr looked straight up at him, but there was a queer look of
-anxiety on his face.
-
-“They’re not going to know,” said he at last. “I’ve promised I wouldn’t
-say.”
-
-“I should think so,” said Coles. “You won’t be very happy here when they
-find out he’s a——”
-
-A figure came up suddenly from behind and moved between them. A large
-hand rested upon Bobbie’s shoulder.
-
-“Well, sonny,” said Rouse. “How did _you_ enjoy it?”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III
- COMING EVENTS
-
-
-The new Headmaster of Harley was a man of considerable importance and an
-overpowering belief in himself; for which reason he formed hasty
-opinions, and having once formed them believed them to be correct for
-ever afterwards. In appearance he was not unlike a bloodhound in
-spectacles, and his manner was appropriately grim.
-
-The first case that came before his notice was that of Arthur, and he
-dealt with it in person. “Because,” said he, “at Wilton I had the
-reputation of knowing each boy individually, and I should like to know
-each boy here as soon as I possibly can.”
-
-The railway company had reported that Arthur had had the audacity to
-travel upon their line without a ticket, and Arthur was accordingly
-brought in and required to furnish his explanation of the outrage. This
-he did in the most heart-rending manner, with second-hand sort of tears
-spurting from his eyes all the time, and with such effect that, after
-listening to his pitiable tale, the new Head became convinced that he
-had been set upon in the train by a cowardly ruffian belonging to the
-school, and apparently even a prefect of it, who had wrenched his ticket
-from him by brute force and torn it to shreds before his very eyes.
-Arthur went so far as to give detailed information. The felon’s name was
-Rouse. He had introduced himself. And he was a friend of a boy called
-Nicholson, whose brother was a master at school.
-
-The new Head sent him away with a comforting pat on the shoulder and
-settled himself down to consider a fitting punishment for the scoundrel
-who could do such a thing.
-
-Now as luck would have it, that afternoon he was standing in majesty
-beside his window, looking out upon the kingdom he had come to govern,
-when his eye lighted upon a Rugby game in progress upon a distant
-football ground, and he suddenly came to an abrupt decision.
-
-“At Wilton,” he told the bursar, “I had the reputation of only going out
-to watch games when I was least expected to do so.”
-
-He nodded his head pleasantly.
-
-He would take the boys of Harley completely by surprise. He moved
-swiftly to the door and disappeared.
-
-As a matter of fact it was, in the result, he himself who was taken by
-surprise, and he returned with a dour expression and sent for Mr
-Nicholson.
-
-Toby appeared before him in due course.
-
-It was immediately clear to Toby that in Dr Roe he perceived a gentleman
-with a strong sense of dramatic effect, and he now stood by and prepared
-to watch what he imagined would be a very powerful piece of acting,
-indicating wrath.
-
-The Head was, however, deep in thought, and whilst Toby waited he
-noticed several little things, the first of which was that the carpet
-did not match the colouring of the new Headmaster’s nose. He also
-noticed that Dr Roe’s handwriting sloped backwards, which he knew for a
-bad sign in any man. He then adjusted the hang of his trousers, blew his
-nose, wiped his eyes, and commenced to count the roses on one square
-yard of the wall-paper, first with one eye and then with the other.
-Finding that the result was the same in each case, and deducing
-therefrom that his sight was still good, he cleared his throat and
-approached the wall with a view to observing school life from a window.
-
-As soon as he had turned Dr Roe broke into speech, thus to Toby’s mind
-having him at a disadvantage from the start. When Toby distrusted a man
-he liked to look in his eye all the time.
-
-The new Head rose slowly to his feet, lifted one hand until it was a
-suitable height from the table, clenched it and brought it down with a
-bang upon a large book. He then lifted his hand again, shook his finger
-at Toby as if in reproach, and began to speak rapidly.
-
-“Only this morning,” said he, “I had a little boy before me who had
-undoubtedly come up against a bully. He was terrified. He came in here
-and cried.... He had been set upon in the train and robbed of his
-ticket. At Wilton I had the reputation of being a lightning judge of
-character and an infallible one, and I can tell you at once that this
-boy was undoubtedly speaking the truth. In ten minutes’ conversation I
-came to know him as well as he knew himself, and I shall watch over him
-henceforward with interest.” He paused. “I decided,” said he, “to delay
-punishment of the offender a short while and to get to know more about
-this bully whilst he still had no reason to suppose that his conduct was
-known to me. I may tell you that at Wilton I had the reputation of
-knowing how to wait.”
-
-This seemed to Toby a very useful second string to any man’s bow.
-Dismissed from the post of Headmaster, Dr Roe would at least be able to
-find lucrative employment in a smart restaurant.
-
-However, he made no comment.
-
-“This afternoon,” continued the Head, “I went out to watch the boys
-playing football. Certainly I did not arrive till after half time, but I
-may tell you that to my mind the game I then witnessed was mere
-tomfoolery—a burlesque, sir—deliberate clowning.”
-
-“Yes, sir,” said Toby cheerfully. “It was the first game of the term.
-New-comers sides.”
-
-“Then, perhaps, you will tell me,” said the new Head somewhat hotly,
-“the name of the presumably senior boy—a fellow in a tasselled cap
-anyway—whose whole object was to get in people’s way and interfere in
-the game as much as possible, and who did it, moreover, purely to vent
-his spite against the very boy who was before me this morning?”
-
-“You mean Rouse,” said Toby. “He’s captain of foot——”
-
-The Head rose up and made a fiery gesture.
-
-“I knew it,” said he. “I knew it. They used to say at Wilton that my
-sense of instinct was uncanny—they used to say that I always guessed
-right. I guessed right this afternoon. As soon as I saw that little boy
-being pursued about the grass I knew it was Rouse.... I knew the little
-fellow had been speaking the truth. Rouse, Mr Nicholson, was the name of
-the fellow who tore up his ticket on the journey from London.” He paused
-sensationally. “It may be,” said he, “that you were engrossed with your
-duties as referee this afternoon. Possibly you did not notice that
-feature of the game which was most evident to me. Throughout the twenty
-minutes that I was there the fellow Rouse was on the little boy’s track
-without respite. I personally saw him viciously cane the lad on the
-field, and a worse example of flagrant bullying has seldom come before
-my notice.”
-
-Toby cleared his throat and began to explain.
-
-“I don’t care one atom about custom,” said the Head, when he had
-listened thirty seconds. “I may be new to this school but I am not an
-idiot. Public School customs are in constant abuse—take this very
-example. You teach Rugby football with a switch. The first thing that I
-notice is that a senior boy, against whom evidence has already been
-laid, is deliberately using his switch to terrorise a little boy.”
-
-“Oh no,” said Toby, with a polite smile. “You’re——”
-
-The Head made another gesture.
-
-“Oh _yes_,” said he, with considerable force. “Surely I can use my own
-eyes!”
-
-Toby began again.
-
-“Don’t argue, Mr Nicholson,” said Dr Roe. “At Wilton I had the
-reputation of rarely showing my temper, but of showing it very
-thoroughly when it was roused. And it is roused now. Do you mean to tell
-me that this boy is actually captain of football?”
-
-“Yes,” said Toby mildly; “and a very good captain too. He’s one of the
-most popular boys in the school.”
-
-The Head was somewhat taken aback.
-
-“Well, at all events,” said he, “I don’t remember noticing him in the
-Sixth Form.”
-
-It was an awkward point. Toby moved slightly upon his feet. He was not
-going to confess that Rouse was one of the school’s pet dunces.
-
-“He’s not in the Sixth Form yet,” said he.
-
-The Head clapped his hands and sprang nimbly from one foot to the other.
-
-“Then,” said he, “how can he be _captain of football_ if he’s not even a
-_prefect_?”
-
-“He is a prefect. The late Headmaster specially wished him to be. He
-knew that he would be captain of football this term, and he considered
-it would be a very good thing indeed for the boy’s character. Of course
-the captain of each sport here is a prefect _ex officio_, whether he’s
-in the Sixth or not, and the Head wished him to have a full term as a
-prefect before he became captain of Rugger.”
-
-The Head considered this point with a portentous frown, and at last he
-looked up at Toby and said:
-
-“I think you had better know at once that those are not my principles.
-To my mind the boy who leads the school team on to the field of play
-should be the boy who is captain of the school, and if by any chance he
-himself is not a very keen footballer, then the next senior boy should
-take his place. Boys have to be made to learn that being able to kick a
-football in a certain direction with a certain force is not everything
-in life. And they learn that best if they find that a boy is not allowed
-to be captain of football unless he is also one of the most senior boys
-in the Sixth Form.”
-
-He paused and sat down like one who is conscious of having performed a
-righteous duty. Toby began to go hot and cold all over.
-
-“Every school has its unwritten laws, sir,” he began. “It has always
-been the understanding here that each game is captained by the boy who
-is best or most senior at it, irrespective of his scholastic ability.”
-
-The Head grew visibly annoyed.
-
-“I have already told you that I do not agree with that principle, Mr
-Nicholson,” said he; “and to-morrow I shall visit this boy’s form and
-question him on his general knowledge. It remains to be seen from the
-opinion I then form whether I consider him a suitable boy to remain a
-prefect under my headmastership, or to lead the school on the football
-field. I must say that from the judgment I formed of him this afternoon
-he is most unsuitable for those duties.”
-
-Toby essayed a protest.
-
-“But, sir,” said he, “this boy has been elected by the school.... He is
-their chosen captain.”
-
-Dr Roe rose in his majesty. Unfortunately he was a man of somewhat
-ordinary build, and as against Toby, therefore, he did not in this
-respect cut much ice. He lifted his hand above his head, and bringing it
-slowly horizontal, indicated Toby with a bunch of fingers.
-
-“Mr Nicholson,” said he, “whilst I am Headmaster of this school no boy
-is elected to any position without my authority. I have been a
-schoolmaster all my life, and at Wilton I had the reputation of making
-sometimes apparently ruthless decisions and of sticking to them through
-thick and thin. I do not crave popularity.... I have strong ideas and a
-strong will. If necessary the boys here will be made to understand that
-at once. It may save considerable heart burnings afterwards.”
-
-He paused and glared at Toby as if in challenge. Toby declined with
-thanks. It was clear that he would not improve matters by saying more at
-the moment. There was a brief silence. At last the new Head looked up.
-
-“There is another thing,” said he. “I like games to be taken seriously.
-Such frivolity as I saw this afternoon tends to have a very bad effect
-upon a boy. I hope you will bear that in mind in future games which you
-conduct.”
-
-Toby drew a deep breath.
-
-“I think you will understand better, sir,” said he, “if you will listen
-to me for a moment. The boy that you think was being terrorised had been
-laughing as loudly as any boy possibly could throughout the first half,
-whilst other boys with a better spirit were learning to play.”
-
-“Well,” said the Head crossly, “considering he was crying only this
-morning, why shouldn’t he laugh? I am very glad to know that his talk
-with me had so reassured him.”
-
-“It is a bad thing,” said Toby, “for boys who are learning a game to be
-laughed at from the touch-line by those who don’t care to try it
-themselves. Rugby football is compulsory at this school, and that fact
-has a very excellent effect. It was I who told him to come on and play.
-There was no bullying.”
-
-“My dear Nicholson,” said Dr Roe, “I have been a schoolmaster longer
-probably than you have been alive. Do you really think that I do not
-know a bully when I see one?”
-
-Toby endeavoured to retain his calm.
-
-“It is possible to be mistaken.”
-
-“I am not mistaken,” snapped the other.
-
-“But you see, sir,” insisted Toby, “you haven’t even spoken to Rouse.”
-
-“Because,” said Dr Roe, “I wish to learn all I possibly can about him
-before I do. I have spoken to the other lad, and I am satisfied that he
-is telling the truth. I have seen this fellow Rouse making himself a
-clown at a football match, and I have learnt from you that, although he
-has been five years at the school, he is not yet in the Sixth Form. It
-is clear that you have a good opinion of him yourself, but you are,
-after all, a young man, Nicholson.”
-
-“What has that to do with it?” asked Toby smilingly.
-
-“Well ... I understand,” said the other, “that this boy is the bosom
-chum of your own brother; and it is therefore not unlikely that he is a
-friend of your own....” He looked at Toby searchingly. “Under these
-circumstance, I cannot altogether expect that your good opinion of him
-is entirely unprejudiced.”
-
-“Then,” said Toby, “why did you trouble to ask my opinion, sir?”
-
-“I sent for you,” said the Head, “because you are games master, and I
-want to tell you that I do not approve of such buffoonery as took place
-during the game this afternoon.”
-
-Toby’s natural inclination was to bow politely and ask leave to pack his
-bag. But it was at just such a time as this that his love for Harley
-grew most profound. So he kept silent, and he stood for a moment looking
-at the new Headmaster thoughtfully and as clearly in pity as he deemed
-polite.
-
-“Do you wish to see Rouse?” said he at last.
-
-“Certainly I shall see Rouse—but I shall not see him here. At Wilton I
-had the reputation of never doing the expected. I shall walk across to
-his house and speak to his house master. Then I shall visit him in his
-study. When you are older, Nicholson, you will know that it is in his
-own haunts, and when he is not expecting visitors, that you find animal
-or man as he really is.”
-
-Toby’s heart sank. He looked dismally into the future and he could see
-no sunshine at all. With a Headmaster like this there could be no hope.
-It was going to be a lean year.
-
-Well, if it was a question of Harley’s principles going under to a man
-who merely sought to make a sensational entry into the school, he would
-have to fight. And in the immediate future he would have to fight for
-Rouse. So in his mind’s eye he made a few movements as of a sailor about
-to start a hornpipe and followed the Headmaster out of the room. Dr Roe
-turned.
-
-“That will be all, Mr Nicholson, thank you,” said he. “I will go alone.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV
- A SLIGHT MISTAKE
-
-
-The procession came down the corridor and stopped outside a small door.
-It was headed by a tall boy, as thin as a match-stick, and with a face
-so tiny that it seemed to be almost entirely hidden behind a pair of
-enormous spectacles which he wore tied round his ears with knotted
-elastic bands. Behind this boy came another of his own age, but less
-extraordinary in appearance, and behind them, in their turn, came Rouse
-and Terence Nicholson. The boy in spectacles rejoiced in the name of
-Henry Hope, and he claimed to have been the devoted admirer of Rouse and
-Terence longer than anybody else in the school. Certainly no other boy
-would have dared to go and roust the captain of Rugby football out of
-his sanctum merely in the hope that he would set right a small minor
-trouble of his own. It is true that the fact that Rouse happened to be
-the said captain made a certain difference. Rouse was everybody’s friend
-and particularly the friend of unhappy juniors. But what made the chief
-difference was the fact that one of the boys in trouble on this
-particular occasion was Henry Hope.
-
-Henry drew his crony aside, and they stood for a moment looking at the
-two seniors in turn with eyes that shone with admiration, until at last
-Rouse spoke.
-
-“Yes,” said he. “This is the one all right. No. 18, the list said. There
-can’t be any mistake.”
-
-“Are you sure that it said No. 18?” asked Terence modestly. “Seems
-rather odd.”
-
-“My good sir,” responded Rouse, “there is no doubt about it.”
-
-He moved forward and opened the door. Terence came up alongside and they
-stood for a moment regarding the interior.
-
-“Well, it isn’t a bad one,” said Terence at last.
-
-Rouse regarded him with deep sorrow.
-
-“You _are_ a sunny child.”
-
-“Sunny?”
-
-Rouse nodded his head.
-
-“You look on the bright side, the side that jolly well isn’t there.
-Myself, I cannot conceive how by any freak of fancy Henry could possibly
-have secured a worse hovel than this. It is the first time he’s ever had
-a study, and now he’s got one that they’ve forgotten about so long that
-it’s gone to seed. There’s moss growing on the very walls—_moss_, I tell
-you. Look at the fireplace. It’s a kind of ‘Spiders’ Retreat.’ They say
-there’s no study for him, and then after three days they say there is,
-and they give him one—_this_—a kennel in the attic. There’s not a stick
-of furniture in it. True, there’s a picture postcard on the mantelpiece
-depicting some phase of life in a foreign clime—a man in a red fez
-picking hops, I think it is. You’ll probably find it’s addressed to some
-fellow who’s since died of old age. And it’s the only sign that there’s
-ever been any life in the place at all. I do not see even a modern nail
-anywhere in the wall to hang your hat on. There’s probably an official
-ghost attached to this study. The place is absolutely mouldy. The
-ceiling has caved in and the walls have warped, and the fellows who’ve
-had studies near here at odd times during the last forty years have been
-in on organised raids and pinched every blessed thing.” He paused at
-last for breath. “And you,” he said presently, “you—always the
-gentleman—you—such a one with your joking ways—you open the door and
-look inside, and then you throw back your head and intone the following
-words: ‘It isn’t a bad one.’
-
-“Well, it’s better than not having a study at all.”
-
-“_Indeed_ it is,” admitted Rouse. “How nice it will be to sit in here on
-one’s bowler hat, drinking cold tea out of a glove.”
-
-“We’ll rake round for a table for him,” suggested Terence hopefully.
-
-“Yes, and the only way you’ll get one at this period will be by sucking
-the multiplication table off the back of an exercise-book. It’s three
-days since term started, my dear old bean.”
-
-Terence persisted.
-
-“I’ve got some photographs in my bag,” said he. “We’ll put them up.”
-
-“Put ’em up? Easier to put them up than for poor old Henry to put up
-with them. He’ll get pretty weary sitting in here never more than
-eighteen inches away from his partner as it is. Is his only relaxation
-to be a turning of the head to gaze upon your likeness on the walls?”
-
-“They aren’t photographs of me.”
-
-“Whom, then, do they portray?”
-
-“One,” responded Terence, with every modesty, “portrays Phyllis Dare in
-evening dress.”
-
-“Right,” said Rouse more kindly. “Put it up then. Have you any other
-delight you can stick on the wall for him?”
-
-“Not in _my_ pocket at this moment. But I’ll go and see Toby. He might
-be able to produce something. If not, perhaps he can hire a bit of
-furniture.”
-
-“A piano, perchance,” said the other. “There’s plenty of room.”
-
-“Anyway,” said Terence, “I’ll go and see him. Probably he can suggest
-something.”
-
-“Very well, my child; and if you see anybody who seems to be at a loose
-end at all whilst you’re gone, ask him to come back and have a really
-comfortable sit-down with Henry and a nice cup of hot tea.”
-
-Terence moved away obediently, and when he had gone Rouse took one final
-look at the study, tossed his head and then, coming to a sudden
-decision, bade Henry stay there with his friend and wait; then he walked
-rapidly away down the corridor in search of the house porter, an
-individual for whose resource he had considerable admiration, partly
-because he could put lighted matches into his mouth and clench his teeth
-without putting out the light.
-
-The house porter, who had been at the school only a little over twelve
-months, was one of those gentlemen that are described in police court
-reports as “of military appearance,” which means to say that his hair
-was dressed in that fashion known as a cowlick, and that his moustache
-was waxed. On hot days, however, this wax used to melt, giving his face
-a somewhat mournful and untidy appearance. His name was Compton, and at
-the moment when Rouse burst in upon him he was sitting on a stool in his
-private den, his knees hunched up under his chin and his eyes fixed
-rigidly upon the letterpress of a paper-covered novel which he was
-clutching earnestly in his fists. He did not at once look up, and when
-eventually he sensed the presence of an intruder he seemed a trifle
-annoyed. Nevertheless, Rouse greeted him with a variety of graceful
-gestures before he eventually said his say.
-
-“Acting upon information received,” he explained, “Mr Nicholson and I
-have just prised open the door of the study allotted to a little boy
-called Hope, with a view to inspecting its desirability as a residence;
-and all we have found inside is the portrait of a man in a red fez
-picking hops.”
-
-He paused and coughed deprecatingly behind his hand as if loath to
-complain. Compton looked at him dazedly. Clearly he had not yet
-thoroughly extricated himself from that romantic world in which men live
-perpetually in evening dress and speak glibly of their college days. He
-rose and laid down his novel with a sigh.
-
-“The incident has somewhat unnerved my friend Nicholson,” said Rouse
-apologetically, “also the boy Hope, and I was quite unable to persuade
-either of them to come and consult with you. I myself thought that you,
-if you could, would aid the lad in his dire extremity. You might even be
-able to tell him where he could find something to sit on—anything would
-do so long as it hasn’t too many rusty nails in it.” He reached out and
-indicated Compton’s stool suggestively. “That, for example,” said he,
-“would suit excellently. We have the whole evening before us, and it
-would be very enjoyable indeed for him to have a good sit-down after his
-game of football.”
-
-Compton turned and looked first at his stool and then at Rouse.
-
-“What is it you want, sir?” he inquired somewhat uncertainly.
-
-“It’s a study,” said Rouse. “There’s no furniture in the place at all.”
-
-“Study?” repeated the patient fellow. “But ain’t there a table and a
-couple of chairs in it? Surely——” He began to fondle his chin. “Why,
-every study has a table and a couple of chairs.”
-
-“I expect this one did have a long time ago,” said Rouse, “but if so
-they must have died in infancy.”
-
-“They may have been stole.”
-
-Rouse considered this point with care.
-
-“Of course,” said he at last, “it’s only a hole in the attic that I’m
-talking about. It may not be on your list of studies at all. To the
-naked eye it looks more like a family vault in some cheap cemetery.”
-
-Compton produced a pipe, filled it, and struck a match; then he made his
-confession.
-
-“Well, I can give you a table and a couple of chairs. As a matter o’
-fac’ I’ve got some spare, and I’ve been wondering for a long time which
-study they belongs to. Over and over again I’ve reckoned up all the
-studies, on the fingers of my ’ands, and then all the tables and chairs,
-and they never come right. There was always a set over.”
-
-Rouse’s face cleared instantly. He held out his hand.
-
-“I warmly congratulate you, Compton,” said he. “Let me pilot you to the
-place forthwith. You had better bring some sandwiches and a bottle of
-beer with you, as it’s rather a distance and you might be glad of some
-light refreshment half way.”
-
-He paused as they were about to leave and cast one last look round the
-little room.
-
-“Compton,” said he, “would it be too much to ask whether you could lend
-Master Hope your little stove for the afternoon? To-morrow everything
-will be in full swing and he will be serving a cut from the joint with
-two vegetables from his own fireplace practically without cessation all
-day. But we must give the organisation time to settle down. We should
-not like you to have to hump along a sack of coal to-day, for example.
-But we should very much like to have a cup of tea with Hope in his
-sanctum, and as a matter of fact a few friends are visiting him.”
-
-Compton cast a glance over his shoulder.
-
-“I’ll give him a bit of coal,” said he. “If it’s a little place in the
-attic he’s going into he’ll want a bit of a fire in there to dry the
-place up and vent’late it a bit.”
-
-“It would, I am sure, be enough,” said Rouse, “if you could only give
-him a bit of red carpet to warm his cold feet on.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-When at last they all met again, the expression on the face of each made
-an interesting study. Henry Hope was characteristically grave, and he
-stood with his crony watching Rouse with the eyes of a faithful dog.
-Terence was last to return, and he wore the expression of one who has
-some secret joy, whilst Rouse himself, who had been working exceedingly
-hard, looked hot and untidy. Nevertheless, his eyes were shining with
-the light of intense self-satisfaction. It was clear that he was itching
-to deliver himself of a few well-chosen words such as might indicate to
-his listeners the peculiar ingenuity of those things which he had
-achieved. In matters that concerned Henry Rouse was not a prefect at
-all; he was just an old friend. Henry Hope had more than once saved
-Rouse’s skin, and in spite of his great place in the school Rouse did
-not forget these little things. He welcomed Terence with an excited
-gesture, and then clapped a hand on his shoulder and peered tensely into
-his face.
-
-“You’ve hardly changed at all,” said he. “The same old crooked eyes, the
-same solitary tooth projecting over your underlip, the same old passion
-socks! It seems scarcely any time since you went a-way-ee, and yet ...
-what do you notice in me? A suspicion of grey in the hair?”
-
-“A suspicion of egg on the mouth, if anything.”
-
-Rouse was a trifle taken aback.
-
-“What’s the matter anyway?” asked Terence.
-
-“You’ve been gone such a deuce of a long time. That’s the matter. And
-never so much as a line to your own folk to let them know how you were
-getting on. Even now you’ve brought nothing.”
-
-“Yes, I have brought along a friend.”
-
-“A friend?” repeated the other scornfully. “What’s he going to sit on,
-pray?” He waited a moment, then reached out and tapped Terence upon the
-chest. “You see in me,” he opined, “one whose ingenuity is unsurpassed
-throughout the length and breadth of four continents, and it is very
-fortunate indeed for you that your friend Rouse is such a highbrow.
-Whilst you have been away I have set the whole thing right. Compton and
-I have just this moment completed the work. What was a short time ago a
-kind of expanded egg-box is now a comfortably furnished apartment. True,
-Henry will have to crawl in on his hands and knees to avoid braining
-himself on the ceiling, but what of that? It merely prevents surprise
-visits from beaks. And the main idea is to secure comfort when once he’s
-in. This I have done. Henry Hope did not appeal in vain. Compton has
-provided him with a complete suite of furniture—to wit, half a brace of
-table and a brace of chairs. The walls are now placarded with
-photographs of people found drowned—cuttings from old _Daily Mirrors_.
-We have propped up the ceiling with a baulk of timber and we have
-kindled a fire. We have put the fellow in the red fez who was picking
-hops right out of his misery, and we have drained off some of the pools
-of water that you noticed on the floor and put pieces of sacking in
-their place. As soon as he likes he can move in.” He paused as if for
-congratulation.
-
-“There’s one thing I’d like to say,” observed his friend, “only one
-thing, and I think you ought to be told at once.”
-
-“Well?”
-
-“That place,” said Terence severely, “is not his study at all.”
-
-Rouse peered at him like a man who has received a severe punch below the
-belt.
-
-“You were so insistent about it that I imagined for once you knew what
-you were talking about. But no. Whenever you do anything which at first
-sight seems clever there’s always a catch in it somewhere. As a matter
-of fact, Henry’s study is No. 8, and it’s on the first floor. It’s the
-one Masham and Loates had last term, and it’s as cosy as any place in
-the house.”
-
-“Here,” said Rouse, passing a hand through his hair. “Look here, what do
-you mean? That list said No. 18, and No. 17, which is along there, is
-the last number. Isn’t this the only place like a study that’s anywhere
-near it?”
-
-“The list,” retorted Terence firmly, “said No. 8. It was you that told
-Henry it was No. 18.”
-
-There was a silence.
-
-At last Rouse made a passionate gesture.
-
-“You mean to say, then,” said he, “that all my foresight and resource,
-all my ingenuity, all my travail, are without value of any kind? Do all
-my plans leave you cold? Are you suggesting that all the timber that I
-have scouted out should now merely be sold to defray expenses?”
-
-He stopped and eyed the others wrathfully.
-
-“You meant well,” confessed Terence—“you always do—but if I were you I
-should say no more about it. Compton may be rather annoyed when he finds
-all his trouble was due to a howling bloomer.”
-
-He beckoned gravely, turned, and began to move down the corridor
-followed by his train.
-
-At last Rouse spoke.
-
-“Tell me,” said he, “who is your friend—the friend you so very kindly
-brought? I should like to kick somebody, and it might as well be him.”
-
-“It’s the kid called Carr,” said Terence over his shoulder. “He seems
-rather a decent kid, so I told him to come along and be introduced to
-Henry and eat some cake in his new study. He waits within.”
-
-“Waits within?” repeated Rouse. “If he takes my advice he’ll wait
-without. It’ll get him used to the idea that he’ll have to go without.”
-
-“As a matter of fact he’s minding the kettle.”
-
-“Kettle, indeed? Is there going to be a dish of tea then?”
-
-“Yes, of course there is. I’ve been getting it ready.”
-
-“You’ve fixed up a sort of christening breakfast, have you?”
-
-He nodded his head thoughtfully. It occurred to him that in his quiet
-way Terence generally did fix up things.
-
-He grunted.
-
-“H’m,” said he. “Most ingenious of you. I’m sure Henry Hope is indeed
-lucky in his friends.”
-
-Terence smiled modestly and opened the door of No. 8, whereupon Rouse
-walked in and looked round with a contemptuous sniff.
-
-“This,” said he, “looks like a prison cell. It’ll make Henry feel
-absolutely homesick.”
-
-“Homesick?”
-
-“Certainly. That little den upstairs was a veritable home from home.”
-
-“Why, dash it all, man, you said it was——”
-
-“Never mind what I said,” retorted Rouse. “I’d grown to love that
-place.”
-
-Terence burst out laughing.
-
-At last Rouse smiled.
-
-“Well, well, I suppose he may as well abide here as abide there. The
-great thing was to ensure that Henry was not being wronged in any way.
-Everything is now to the good, thanks to myself. Hullo, Carr, how are
-you? Hold out your fist, and that tall, well-set-up young fellow with
-the opera-glasses stuck on his face will slap a piece of cake into it.
-That is Henry Hope. Shake him heartily by the hand. He is one of the
-phenomena of Harley. People come miles to see what he carries behind
-those spectacles of his. You will grow to love Henry.... Who are you
-going to fag for?”
-
-The little boy looked up.
-
-“I don’t know yet,” said he. “There was some mix-up over the studies and
-things.”
-
-“I can tell you,” put in Terence. “I saw the list half-an-hour ago.
-You’re going to fag for Coles.”
-
-At first the effect that this news had upon Bobbie Carr passed
-unnoticed. The others were too busy dissecting cake to wonder why he
-made no answer at all. But at last Terence looked up and saw that he was
-sitting stiffly on his chair and staring at him.
-
-“Is that right?” said he at last, and his voice sounded very small.
-
-“That’s right,” said Terence. “Yes. Do you know Coles?”
-
-For a moment he did not answer. Wild thoughts were scurrying across his
-mind. He was suddenly very afraid. He did not want them to know that he
-knew Coles at all, and yet——
-
-“Rather bad luck,” said Rouse, talking with his mouth full. “Coles isn’t
-a man I’d care to fag for.”
-
-“Anyway,” said Terence, turning and speaking under his breath, “it’ll
-show what he’s made of. We’ll see how he tackles it. If we find Coles is
-giving him too thick a time we’ll get him swopped with somebody else.”
-
-“Yes,” said Rouse, “and also hit Coles sharply in the eye, a practice I
-delight in.”
-
-He turned.
-
-A knock had come upon the door, and it was swinging with stately dignity
-upon its hinges. In turn each boy rose to his feet and looked towards it
-suspiciously. Slowly, and at last, Toby Nicholson appeared upon the
-threshold. He looked round the assembled company with an air of relief.
-Next he saw Bobbie Carr, and wondered why he was sitting so oddly still
-and looking so scared. Then his wandering eyes discovered Rouse and
-settled upon him gravely. Lastly he moved forward.
-
-“Have you seen the new Head? He hasn’t been in here, has he?”
-
-Terence shook his head, but Rouse took a pace forward and slapped his
-thigh several times with the palm of his hand.
-
-“Now that you remind me of it, sir,” said he delightedly, “I certainly
-have seen him—and in this house.” He turned to Terence. “In the stress
-of events,” said he, “I quite forgot to tell you. It was whilst I was
-carrying the table upstairs for Henry, and my only regret now is that I
-was not at the time balancing it upon my chin. What happened was this:
-Compton was following behind with his chairs, and to cheer him upon his
-way we were singing a sort of part-song together. In reality he was
-mumbling a ditty and I was singing seconds in a loud clear voice that
-was fairly making the rafters ring. I had the table in front of my face
-and naturally I couldn’t see where I was going, but just as I got to the
-landing the door of Mr Morley’s room opened and a man came out like a
-shot from a gun—just as if somebody’s boot was behind him. Intent upon
-my task I went blithely on, and I hit that man immediately in the
-waistcoat good and hard with the leg of the table. If he was coming to
-tell me about my singing it must have hurt his sense of pride very
-considerably, also his sense of pain.” Rouse paused. “I thought—you
-see,” he explained, “I couldn’t see him properly—and I thought—it was
-the man who comes to wind up the clocks. So I didn’t apologise. He could
-see where he was going and I couldn’t. I thought, ‘Let him apologise.
-It’s up to him to speak first. Why didn’t he look where he was going?’
-As a matter of fact he was leaning weakly against the wall, with one
-hand against his waistcoat and the other against his forehead, watching
-me stagger by. I took absolutely no notice at all. In point of fact I
-went by whistling. When I had gone right past Compton slipped up beside
-me and said: ‘I say, sir, that man you ’it—that man was the new
-Headmaster. ’E’s lookin’ still, sir.’ I turned round to see. It was
-quite true. His eyes were like balls of fire.”
-
-Terence smiled thoughtfully.
-
-“He must have felt rather annoyed.”
-
-“If I hit him as hard as I think I did,” said Rouse, “he must have felt
-like a deceased relative.”
-
-Toby moved forward, then he sat down wretchedly on the edge of the
-table.
-
-“Look here, shipmate,” said he, “do you mean to say that he found you
-singing a part-song with the house porter, and that thereupon you hit
-him in the ribs with the leg of a table?”
-
-“The honest truth,” admitted Rouse cheerfully, and passed a moistened
-finger solemnly across his throat. “I must have looked like a sweep
-too ... hair all tousled ... thick, rich soil all over my hands.... I’d
-been digging about in Compton’s store, you see, raking out furniture and
-things for our Henry’s study.”
-
-Toby looked at him forlornly.
-
-“Well, the new Headmaster,” said he, “came over here entirely to see how
-you lived when nobody was looking, and if that’s how he found things
-you’ve just about put the lid on it.”
-
-Rouse looked pained.
-
-“Why, sir?”
-
-“Because,” said Toby, coming up beside him and speaking quietly, “he’s
-decided you’re not a suitable chap to be captain of Rugby football.”
-
-The words had the instantaneous effect that Toby knew they would have.
-Rouse the clown became abruptly a grown man. He tightened in every
-muscle until at last he seemed rigid. Then he looked Toby in the eyes
-with quick sincerity.
-
-“What do you mean, sir?” he said. “What does he——”
-
-Toby laid a hand upon his shoulder.
-
-“I met him outside just now,” said he. “I knew something was wrong. He
-was white with rage. He could hardly speak. But he says you’re to have
-the push—that’s all.”
-
-There was absolute silence. With lovable tact, Henry Hope had taken the
-two boys with him out of the room as soon as he saw that Toby had
-something private to say. Terence stood against the mantelpiece and
-stared first at one and then at the other, and Rouse just stood before
-Toby and looked and looked and looked till he could see nothing at all
-but a foolish house of cards that had only come into being in the
-morning, and that now, at the end of the day, lay in a tumbled litter
-before his eyes.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V
- BREAKERS AHEAD
-
-
-The first significance of it all steadied Rouse in precisely one second,
-but for the reality of it to make its real impression needed time, and
-in the silence that followed the truth began to tell upon him.
-
-In the whole history of Harley a Rugger captain elected by the school
-had never been turned down by the Headmaster. It would be a lasting
-disgrace. In some way that he did not yet understand he had let down the
-school. Moreover Rouse had an ideal, and the ideal was not only to be a
-great fullback, but to be, in the immediate future, a captain worthy to
-lead the team that Harley was going to have this year. To be told that
-he was not fit to captain any kind of team at all was no less surprising
-than having a bottle broken over his head. If it were true, then he
-might just as well be expelled.
-
-He found himself wondering whether, if this came to pass, fellows would
-think he were just such another as Slade, who had been captain of
-cricket when he himself was a junior and whom the Grey Man had sacked.
-At least Slade had had a chance. To be judged in three days by a man who
-had never seen him before in his life did not give him a dog’s chance.
-It seemed pretty incredible that any fellow could be condemned like
-that, but that the fellow in question should be himself was very nearly
-unthinkable.
-
-To Toby it was not unthinkable. If he had judged Dr Roe aright the new
-Head was a man whose first opinion was his last, and who, rather than
-have to confess himself in the wrong, would stick to a bad judgment
-against all argument, upholding it through thick and thin to the end. It
-was clear that he believed in impressing those under him with swift and
-irrevocable decisions, thereby instilling into them discipline of a kind
-that made those who had to be judged by him afraid to take their chance,
-and which consequently kept them on good behaviour.
-
-There was another reason, too, why he would be a very difficult man to
-quarrel with. He was new to the school, and he was the type of man who
-would always be able to defeat those who really loved Harley by making
-the whole school and the school’s good reputation suffer for the
-misdeeds of any one individual. Something of this foreboding must have
-shown in Toby’s face, and Rouse saw it. At last he spoke.
-
-“What is it that’s gone wrong, sir?” said he. “Does he really think I’d
-be a dud as a captain—or is it that he just takes me for a general
-waster? What is it makes him think it, any way? Surely it’s not just
-because I bumped into him with a table?... I would have apologised, as a
-matter of fact, only as I say I thought it was the man who comes to wind
-up the clocks, and he’s such a disagreeable old bogey that I didn’t
-trouble.... He ought to have looked where he was going. A man’s got no
-right to shoot out of the wall just as you’re going by with furniture.”
-
-“It isn’t that at all,” said Toby. “That’s only an additional proof, to
-his mind, that what he thinks of you is right. There’s some yarn about a
-ticket in the train. _You_ didn’t tear up a new boy’s ticket, did you?”
-
-Rouse considered a moment.
-
-“Ticket?” said he at last. “Why, yes, I tore up _one_. What about it? It
-wasn’t the right one.”
-
-He began to explain.
-
-“Anyway,” said Toby, “it seems that it was the same fellow who laughed
-such a lot at the footer game—the fat boy we pulled out to play. And the
-Head’s idea is that throughout that game he was terrified of you because
-you’re a proper bully.”
-
-“But that’s all rot,” said Terence sharply. “Why, that fellow can weep
-like an ornamental fountain. He nearly broke his heart in the first
-place because his pater went off with the wrong ticket, and then Rouse
-had the notion that the best thing to do was to tear up the one to
-Ealing that he’d been left with so that the people this end wouldn’t
-know what station it was for. Of course it went wrong. Rouse’s ideas
-always do. The ticket was a different colour from the one for Harley.
-But he only did it to help the little ass. Rouse had better go to the
-Head and tell him.”
-
-“I’ll go and tell him myself,” said Toby, “as soon as I’ve got hold of
-the details. The trouble is that Rouse has been extraordinarily
-prominent during a space of twenty-four hours and the new Head is a man
-who makes up his mind at top speed. But it isn’t only that. Rouse’s
-manner doesn’t appeal to him either. He wants the captain of Rugger to
-be one of the senior boys of the school, and he rather suspects that the
-reason Rouse isn’t in the Sixth yet is that he’s a real bad lad. Nor
-does he like football conducted by a fellow whose right line is comic
-opera. There’s another thing. He’s coming round to visit Rouse in form
-to-morrow with the idea of finding out how much he really knows, and,”
-he added, turning to Rouse, “I recommend you to sit up and swot to-night
-till your eyes stand out from your head like railway buffers, because
-it’s just possible that if you can tell him all he wants to know he’ll
-be persuaded to move you into the Sixth, which would do away with one of
-his grumbles anyway.”
-
-Rouse looked up wretchedly.
-
-“That’s hopeless, sir. I’ll work with a wet towel round my nut all the
-term, and I’ll honestly try to swell out my forehead and push in amongst
-the highbrows and old Terence here, but to expect me to be able to do it
-in one night is out of all reason.”
-
-He stopped and began to look grimly out of the window. At last he pulled
-himself together with a jerk and moved towards Terence.
-
-“Does this really mean I’m not going to be captain of Rugger after all?
-Do you think it means that?”
-
-If his face had been cruelly disfigured he could not have been more
-obviously hard hit. He knew as well as any man that when this news
-became public property he would have to pretend not to care—especially
-before the Rugger Committee. It would be no use behaving like a baby
-about it. But at the moment he was alone with those who knew him best,
-and so he was not ashamed to show the innermost recesses of his soul,
-and it would to an onlooker have seemed impossible to recognise in him
-the exuberant humorist of an hour ago.
-
-“You come along to the study,” said Terence, taking his arm. “Come on,
-Toby. We’ll go and thrash this thing out. If he’s not going to let our
-best Rugger man be captain of the fifteen he’ll have a good-sized crowd
-heaving bricks at his study window in about a couple of hours, and I
-shall be amongst the number, with my coat off.”
-
-They moved out of the study and went slowly and soberly along the
-corridor, arm-in-arm, towards Terence’s own room. And, behind them, with
-hands in his pockets and a troubled brow, came the man who was typical
-of Harley’s best. In the little room, which was cosy with an arm-chair
-and curtains, they sat down and faced each other across the table.
-
-Toby came in and stood by the fireplace.
-
-Presently Terence leaned forward and indicated Rouse affectionately with
-his forefinger.
-
-“It’s bound to be all right. If he says that any particular man is not
-to be captain of footer——”
-
-“He _has_ said it,” interrupted Toby. “The _IF_ has ceased to count. He
-stopped me outside the house and said it as definitely as any man could.
-He said: ‘I refuse to sanction the school team being led by a boy like
-that. You will arrange immediately for a new election, and you will give
-all those concerned clearly to understand that the boy who is chosen is
-to be a senior prefect of the Sixth Form.’ It was no use arguing. I’d
-nothing to go on except the same arguments as I’d used already. Now that
-I know I’ll go round and have it out with him, but if you ask me for the
-honest truth—and you’re both fellows who can stand it—I don’t believe
-for a moment that he’ll alter his mind. He’s come here with what he
-believes to be a reputation, and he’s not going to start by admitting
-he’s made a fool of himself. Besides, he’s Headmaster. If he and I were
-on equal footing I’d go there with the fixed idea of not coming away
-again till he’d given in; but he’s the Head, and if I let myself say too
-much I shall be politely told to push off and get a job taking tickets
-at a peep-show, which at the moment I don’t intend to do. Now that this
-has cropped up I mean to see it through to the finish. There are
-breakers ahead, and if we don’t look out the school footer’s going to
-suffer pretty severely. A lean year takes a long time to wipe out. It
-means not only getting licked every week; it means that the school colts
-aren’t being properly brought up, and that means other lean years to
-come.”
-
-“Couldn’t we write to the Grey Man?” suggested Terence.
-
-“The Grey Man’s ill. And he hasn’t got any say in it now, anyway. This
-man’s Headmaster now. All the Grey Man could do would be to give Rouse a
-thundering good character, and this fellow would simply light his pipe
-with it.”
-
-Rouse jumped up with sudden passion and threw out his arms.
-
-“I can’t believe it. I can’t take it in. I’ve lived for this one thing
-all the while I’ve been at school. To be captain of Rugger at Harley has
-seemed the greatest thing a fellow like me could wish for. I’m not
-clever. I’ve got brains that slop about in my head like sodden
-tea-leaves. The only thing I can do is play football. Not only that
-though. There’s some sort of third-rate talent in me that’s a gift for
-organisation, I think. As soon as I knew I was going to be skipper I
-began to plan footer for every kind of fellow in the school. While I’ve
-been talking of other things, all the time I’m fooling about, I’m really
-thinking out house Rugger, and games for colts, and the kind of training
-I’ll give the First Fifteen. I’m brim full of it. This man doesn’t
-understand. We must give him time.”
-
-Terence watched him sympathetically.
-
-“It’s all right. The school won’t let him do a thing like that. There’ll
-be a rebellion.”
-
-“That’s just it,” put in Toby thoughtfully. “It’s something of that sort
-I’m afraid of. If it comes to a fight, what’s going to happen to school
-footer? We play Greyminster on Saturday week. The team’s got to be
-chosen and practised. If we haven’t a captain what’s to be done? Is the
-match to be scratched—and if so, how many others will go the same way?
-Is it simply going to be an empty season right through the term?”
-
-“You needn’t worry about that,” answered Rouse, with sudden steadiness.
-“If it comes to it, I’ll chuck in. Smythe can be captain. He’s the same
-year as I am and he’s secretary as it is.”
-
-“Smythe is bottom of the Sixth,” answered Terence. “He can’t even add
-up.”
-
-“All right, then, there’s you,” retorted Rouse. “You’ve got plenty of
-brains. You’re a prefect. We’ll make you captain.”
-
-Terence turned on him.
-
-“If you think I’m going to take on a job that they think is too good for
-_you_” he snapped, “you’re a bigger ass than I take you for. What on
-earth are you talking about?”
-
-Toby turned at last to Rouse.
-
-“I don’t often compliment you,” he observed. “At one time I used to cuff
-your head whenever I could reach it, but I’ll tell you now that even you
-yourself don’t quite realise what they think of you here. You’re a
-little tin god. The team will follow you as they’d follow no other
-fellow I know. They don’t want anyone else, and it’s my idea they won’t
-have anyone else. The captain of footer has to be elected. That’s
-constitutional. They’ve elected _you_. And if the Head doesn’t approve
-it’s quite possible for the school to try passive resistance.”
-
-“How?”
-
-“What I think is,” said Toby, “that he can search right through the
-whole school and he won’t find another fellow anywhere who’ll take it
-on—not under these circumstances.”
-
-“Then he’ll have to give in.”
-
-“He’ll never give in ... he’s the type that never knows where to draw
-the line ... and he thinks he’s strong. He’ll make himself a dictator.
-He’ll find some unsuspecting dolt and order him to be captain.”
-
-“Then there’ll be a rebellion,” said Terence again. “The school won’t
-stand it. They absolutely idolise Rouse.”
-
-Toby spread his hands.
-
-“Think it over,” said he. “Reason it out. I’m going. If he comes to ask
-you comic questions in form to-morrow morning just keep your head and
-don’t give anything away. I shan’t see him again to-night. He’s in a bad
-temper. I’ll wait till after morning school to-morrow. Then I’ll join
-issue with him after he’s visited your form. And above all,” he added
-finally, “don’t be downhearted. This turn of events is as bad as it
-possibly could be, but you aren’t alone. You’re no end of a dunce,
-Rouse, but you’ve got the school behind you, and there’s comfort in
-that.”
-
-They watched him go, and when they were left alone Rouse turned to
-Terence and smiled whimsically.
-
-“Nick, old bird,” said he, “I feel as sick and sorry as a lame dog—but
-there’s something in me that won’t lie down. It keeps on shoving up from
-under my spirits like bubbly under a cork. And if that old buffer comes
-and asks me in the morning how many beans make five, it’s a hundred to
-one I shall make the stupid response: ‘The answer is a lemon.’ I just
-shan’t be able to help myself.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI
- A RISING STAR
-
-
-In the days of his early youth Henry Hope had appeared to those about
-him to be an old, old man dressed in an Eton suit. His large rimmed
-spectacles had lent him the air of a scholastic genius, and he was, by
-habit, pitifully pedantic. In addition he was dignified, and
-self-reliant to a fault, and he had no ability of any kind at games. But
-at least his heart was in the right place. More than once his meditative
-resource had helped Terence and Rouse out of a sad scrape, and
-accordingly he was their beloved friend.
-
-In the course of the last few years he had been growing up—lengthways,
-that is to say—and Henry Hope had changed a little from the Henry Hope
-of old. In the atmosphere of Harley he had grown rather less of a hermit
-and rather more of a boy. He had opened out. He was still totally devoid
-of a sense of humour, and he still used grave words both in season and
-out, but he had become, in one sense at least, human. He was a devotee
-of the cinema. Also he had decided what he was going to be. He was going
-to be an actor in film plays. He knew one such actor already, and it
-seemed to him that this would provide him with an effective introduction
-into the right clique when the time came. Toby Nicholson was the actor.
-At one period of his life Toby had turned an honest penny by risking his
-life before the camera on selected days, and though this was, for
-obvious reasons, not the line of business in which Henry proposed to
-make his mark, it was at all events good to feel that he was not totally
-unacquainted with the way things were done.
-
-Henry, as a matter of fact, was going to be one of those men to whom the
-ideal way of getting into a room is by way of the skylight, and the
-ideal way of getting out is through the window (though not, of course,
-by being pushed through).
-
-It was conceivable that on occasion Henry might consent to act the part
-of a detective. Generally speaking, however, he would be the man who
-delays the play all the way through by persistently getting into
-predicaments through sheer stupidity merely for the sake of showing how
-to get out of them again.
-
-He would be a man of rapid movement; he would look always to right and
-left before moving to his front; he would look all round a room before
-observing a prostrate body at his feet; he would invariably get his eye
-caught on a keyhole before entering a room. He would point out the way
-to a friend less keen of vision than he before walking down a long
-straight road; and at times he would be seen swaying against a wall with
-half-closed eyes whilst those who had stolen his all made their escape
-in their own time through an old-world garden, stopping to pick flowers
-as they went.
-
-Above all there would be one dramatic performance which would constitute
-his star part. It would consist in a series of scenes turned rapidly
-upon the reel, each displaying a long wide road, and down these ways
-Henry would be featured running as never man ran before. His arms would
-be going like pistons. He would have lost his hat. (This, however, he
-would find again in time to doff it as indicating that somebody was
-dead.) Ever and again he would appear to be exhausted. To the lay mind
-it would seem impossible for any living man to maintain such a
-consistent speed down all those different roads. Nevertheless Henry
-would do it. He would do it on different days, of course, but that would
-not be realised; and he would, moreover, be running to save a soul. This
-would be known to the audience, who would cheer his attractive likeness
-every time it appeared at the far end of another road. He conceived that
-the energy with which he would run would immediately lift him into the
-front rank of famous players. He had once had a nightmare in which he
-had slipped up and fallen on the back of his neck whilst at the top of
-his speed, thus leading the audience to suppose that his performance was
-a comic one ... and once he had dreamt that owing to a slight stitch he
-had not been able to run up to form and had arrived twenty-five minutes
-too late to effect the rescue, for which he had been kicked by the man
-who had been turning the film all the time in expectation of his
-arrival; but he had never mentioned these incidents to anyone at all.
-
-He practised a good deal, and it may almost be said that throughout the
-period covered by this tale he lived under the perpetual hallucination
-that all his movements were recorded by a camera for reproduction before
-a gaping audience.
-
-He was under this impression when he shepherded Bobbie Carr and his own
-close friend, Hallowell, out of the new study. He made the movement a
-masterpiece of play without words, and when they were safely out of
-earshot in the corridor he drew himself up with a touch of
-characteristic dignity and spoke his only sentence. He did not believe
-in speaking any more than was really necessary at these times—no more,
-in fact, than it would be necessary for a film to speak, and always in
-the same crisp manner in which the film habitually does speak.
-
-His voice was deep down in his boots.
-
-“Something amiss,” said he. Then he was done.
-
-As a matter of fact even this was not essential. If, after all his
-painstaking by-play, those present had still not tumbled to the fact
-that something was amiss, nothing would have ever made them understand.
-In reality they had both understood long ago and were now only hanging
-about in case there was any more of Henry’s performance to come, which,
-by going, they would miss.
-
-Henry, however, had finished for the moment, so Bobbie Carr sighed and
-turned away.
-
-“I’d better go and find Coles,” said he.
-
-Hallowell looked at him.
-
-“It’s a pity you’ve got to fag for Coles. Still, it may not be for long.
-How old are you—about fifteen, aren’t you? You’ll soon be done with
-fagging.”
-
-There was silence for a moment. Carr could still not make up his mind
-whether to admit that he knew quite a lot about Coles already, and
-whilst he waited, half turning away, Henry drew near. He had had a rough
-term of fagging himself when he had first entered Harley, and he guessed
-what Carr must feel like with so many expressions of bad will towards
-Coles coming to his notice in such a short space of time. He reached out
-a hand and tapped the boy kindly on the shoulder, then he peered at him
-with an old-fashioned sincerity over the tops of his glasses and spoke
-in a slow and sepulchral tone.
-
-“He’s in the First Fifteen,” said he. “But with us he cuts no ice.” He
-paused and nodded his head impressively. “Say, kid,” he added, “we’re
-wise to that guy.”
-
-Such words if spoken in church by a venerable bishop would, one
-supposes, sound odd. Spoken by Henry they sounded more than odd. They
-sounded rotten. Trying to speak American slang was about the most inept
-thing Henry did. The result was not only incongruous, it went absolutely
-flat. Without having heard him it would be impossible to imagine how
-dull those crisp words really sounded. He did not even speak them
-through his nose. It was awful.
-
-Nevertheless Bobbie Carr was comforted. There was something in Henry
-that inspired trust. There always had been. And in that moment Bobbie
-Carr decided that he liked him very much.
-
-“I’ll come along with you,” said Henry. “I know something about Coles
-and I can put you up to some of his habits. It may be a help to you. He
-may not be in just now, and if he doesn’t want you we can go and have
-another look at our new study before it’s too late.”
-
-“I’ll clear off then,” said Hallowell. “I’ve not done my prep. properly
-yet. See you later.”
-
-He offered them a cheery gesture of farewell, to which Henry, for his
-part, responded by looking at him gravely over the tops of his
-spectacles as if he were some form of peculiar insect.
-
-Then he set off with Bobbie Carr, and as he went he spoke in a deep,
-gruff voice of Coles and the kind of things he did.
-
-“Any time you find yourself up against him,” said he, “you come and tell
-me. Don’t you go doing half the things he’ll want you to. He goes in for
-betting, and he smokes and drinks and borrows money. He’ll want you to
-fall in with his ideas and help him out of holes. Don’t you do it. I
-notice Coles a good deal. I see without being seen. That’s rather a gift
-I have got. And if I find that you’re afraid to refuse the things he
-asks you to do I shall be disappointed in you, and then perhaps when you
-really want my help one day I shan’t be inclined to give it. You come to
-me. I can’t punch his head myself but I’m friendly with some who can. In
-fact one of my best chums here is the captain of Rugby football.” He
-wound up on a note of distinct self-congratulation. “Here,” he added,
-“this is his place. You knock on his door and go in. Explain who you are
-and see if he wants to speak to you. I’ll wait out here.”
-
-Bobbie went to the door and knocked. He was a lithe youngster, and even
-Henry could not help noticing the easy grace of his movements. For a
-moment he stood there listening. There was no answer. He knocked again.
-
-“Go in,” said Henry solemnly. “He isn’t there.”
-
-Bobbie opened the door and looked inside. It was perfectly true. The
-room was empty. Henry moved from his position against the wall and came
-up behind him.
-
-“While there’s nobody here, then,” said he, “I’ll show you where he
-keeps his things. Maddock used to have this study and I was Maddock’s
-fag. The teapot’s in that cupboard there. This is where he puts anything
-he’s got to eat, and I expect his footer kit’s in that box.”
-
-The door was suddenly kicked sideways and a heavy step sounded behind
-him.
-
-“Now then,” said Coles. “What are you doing in my study? What do you
-mean by crawling in here? Are you looking for something to pinch?”
-
-Henry turned and glared at him with concentrated fury. Coles took him by
-the collar.
-
-“You get out,” said he.
-
-Then he lifted a leg and planted a boot so severely behind Henry that he
-shot foolishly forward and cannoned into the door. He turned and seemed
-about to speak. Coles gave him no opportunity at all. He lifted his foot
-again, and this time the force of its drive sent Henry clean out of the
-room with one bounce and dropped him against the wall on the far side of
-the corridor. Coles was one of the best dropkicks in the school. Then he
-slammed the door and turned upon Carr.
-
-And the thing that troubled Henry most was not the pain or the
-suddenness of those blows behind him, but the particularly stupid way in
-which he had made his exit from the stage.
-
-Coles stared at Carr for a few moments thoughtfully, then he moved to
-his chair and, sitting down, planted his feet upon the table.
-
-“Well?” said he. “I suppose you’ve come to report?”
-
-“I thought I’d see if you wanted anything.”
-
-“There is something I don’t want,” said Coles, “and that’s your friends.
-I take a pride in my fag. I never expect to have to call for you twice,
-and when I do call for you I don’t want all the riff-raff of the school
-trotting in behind you like the tail of a crocodile. If you’re palling
-up with that fellow Hope you’d better drop him. He makes me feel ill.
-Whenever I see that fellow I want to stamp him into the carpet, and if I
-see you about together it’ll make me angry with you, and then you won’t
-be happy.”
-
-Carr said nothing at all. He just looked at him straightly.
-
-“Do you know,” asked Coles, “why you’ve been made my fag?”
-
-“No,” said Bobbie.
-
-“It’s because I asked for you. And do you know why I asked for you?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“It’s because I’m said to be rather a difficult man to fag for. Young
-fellows like you get a bit tired of me. I want a good deal done and I
-expect my fag to be absolutely trustworthy. If I tell you a thing in
-confidence and I find you split, I simply hit you on the top of the head
-with a book, and your head sings for twenty-four hours. I’ve an idea,
-though, that I shan’t need to hit you much. That’s why I managed to get
-you allotted to me. I think you’ll quite like to fag for me—you’ll know
-that if ever you get to know a secret of mine I’ve got a secret of
-yours, and that’ll keep you quiet, won’t it?”
-
-“How do you mean?”
-
-“Well, you’re ashamed of your father, aren’t you?”
-
-“Ashamed of him?” said Bobbie hotly. “No, I’m not.”
-
-“But you say that you don’t want anyone here to know how he makes his
-living.”
-
-“I promised I wouldn’t say, that’s all. There’s a reason.”
-
-“Precisely,” answered Coles. “And I’m the only one that knows.” He made
-an expressive gesture. “You see what I mean?”
-
-“I suppose you mean you’ll tell.”
-
-“I mean that that would be less trouble than hitting you on the head
-with a book and considerably more effective.”
-
-Bobbie’s face was expressionless.
-
-“That threat,” said Coles frankly, “starts from to-day. Now we
-understand one another.” He looked at the boy fixedly. “You can go,”
-said he. “You come in and see me to-morrow in the luncheon hour.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-“Well,” said Henry, when Bobbie bumped into him standing proudly round a
-corner of the corridor, “what did he say?”
-
-Bobbie shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“Nothing much. I’ve got to go and see him again to-morrow.”
-
-Henry appeared to be deep in thought. At last he lifted his head and
-looked at Bobbie pertly over the tops of his spectacles.
-
-“Did you notice him try to kick me?”
-
-Bobbie’s behaviour was straightway that of a perfect gentleman. He
-glanced at Henry politely.
-
-“Yes,” he answered. “He didn’t get you, did he?”
-
-An immediate change came over Henry. His lips slowly parted in ecstasy.
-He spoke no word. He looked at the new boy instead with the grateful
-light of intense relief shining from his eyes, and from that moment
-their friendship was finally cemented.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII
- A CABINET MEETING
-
-
-There had not even been a rumour what was wrong. The few who knew had
-kept their counsel absolutely. For this reason the Rugger meeting came
-as a mild shock to those gentlemen of high place in the school whose
-privilege it was to attend it. They were the same counsellors who formed
-the house committees, and for certain purposes they were on special
-occasions called together to debate some important matter. Their chief
-duty this term was, of course, the formal election of the school captain
-of football, and this had only just been carried out. Ordinarily after
-this their services were not required. Many of them expected to win
-their own colours, and it was obviously undesirable for them to sit on
-the small executive committee that would judge the merits of rivals.
-Matters pertaining to the First Fifteen, to honours generally, and to
-the organisation of training throughout the school rested, therefore,
-with a trio composed of the captain, the honorary secretary and the
-games master, and of these the captain himself was virtually dictator.
-That was the custom of the school.
-
-House committees were formed on a different basis. Here one found merely
-the senior boys in each house, though as a matter of course many of
-these were also leading lights in school sport. They met together as a
-school committee on almost anything that needed to be discussed: in
-summer to talk cricket, in winter to plan the broad lines of the
-season’s football, and sometimes to debate such matters as the Christmas
-concert or the big cross-country run. To be called together for no
-apparent reason so soon after they had met came, therefore, as a
-surprise to them, and they filed into the big room and sat them down in
-silent dignity. They did not nudge each other or make play with their
-eyebrows to denote their wonder. They had mostly come to the age when it
-seems a great thing to pretend one knows something which the next man
-does not know, and only a man like Toby Nicholson, who knew the type
-peculiarly well, would have read their casual bearing aright. Their
-seeming indifference, the way some whistled softly to themselves, the
-general lack of any evidence of curiosity, denoted an undercurrent that
-meant sensation.
-
-When they were ready Toby rose. He was not at all in love with his task.
-He was, if anything, a little nervous. He could not tell for a few
-moments how the school were going to take it.
-
-“The day before yesterday,” said he, “you met to elect the captain of
-football. We have had to call you together again to-day to elect another
-one. I am sorry to say that the Headmaster does not approve of Rouse as
-your choice.”
-
-There was no buzz. No one sprang to his feet. The silence was deadly. It
-was as clear as day that it was going to take them a few minutes to
-believe it.
-
-Toby gave them those few minutes, and when he judged that it had
-thoroughly got home on them he spoke again.
-
-“The Headmaster wished me to tell you,” he said, “that the captain of
-football must be a senior in the Sixth Form.”
-
-He did not say more. There was really no need to tell them that he must
-also be a boy who wore the cloak of dignity—that one proviso limited
-their choice sufficiently.
-
-“His particular wish is that, if practicable, the captain of football
-should be the captain of the school,” said Toby. Then he made a gesture
-of finality and sat down.
-
-There came now a slight shuffling of feet. The counsellors were turning
-one to the other; there was hoarse whispering, occasional sharp sounds
-of absolute amazement.
-
-At last the captain of the school rose in his seat. He did not play
-football at all. He made up verses that didn’t rhyme and secured good
-prizes for them. Nevertheless he was a good fellow, and it was clear
-that the news that he might be expected to lead the Fifteen on to the
-field in cap and gown had had a pronounced effect upon him. He was
-really quite shaken up.
-
-“But does the Headmaster know the practice at this school, sir?”
-
-“Oh yes,” said Toby. “He knows what it always has been ever since I can
-remember. I’ve done all that a man could do to persuade him to respect
-our unwritten laws. The Headmaster, however, is a man of very strong
-views. He is determined on a new method.”
-
-“Well, I’m blowed,” said the captain of the school, and sat down with a
-jerk.
-
-Next moment Rouse had half risen from his chair, and, in the awkward
-manner of a boy whose lifelong nightmare has always been that he might
-one day be called upon for a speech, turned towards the assembly.
-
-“It’s quite true,” said he a little huskily. “I’ve been rather prominent
-in doing the very things the new Head hates most ever since he came, it
-seems. Mr Nicholson’s done his best to keep me—but it’s no use. I’m
-terribly sorry. It seems a sort of disgrace to the school. They’ll get
-to hear about this at other places—Rainhurst and Wilton—and they’ll
-guess I’m a general rotter and wonder why I haven’t been sacked. I——”
-
-He stopped and seemed to be searching for the right words. Few of those
-present had ever heard Rouse speak in such grave tones before, and it
-did more than anything else to bring home the truth to them. There was a
-sympathetic silence.
-
-“There’s nothing else to be said. I resign, of course. Pointon doesn’t
-play football. It’s useless to propose him. Perhaps, though, once the
-Head gets rid of me he may listen to reason more. I think that if you
-elect a fellow who is at least in the Sixth you might get his approval.
-So I propose Smythe.”
-
-He slowly subsided into his chair. There came a growing murmur of angry
-distress. Suddenly people noticed that in the far corner of the room
-Smythe was already upon his feet.
-
-“There’s no need to waste time considering that at all,” he said, with
-considerable vexation. “At the other meeting some misguided ass got up
-on his hind legs and proposed me. I said then that whilst Rouse was at
-the school there could be no other skipper worth considering at all, and
-you all cheered. I say that again now. If Rouse isn’t good enough for
-this job you can put me down as not playing Rugger at all, let alone
-being captain of it. I was the first to congratulate Rouse the other
-day, and I’m the first now to propose that we refuse to accept his
-resignation.”
-
-His lips had spoken the words that had been on the tip of every other
-fellow’s tongue. None other could have so aptly expressed their
-feelings.
-
-There was a chorus of vehement approval. In the fierce clapping and the
-clatter of feet on the floor Rouse had a quick insight into the depth of
-their inexplicable affection for him. He was honestly astounded. He was
-also considerably upset. He could not face saying any more. He just sat
-where he was and pretended to be taking no notice, but his acting was
-not very good. For one thing, his face was brick-red.
-
-At last Toby rose stolidly to his feet. He began to hate his position
-more and more. He was very human and he was heart and soul with them in
-their feelings. It was the hardest thing of all to make of himself
-counsel for the defence, and the long and the short of it was that he
-could not do it. If he managed to get through this meeting without a
-vote of detestation being passed upon Dr Roe it would to his mind be a
-notable achievement. He was conscious that as a master he had a certain
-disciplinary responsibility, but he was very unhappy about it. There was
-too much of the old boy in Toby.
-
-He looked round them sadly. At last he spoke.
-
-“It’s a very bad business,” said he. “I think as you do—that Rouse
-couldn’t be bettered for this job.... The only other point to consider
-is how the school will be affected if you refuse to accept his
-resignation. The Head will not give in to you. If it comes to a fight he
-has every advantage. It may mean that you ruin our fixture list for the
-season.... It will certainly draw attention to an incident that we might
-otherwise keep fairly quiet so as to prevent the wrong construction
-being put upon it. If we’re to have a good season it’s essential to get
-started at once. The team for next Saturday ought to be chosen to-day so
-as to start practice. If you decide against the Head you may cause delay
-that we shall never be able to make up.”
-
-“Well, we’re not going to give up Rouse, sir,” cried someone in sheer
-indignation.
-
-Toby turned to him.
-
-“That isn’t the point,” he said. “I’m absolutely with you. I believe
-that without Rouse to lead the Fifteen we shan’t have a real good
-season. But we mustn’t make it too hard for the man who sooner or later
-may have to take it on. I’ve talked to the Head till I couldn’t talk any
-more. It made no shadow of difference at all. The Head will never give
-in. His mind’s made up, and although it’s true that we oughtn’t to give
-up Rouse, I shouldn’t be doing my duty if I didn’t make you see both
-sides of the picture. It’s for you to decide; I’m only just telling you
-how matters stand in case you forget.”
-
-He sat down wretchedly.
-
-Next moment Rouse turned to them again. He did not get up. There was
-something too urgent about the atmosphere for much formality.
-
-“It’s quite right,” said he. “You mustn’t muck up the season. I’ve
-resigned. That’s all there is to it. Go on. Don’t be boobs. I propose
-Nicholson. The Head can’t refuse him. He’s one of the top six in the
-school.”
-
-All heads turned slowly to regard Terence as if half in doubt and half
-in hope. Terence stiffened like a man electrocuted and shot to his feet.
-
-“No!” he shouted. “It’s all rot! Rouse has got to be captain. He was
-made for it. It’s no use going on proposing other people. We’ve elected
-Rouse.”
-
-There was an appreciative silence, then an animated discussion, and
-amidst it a young man rose from his seat and lifted his hand for
-silence.
-
-“There’s only one other old colour who’s in the Sixth,” said he. “Coles.
-So I’ll propose him.”
-
-He sat down as if he had done a piece of useful work by thoroughly
-clearing the decks for real debate. What followed, therefore, came as a
-very painful surprise to him. Others were merely disgusted. He was
-honestly hurt. To suppose that he had spoken seriously was the most
-insulting thought anyone could have had of him.
-
-Coles had arisen and could be seen looking earnestly upon them. His
-voice was unmistakably clear though he spoke quietly, and he made one
-modest gesture with his hand. He had not so much as waited to see the
-result of the proposal, had not given anyone even a chance to second it.
-
-“If it’s for the good of the school,” said he, “of course I’ll do my
-best.... It’s just as you like. Whatever seems right to you fellows....”
-There was a cutting silence; not so much as a movement helped him. He
-remained standing. He looked round hopefully. “Whatever Mr Nicholson
-thinks best,” said he. “If you propose me—I’ll certainly——”
-
-At last somebody spoke. It was difficult to identify the gentleman, but
-from the murmur of approval that followed it was clear that he voiced
-the opinion of all those present.
-
-The voice said: “Sit down, you ass.”
-
-With a sudden flush of acute self-consciousness Coles disappeared from
-view.
-
-Then there rose up one other spokesman.
-
-It was the captain of the school. He brought a touch of dignity into the
-atmosphere that was not unwelcome.
-
-“Well, I’ve listened to what’s been said,” he told them, “and it hasn’t
-taken me long to form my opinion. I’m no footer man—but I’ve got the
-interests of the school as much at heart as any of you. And I know
-Rouse. I’m no fighting man either. I like peace and quiet. Arguments I
-can’t bear. But I’m afraid a fight and an argument will have to come.
-The soundest proposal made has been Smythe’s. He says we refuse to
-accept Rouse’s resignation, and I think you’d like the Head to know that
-as captain of the school I second that.”
-
-There was a pleasant and concerted cheer. He sat down with a slight
-flush. Then hand-clapping broke out. It grew loud and continuous. Next
-they began to shout. Some got on to their feet and waved in Rouse’s
-direction excitedly. The shouting grew into a thunderous ovation. Here
-and there earnest students like the captain of the school found
-themselves jumping foolishly on to forms and falling off again in the
-hopes of getting a really good view of Rouse. It grew louder and more
-emphatic. The very walls were trembling with enthusiasm. Rouse stood up
-and tried to stop them. They went on. It may be that they rather hoped
-the new Head would hear them and ask what it was all about. Toby made no
-effort to exercise control. As a matter of fact he was smiling. It
-seemed to him just as well to let them have it out. Eventually it began
-to die down a little. Fellows were forcing their way towards Rouse and
-thumping him on the back. Others were reaching for his hand. And above
-all they were still shouting his name delightedly aloud and making
-gestures of eternal allegiance to their chosen.
-
-In the end it was Smythe who got a hearing first.
-
-“It may be as well,” said he, “to decide on the form in which this
-decision ought to be communicated to the Head. What about a deputation?”
-
-“The usual way,” said Toby cheerfully, “would be for me to go along and
-tell him.”
-
-They looked at one another. The point was worth considering.
-
-“There are some matters,” said Toby, “that might be better discussed in
-my absence, of course.” He paused. “If I were to go along and see the
-Head now you fellows might be talking it over between you, and then if a
-deputation should be necessary you’d know whom to select to form it.”
-
-He waited a moment. There was the loud sound that indicated a crowd’s
-approval.
-
-“Well, sir,” said the captain of the school, rising yet again, “that
-seems the best thing to do. Would you mind describing to the Headmaster
-the exact manner in which the proposal to refuse his resignation has
-been carried, and why it is so strongly supported? I think he ought to
-know that.”
-
-“I think so myself,” said Toby. “I shall certainly tell him.”
-
-He moved slowly down the room. There was a pleasant smile upon his face.
-It was as if a prophecy of his had come true.
-
-The counsellors rose as he passed down their midst, and seeing how
-pleasantly he smiled they slowly answered, and one by one they smiled
-back at him as he went upon his errand.
-
-The moment he had really gone they turned as one man to Rouse.
-
-“But why is it?” they demanded. “What’s gone wrong? He’s only just come
-here. How on earth does he know who’s the best captain?”
-
-Rouse shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“It’s that idiotic little fat boy,” said Terence. “He’s the cause of all
-the trouble. He went and laid evidence against Rouse as a bully and the
-Head believes him, and then he came over to see how Rouse behaved in his
-natural haunts and Rouse was singing a part-song with the house porter.
-He smote the Head with the leg of a table, too—just to emphasise the
-fact.”
-
-“What fat boy?” demanded Pointon. “Why haven’t they got hold of the fat
-boy then? Why don’t they bump him? Let’s go and fetch the fat boy and
-make him go to the Head and withdraw what he said.”
-
-“It’s no use,” said Terence. “Toby went and tackled him himself and
-asked him whether he knew what he’d done. And eventually he said that
-he’d go to the Head and try to make it all right. So he did, the fool;
-and when the Head saw Toby again he said the little hero had been to him
-and asked that Rouse should not be punished in any way, because he was
-afraid that if he were fellows would blame _him_ and call him a sneak.
-So the Head said it was clear that somebody had been getting at him, and
-demanded that Toby should find out who it was and bring him up before
-him. Toby said that the only chap who’d got at him was he himself, and
-explained the true story of what had happened; and he also said that
-another new kid called Carr was a witness, and that I was too. But the
-Head wouldn’t believe it. He said there was too much hanky-panky going
-on. He said that at Wilton he had the reputation of being an infallible
-judge of character and that he knew as well as he knew his own name that
-Rouse had been bullying the kid. As a matter of fact that was only one
-point. He was looking at the new-comers’ footer, and he says Rouse made
-a dead set for the same boy ... and then, of course, he came across to
-the house to see what Rouse did when he thought nobody was looking, and
-that’s how he found him.”
-
-He made an expressive gesture and was silent.
-
-“Look here,” said Pointon, “be more explanatory. _What_ was the
-bullying? What have witnesses got to do with it?”
-
-Terence explained.
-
-“But, surely,” said Pointon, “when the Head knows the truth he can’t
-refuse to believe it.... That’s all bosh.”
-
-“What Toby says,” pointed out Terence, “is that what we’ve got up
-against us now isn’t a charge against Rouse that’s got to be disproved
-at all. It’s the Head’s own character. The Head is a man who’ll never
-admit himself in the wrong. Even if there’s nothing else behind it,
-that’s enough. He’s taken a definite line and now he won’t budge from it
-for fear of his reputation. He’s an idea we may try to make him alter
-his mind and he’s determined he won’t. Whatever evidence we could bring
-up now wouldn’t make any difference at all.”
-
-Pointon grew annoyed. He was a studious boy with rather definite
-opinions of his own and a particularly strong sense of justice.
-
-“That’s preposterous,” said he. “No man’s got a right to do a thing like
-that. He’s not a dictator. We’ve always elected our own captains at
-games.... This is all rot. Do you mean to say he’s going to make Rouse
-suffer like this and ruin the school’s footer season just because he
-hasn’t the decency to admit himself in the wrong?”
-
-“That’s Toby’s idea,” said Terence, “and Toby isn’t often wrong over a
-thing like this. He’s done a lot of arguing with the Head too ... and
-none of us have really spoken to him at all in private. Toby’s probably
-right.”
-
-“In that case,” said Pointon, “we _shall_ require a deputation and we’d
-better decide now who it shall be.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-It was twenty-five minutes before Toby came back, and they saw at once
-that his countenance was grave.
-
-“It’s no use at all,” said he. “The Head’s firm. He says that unless you
-have elected a new captain by six o’clock to-night, he will elect one
-for you, and it may not be one that you expect.”
-
-“Did you ask him to receive a deputation, sir?” said Smythe.
-
-Toby looked at him fixedly.
-
-“No. It was clear that if I did he would refuse. So I decided that if
-there were going to be a deputation at all it had better be an impromptu
-one. And I think I’ll leave that to you.”
-
-Looking at him, they understood: Toby was a master.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII
- THE THUMB-SCREW
-
-
-Coles returned to his study in a very bad temper. There had been one
-precious minute during the meeting when he had found himself suddenly
-thinking:
-
-“My word! Supposing they should elect me!”
-
-Never before had he seriously considered himself captain of Rugby
-football; but now that he did so he found the sensation peculiarly
-delightful. In these fleeting moments he imagined himself the most
-important man in the school, a veritable maker of laws. He pictured the
-favours he would be able to win from other fellows by withholding or
-bestowing colours. He would be respected in the town. He would be able
-to get things on tick. He might even be awarded a money prize by his
-proud father.
-
-All these possibilities had flashed before his mind’s eye whilst other
-names were being suggested. Then that well-meaning but misguided
-individual had risen really and truly to propose his own and the chance
-was altogether too much for him. He had jumped to his feet.... There
-remained now nothing but the memory of being called an ass.
-
-After all, he was the best drop-kick in the school. He could not for the
-life of him see why it should be so very absurd to suppose him captain.
-It is, of course, at such times as this that the close observer may
-discern the subtle difference between one who is instinctively a
-gentleman and one who is not. Coles was not a young man of good taste
-and that’s all there is to it.
-
-At all events he was very angry, and the first butt upon whom he could
-vent his feelings happened to be Bobbie Carr, who was waiting obediently
-outside his study. Coles pounced upon him eagerly. To Bobbie his nose
-looked longer than ever, and more beak-like; his prominent cheek-bones,
-too, were touched with the hectic flush of indignation.
-
-He pointed at Bobbie fiercely.
-
-“What are you doing here? Why are you hanging about outside my study?
-When I want you I call for you. Nothing will annoy me so much as to see
-you when I don’t want you.”
-
-“You told me to come,” said Bobbie mildly.
-
-Coles, who had turned, spun round upon him instantly, his whole
-countenance darkening like the sky before a storm.
-
-“You’d argue, would you? I told you to come, did I? Well, now I tell you
-to _go_, so _GO!_”
-
-He made a threatening gesture towards Bobbie, but as Bobbie did not
-flinch he emitted a sound of utter passion and went noisily into his
-study, slamming the door behind him.
-
-Once inside, he threw himself into a chair and began to brood. And,
-brooding, he came to a sudden decision.
-
-Coles had certain friends, and it was his custom to entertain these
-friends during the early part of each term. Afterwards they, in their
-turn, entertained him. But he liked to be the first to issue an
-invitation. For one thing, this enabled him to cut a dash whilst he
-still had a fair amount of money; and having duly impressed the said
-friends with the way in which he believed in doing things, he was then
-able to enjoy their hospitality on a similarly lavish scale during times
-when he himself was rather hard up, entirely free of cost.
-
-These entertainments were not feeds as feeds are generally understood.
-That is to say, expense and provender were never pooled. The inclusion
-of parcels from home was rather scorned if anything. It would have
-implied that the host was unable to provide a really sumptuous repast
-out of his own pocket, and had had to resort to a means of entertaining
-which is available to every junior. To Coles and his friends this would
-never have done. You will gather that Coles and his friends were snobs
-and you will be correct. But there was something else. They were, in
-addition, fools. None of these repasts was complete without one special
-item. There is no use hiding the fact. The item was drink. Under these
-circumstances it is surprising, of course, that Coles should have
-succeeded in getting into the First Fifteen the previous year. Coles
-was, however, passably clever. Very few in the school knew that he was
-addicted to this particular form of vice, and he took care that very few
-should. He posed as a connoisseur of whisky only to those friends who
-shared it with him. To all appearances he trained conscientiously, and
-he was sufficiently skilful to avoid giving any outward signs that he
-was not always fit. In addition, he indulged in drink only after
-matches, so that on Saturdays he was usually fit enough to pass muster.
-Indeed, whenever he had felt at all off colour he had found it easy
-enough to plead a cold.
-
-The idea came to him now that he would vent his feelings in entertaining
-his friends to a really good evening. It should take place in his study,
-and he would drown his bitterness in fiery spirits flowing from a
-teapot. He did not like whisky, but it was supposed to be a good
-comforter once you had got it down, and besides, it was great to be able
-to take the stuff slightly stronger than the next man.
-
-He came to this decision suddenly, and he reflected only for a few
-moments. He could scarcely have chosen a better night for the party. The
-deputation would be visiting the Head that evening and he expected that
-the school would retire to bed in something of an uproar. There might be
-a house demonstration in favour of Rouse. It was, moreover, very
-unlikely that there would be a Rugby match under present circumstances
-for a full week. Everything was to the good. He began to cheer up. At
-last he went to the door, opened it, and let out a piercing cry.
-
-There was no answer at all. The corridor was absolutely silent.
-
-It was only a very few minutes since he had sent Carr away, and to find
-now that when he really wanted him he had entirely disappeared was more
-than Coles could bear. He choked back a sob of despair and tried again.
-This time he shouted, if possible, more loudly and more angrily. Still
-there was silence. He muttered: “Where is he?” in a sort of stage
-whisper full of threatening significance, almost as if he believed Carr
-might be hiding a few yards away and, hearing him, would come out. He
-was really very like a spoilt child. It is said that walls have ears. If
-so, one must pity the wall which received the full blast of Coles’ next
-cry. Coles meant to attract attention or burst, and to do one or the
-other he richly deserved. As it happens, he attracted the attention of
-Rouse, who appeared round the corner with an expression of extreme
-annoyance.
-
-“Are you ill?” said he. “Do you want help?”
-
-“I want my fag,” snapped Coles. “He was here only a minute ago, the
-jackass.”
-
-“The chances are that your first shout knocked him flat on his face,”
-said Rouse, “and he’s lying round the corner in a fit. It nearly had
-that effect on me. I thought you’d been taken queer. If it’s only your
-fag you want would you mind stopping that unholy row, or else only make
-it at stated times, so that a fellow could know it was coming and be
-ready for it?”
-
-Coles began to go pink and white by turns. He was very nearly losing all
-control of himself. He badly wanted to hit somebody in the eye, and the
-only consideration that kept him from doing so at once was uncertainty
-as to whether it would be altogether a good thing to start on Rouse.
-
-Had he known what had actually happened he might, however, have even
-risked this.
-
-Rouse had met Carr down the corridor on his way back from the meeting
-and had stopped for a minute to speak to him, bent on displaying good
-spirits at all costs in case the boy might already have heard what had
-happened. In the middle of his conversation Coles’ first shout had
-reached their ears, and Bobbie Carr had moved as if to go in answer to
-it. Before he had time to start, however, the second cry had come, and
-Rouse had turned in the direction from which it came almost angrily.
-
-“What’s he making that row for?” said he. “Don’t go. That fellow ought
-to learn how to treat a fag before he has one. You push off. I’ll tell
-him I sent you on an errand. I’ll go and tick him off.”
-
-Bobbie Carr seemed a little uncertain.
-
-“I’d better answer him,” said he at last.
-
-At that moment the third shout reached their ears.
-
-“Listen to that,” said Rouse. “He’s off his head. If you go to him now
-the first thing he’ll do will be to catch you a whack across the face,
-and then I shall have to come in and intervene. It’s hardly fair to
-Coles. You go. I’ll go along and see if I can calm him down by means of
-the honeyed word.”
-
-Eventually Bobbie saw that Rouse meant it and moved slowly away, though,
-if Rouse’s forecast were true, it seemed to him a little like funking.
-
-Rouse looked at Coles now with cool forbearance.
-
-“As a matter of fact,” said he, “I met Carr a short while back, and as
-he’d got nothing to do I sent him on a little errand. You would have
-shouted like that all night and he wouldn’t have heard you. See how
-silly you make yourself.”
-
-Coles made an idiotic gesture.
-
-“Sent him on an errand?” said he. “But Carr’s my fag!”
-
-“Well, well,” said Rouse, “if you have anything you really want doing
-permit me to do it for you. I notice you want your neck washing.”
-
-Coles stepped forward, and leaned towards Rouse until his face was
-barely an inch away from his. Then he spoke through clenched teeth.
-
-“I don’t want any of that,” said he. “Understand, I don’t want it.
-Whether you’re captain of footer or not, I don’t want any of that.” He
-paused. “Otherwise you and I will come to blows. You’ve always thought
-it funny to pull my leg. It’s time it stopped.”
-
-At the time he presumably forgot that he had never failed to avail
-himself of any chance that had presented itself to him of insulting or
-annoying Rouse; nor that on two of the more recent occasions upon which
-Henry Hope had assisted Terence and Rouse out of a hole it had been he
-himself who had been instrumental in getting them into it.
-
-“You rather ask for it,” said Rouse gently. “If you could only see how
-perfectly childish you look in these tempers of yours you’d realise that
-a chap does you a good turn by trying to cure you. One of these days
-you’ll do something in a passion of fury that you’ll be sorry for.”
-
-Coles slowly withdrew his face. He then drew back a step and indicated
-Rouse with a warning finger.
-
-“Take care what you say,” said he darkly. “You be very careful.”
-
-Rouse sighed.
-
-“Before I go,” said he, “there’s one other thing. I’m going to see
-Morley to-day with a view to asking if I can have Carr for my fag and
-give you my own. Ludlow would be rather more suited to your temperament
-than Carr. Ludlow’s had a bit of experience. He’ll know what’s what—if
-you understand me—and Carr won’t. You can hardly have got used to Carr
-yet, so _you_ won’t mind, of course.”
-
-He stopped and looked at the other inquiringly.
-
-“Yes, I do mind,” said Coles. “I object very strongly. I particularly
-asked for Carr.”
-
-“Why did you do that?”
-
-“Because,” said Coles, “if you want to know—Carr’s a personal friend of
-mine. I know his family. That’s why.”
-
-He stood a moment watching the effect of this news and then turned
-abruptly, shot into his study, and flung the door to behind him with a
-resounding crash.
-
-“Exit Coles by door left centre,” whispered Rouse, and turning
-thoughtfully, made off at a dignified pace down the corridor.
-
-Back in his chair, Coles began to reflect anew. He was just a little
-puzzled as to why Rouse should want to take Carr away, but not very.
-Carr had evidently chummed up with Henry Hope, and Henry was a sworn
-ally of the firm of Rouse and Nicholson. So far it was easy to trace the
-course of events. It was merely the working of a clique.
-
-But he was not at all sure whether Carr knew of the suggestion yet. If
-so, he was a bigger fool than he had taken him for. He must know that if
-he went over to the enemy Coles would give away his secret without a
-second thought. Surely he could not be prepared for that.
-
-He considered the matter carefully from all standpoints. At last he
-decided to interrogate Carr himself. This reminded him that Carr had yet
-to be found. He began to grow angry again at once. Carr had got to be
-found. He was going to hold a party and Carr had to go down to the town
-and fetch the necessary goods. Also Carr had to be instructed in his
-behaviour when on guard that evening.
-
-Supposing, though, that Carr _did_ want to go and fag for Rouse?
-
-If he surrendered his only hold over him in a fit of spite he might
-regret it afterwards. No. He must keep Carr’s secret as long as
-possible. Only by having that always over his head would Carr be taught
-true obedience. The secret was a valuable possession. He must prevent
-Carr from going over to Rouse by some other means. The secret ought only
-to be a last resort.
-
-He dipped again into the recesses of his imaginative mind. There must be
-some other way. All he had to do was to find it.
-
-At last he went out like the man in a fairy tale to seek his fortune,
-and his success was appropriately rapid. Evidently, in spite of having
-been called an ass at a Rugger meeting, this was his lucky day. Out on
-the gravel path behind the school he came upon a small group. The group
-was composed of Henry and Carr and the fat boy whose name was Coppin. He
-stood aside for a moment unnoticed and watched what was happening. Henry
-was striking a favourite pose, that of the plain-clothes man
-interrogating a suspect. He had a stiff finger pressed against the fat
-boy’s waistcoat, and his eyes were turned up so as to look over the tops
-of his spectacles at the unhappy Coppin. His height was unimposing
-because he had adopted a crouch in order to place full emphasis behind
-the forefinger with which he was pinning the fat boy down. Bobbie Carr
-had the appearance of an interested spectator more than anything else,
-but he was talking at the time that Coles came upon them, and it was
-clear that he was accusing the fat boy of some misdemeanour.
-
-From the fat boy’s expression too it was clear that he was fairly and
-squarely cornered. Coles tumbled to the position of affairs with
-praiseworthy rapidity. He could identify the fat boy at once from
-Terence’s description at the meeting, and it seemed clear to Coles that
-the other two were accusing him of sneaking, or perhaps even of laying
-false evidence against Rouse. The fat boy’s countenance would have given
-away his guilt if nothing else had.
-
-Coles waited a minute or two in consideration of affairs and then came
-to a quick decision. There was very little time left before afternoon
-school. He must act quickly.
-
-His voice rang out, and Henry jumped hurriedly sideways as if in
-remembrance of recent happenings. Carr came over to him obediently.
-
-“Here,” said Coles, “I’ve been trying to find you for a deuce of a long
-time. Now that I’ve found you try and be intelligent and don’t waste
-time making me say things twice.... I’m in no end of a hurry. Rouse is
-going to ask for you as his fag. Did _you_ get him to do that?”
-
-“No,” said Carr.
-
-“You didn’t? That’s just as well for you. Because you won’t get the
-better of me that way. Very well, then. Understand that if you’re given
-the opportunity, you don’t want to change. D’you get me? If they ask you
-whom you want to fag for, it’s me.”
-
-He paused. Bobbie was looking at him dubiously.
-
-“Why?”
-
-“Why?” repeated Coles. “Because I tell you so. You know why you’d better
-do as I tell you, don’t you?”
-
-Bobbie did not answer. He appeared to be considering the point.
-
-“There’s another thing,” observed Coles, as if to help him decide. “You
-may know that Rouse is fighting tooth and nail to retain the captaincy
-of football. There’s a deputation going to the Head this evening. It’s
-touch and go what happens. Any slight evidence against Rouse or Rouse’s
-clique will make all the difference. Well, you know what I’ve just seen,
-don’t you? I’ve seen you and Henry Hope threatening that little kid
-who’s supposed to have caused all the trouble by splitting on Rouse. You
-know what that means. You’re friendly with Rouse and so is Hope.
-Supposing I go to the Head now and tell him what I’ve seen, which way do
-you think his decision will go? He’s dead nuts on bullying. That’s the
-only thing that’s caused Rouse’s downfall. You see what I mean....
-Trying to get at the kid whom Rouse has been bullying, trying to
-frighten him into saying Rouse never bullied him at all. You get me,
-don’t you?”
-
-Bobbie looked at him in amazement.
-
-“Why—why, you wouldn’t do a thing like that?”
-
-Coles laughed shortly.
-
-“Wouldn’t I? That’s all you know about it. You haven’t summed _me_ up
-very well.” He shook his head. “No,” said he, “I don’t stick at a little
-thing like that. Now, which shall it be? Quick! I told you I was in a
-hurry.... Will you let Rouse in over the captaincy or stick to me?”
-
-Bobbie did not take long to consider. He was new to Public School life
-and there was clearly no time to consult Henry.
-
-“If it’s a question of that, I’ll stick to you.”
-
-Coles smiled pleasantly. “Right,” said he. “Well, don’t forget it. And
-don’t turn round to-morrow and say you won’t. Because now you’ve
-promised there’s plenty of ways of keeping you to your word.”
-
-This was unnecessary. If Bobbie Carr once promised, nothing else was
-necessary to keep him to his word. But perhaps Coles may be excused for
-not appreciating such a point of view as that.
-
-“Now,” said he, with a sigh of relief, “I’m arranging a little party
-to-night to celebrate the new term. It won’t be after lights out or
-anything of that sort, but it’ll be rather a swagger affair, and I want
-you to go down and fetch me up some fodder. I shall give you a
-note—rather a special note—for a little private house just out of the
-town, and you’ll call there for a parcel. It’ll be done up in a
-cardboard box and you’ll be jolly careful—as careful as you know how—not
-to drop it, or anything like that. D’you see?”
-
-Bobbie slowly nodded his head.
-
-“On no account are you to tell anyone else about this,” continued Coles.
-“And you’re to go alone. I’m showing a good deal of trust in you in
-sending you at all. I usually get these things myself for safety, but
-to-night there’s the deputation on and I haven’t had time even to send
-out the invitations yet, so I’ll have to trust to you. You’d better
-remember how you stand with me and play the game. Tell nobody and go
-alone. On no account do you tell that Henry Hope of yours. D’you
-understand that?”
-
-Again Bobbie nodded his head, though this time it was clearly with some
-foreboding of the difficulties ahead.
-
-“You mustn’t even let him guess you’re going out for me at all,
-otherwise he’ll follow you and act the spy. He’s good at that. You must
-take the most absolute care. Otherwise you know what’ll happen. I shall
-report what I’ve just seen and the whole school will know about your
-father.” He reached out a hand and drove home these points with a severe
-clap on Bobbie’s shoulder. “Now you can go,” said he; “and come to me
-immediately after school this afternoon and I’ll give you the note and
-the address you’re to go to.”
-
-He turned with a portentous frown and walked away considerably more
-satisfied than he had been at any time during the day.
-
-To all intents and purposes Henry had vanished. In reality he had not,
-and at last Bobbie discerned him standing gravely beside a clump of ivy
-against the wall.
-
-He did not beckon to Bobbie.
-
-He just looked at him and the movement of his lips seemed to say,
-“Come,” just as it does when people look like that on the film.
-
-Bobbie came slowly and somewhat unhappily.
-
-“In your interests,” said Henry, when he had eventually reached his
-side, “I watched all. It wasn’t eavesdropping, because I couldn’t hear a
-word. But I could see Coles’ face and once I saw yours. I won’t ask you
-to tell me anything at all. Coles has sworn you to secrecy, I’ll bet. I
-could almost see him doing it. So don’t tell me anything you’d rather
-not. Just rest assured that you aren’t in such a hole as you think. I’m
-on your side.
-
-“There’s another thing,” he added, as if on an afterthought, “that you
-may not know, and that Coles may not know—but I happen to have heard
-from a reliable source that Rouse is going to ask for you to be his fag.
-As a matter of fact, it was Terence—Nicholson, that is—who told me. That
-ought to cheer you up!”
-
-He looked at Bobbie happily. Bobbie’s expression never changed. For a
-moment Henry looked decidedly disappointed. But at last a look of
-understanding suddenly came into his eye. And as he looked down at
-Bobbie darkly, his face grew suddenly very old indeed, very old and very
-wise.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX
- A MOLE-HILL AND A MOUNTAIN
-
-
-The new Head had dined well and in due course had retired to that wide
-room of heavy curtains and stained-glass windows wherein the Grey Man
-had always seemed so admirable a Head. Dr Roe did not seem at all in
-keeping with that place of peaceful dignity. This had been one of the
-things that had troubled Toby most. He was too loud of speech, too free
-of gesture, and he had not the upright presence which had been so
-memorable a part of the man whose hair and eyes and clothing had been
-grey.
-
-The new Head had retired to his study that evening much as a dog retires
-to his kennel with a bone. He had taken papers and a long cigar and had
-sat down heavily in the great arm-chair beside the fireplace; then,
-leaning back, he had rested his head against a blue plush cushion, with
-a sigh of deep content. Now his eyes passed slowly round the room,
-taking in previously unnoticed features, and at last came back to the
-fire, where they fixed a sleepy gaze upon some vision in the glowing
-coals. It was a small fire, for summer had scarcely passed, but Dr Roe
-was a lover of fires and he had ordered this especially. He poked it
-with his boot and upset a few cinders into the grate. Finally, he
-considered the papers he had brought with him for perusal. They seemed
-but faintly interesting, and eventually the memory of his dinner proved
-too much: slowly his eyes closed. Within a few moments the new
-Headmaster of Harley was dozing in his chair with nodding head and mouth
-agape.
-
-Now whilst he dozed he had a dream. It was the usual silly sort of dream
-and he found himself cast for the part of king. He was only the king of
-one of those insignificant little states whose troubles form the plot of
-many a comic opera, but that is better than not being a king at all, and
-at all events he was surprisingly well loved. In his dream the whole
-populace were acclaiming him. He was being bombarded with flowers. His
-courtiers (amongst whom might be noticed the school bursar looking very
-natty in red velvet) stood smilingly around him, bowing and waving to
-the swaying crowd gathered before his window. He himself was behaving in
-a kingly but somewhat distant manner, and once when an ornamental basket
-of hollyhocks had caught him a crashing blow between the eyes he had
-shown annoyance. It seemed clear in this dream, however, that sooner or
-later he would have to make a speech, and as he considered himself by no
-means a bad speaker he did not keep the crowd waiting any longer than
-was proper.
-
-That part of his dream in which he rose to his feet with a handful of
-red robe clutched at his hip was extremely lifelike.
-
-He was standing on a balcony looking down upon his people, and he was
-only faintly conscious in his dream that this balcony was the
-window-sill of his present study.
-
-At first the crowd could not restrain their delight at all. Whether this
-was because they had at last got something good at which to aim their
-missiles, or whether they were honestly glad to see him looking so well,
-we cannot judge, but it was a long time before he could obtain a
-hearing. They simply cheered and cheered and cheered. One man even threw
-his hat into the air and delayed proceedings for a long time by
-stubbornly trying to find it again. Eventually the Head’s reception grew
-to such a pitch that something had to be done about it.
-
-So he woke up.
-
-He did so with a jerk, and found himself staring at the school porter,
-who in his turn was staring back at him.
-
-There was an extraordinary noise in progress; well, perhaps hardly a
-noise—the subdued shuffle of feet—the sound of a vast crowd endeavouring
-to move quietly. At first the Head took this to be some part of his
-dream which had not entirely vanished, but it continued, and at last he
-dropped his eyes thoughtfully, looked up again at the porter and said:
-
-“Hammond, _what_ is that noise?”
-
-Hammond, who had loved the Grey Man himself, had received strict
-instructions that he was on no account to answer any question of this
-kind in such words as: “It’s the boys, sir.” The boys he understood
-would be trying their best to pretend they weren’t there. Hammond did
-_his_ best to induce the Head to believe it.
-
-“_What_ noise, sir?” said he.
-
-The Headmaster gazed at him dubiously, and at last decided for reasons
-of his own not to press the point; he was under a strong impression that
-a good part of his dream was obstinately refusing to fade away, and he
-was conscious of a keen desire to move across to the curtains and draw
-them aside. He was prepared to bet with himself that the crowd he had
-seen in his dreams was not so mythical as he had at first supposed. The
-porter, however, gave him no time to secure proof. He had a one-line
-part in the evening’s drama and he spoke it with pride.
-
-His voice was loud and clear, even a little pompous:
-
-“The captain of the school, sir, wishes to speak to you.”
-
-The Head peered at him.
-
-“Who?”
-
-“_The captain of the school_, sir.”
-
-“What does he want?”
-
-Hammond was respectfully patient.
-
-“He wants to see you, sir.”
-
-“To see me? Who? Who does?”
-
-Dr Roe, you see, was still paying only partial attention.
-
-This time Hammond made no answer at all. He merely stared at the Head.
-
-Dr Roe tumbled to it suddenly. He had still been wondering what was
-really happening outside his window, but the sight of the school
-porter’s pitiful stare brought him to his senses abruptly. He waved a
-hand.
-
-“Well, well,” said he, “show him in.”
-
-Hammond went like a rat from a cage.
-
-Next moment the door opened again and Pointon appeared, a tall, studious
-young man considerably impressed with the importance of the occasion.
-
-He was not alone. As he entered, the Head saw a string of young men
-behind him, and he rose to his feet in surprise.
-
-“What is this?”
-
-Pointon spoke in a calm voice. If anything the Head was the more excited
-of the two.
-
-“Some prefects of the school ask to be allowed to speak to you, sir.”
-
-“What is it about?”
-
-The deputation moved into the room, looked round almost instinctively
-for the Grey Man, and then brought their eyes to bear, as one man, upon
-the Head who had taken his place.
-
-“About Rouse, sir,” said Pointon. “They wish me as their spokesman to
-tell you that Rouse is the only fellow they wish to elect as captain of
-football, and they ask you to——”
-
-The Head advanced upon them in growing anger.
-
-“Then it is quite useless,” he replied. “You would have done better not
-to have come. My mind is irrevocably made up. I come from Wilton, and at
-that school they knew me before I left to be a man of iron
-determination. By trying to dissuade me you will only make me more
-resolute. I have made my decision and communicated it to the school. I
-expect you to abide by that decision without a murmur. To come here like
-this is a sign of weakness amongst those whom I expected to set the
-school an example, and it is very displeasing to me.”
-
-“Will you hear us, sir?” said Smythe. “There are some things which we
-think you can’t realise.”
-
-Dr Roe turned upon him irritably.
-
-“No,” said he, “I will not hear you. I have heard more than enough of
-this matter. You are one and all making a mountain out of a mole-hill.
-It is preposterous to suggest that there is only one boy in a great
-Public School like this who is agreeable to you as captain of football.
-If you had only eyes to see, you would understand for yourselves what I
-saw in twenty-four hours and was in time to prevent. Rouse is the one
-boy here who is least suited of any of you for the post. You cannot see
-that for yourselves and it is my duty to guide you; it is my intention
-to do my duty with a will of iron. They knew me at Wilton, and before
-very long you will know me here.” He paused. They were sullenly quiet.
-“Well,” he said, “are you prepared to elect a captain?”
-
-For a moment there was absolute silence.
-
-Pointon turned and looked round his deputation as if for support. At
-last Terence Nicholson spoke.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- “THE HEAD ADVANCED UPON THEM IN GROWING ANGER.”]
-
-“No, sir,” said he; “we are not. You won’t hear us and you don’t
-understand.”
-
-He drew back and fixed Terence with a wrathful glare.
-
-“Mr Nicholson has said everything you could say over and over again.
-There is no scope left for argument at all. I understand that you refuse
-to obey me. If so, you leave the election of a captain entirely in my
-hands. You refuse to elect your own?”
-
-Once again there was silence. And this time the silence was significant.
-
-After Toby’s experience they had not expected a fair hearing; the belief
-that Dr Roe was going to fight them was now a certainty.
-
-The Head turned and moved suddenly towards the window. His curiosity as
-to what was really happening outside would no longer be denied. He
-reached the curtain with outstretched hand and tugged it aside.
-
-And then in the gathering dusk of late evening he saw what he had to
-combat. This little upheaval of school life had once seemed to him
-merely a mole-hill. But he had spoken truly: they had made of it a
-mountain. As far as the eye could reach there stretched a sea of faces
-showing above the clear white of schoolboys’ collars, very silent and
-very still, waiting as if for a signal from within. He stared out upon
-the scene for thirty seconds and at last he turned. Even in this wide
-room the silence was tense. Not one of the deputation seemed to be
-really drawing breath. The new Head faced them sternly, his grim visage
-more than ever like the face of a bloodhound, his spectacles set firmly
-upon the broad bridge of his nose.
-
-“What does that mean?” he said at last. “Why are all those boys out
-there? What do they want?”
-
-Terence stepped forward boldly. There was the joy of battle in his eyes.
-“They want Rouse, sir,” said he. “Every mother’s son amongst them—and
-they are waiting for your answer.”
-
-The Head’s eyes hardened till they shone like steel.
-
-“Very well,” said he. “Then you may make it known at once.” He paused
-and looked at each boy in turn, and at last he told them in slow
-emphatic words how he had planned his answer.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X
- THE WATCHERS
-
-
-Bobbie Carr leaned wearily against the wall with hands thrust deep in
-his pockets and an expression of the most complete dejection.
-
-Except for those deplorable young men who were celebrating their return
-to school behind the closed doors of Coles’ study, he believed that he
-was absolutely alone in the whole of Morley’s. Everybody else had gone.
-In twos and threes and fours they had all passed down the corridor,
-talking in eager whispers and making emphatic gestures of resolve.
-To-night the school were meeting to lodge one last gigantic protest
-against the ways of the new Headmaster in a demonstration that would
-have weight of numbers solidly behind it and a mighty voice with which
-to speak.
-
-And he was left alone in a passage. It was really awful. His futile
-office was to stand about outside that hated study and guard it against
-intruders. What intruders? There was nobody whatever left in the whole
-house to intrude. All he had to do was to kick his heels about and
-pretend to be waiting idiotically for a friend.
-
-All the while the precious minutes were passing. Soon the whole school
-would be gathered outside the Head’s window and he, who had really
-conceived as great an admiration for Rouse as any other boy in the
-school, would not be there. Others would notice his absence and comment
-upon it; there would be a general and a perfectly just vote that he be
-kicked.
-
-It was worse than awful. It was pitiful.
-
-Quite unexpectedly Henry came down the passage, stopped at Coles’ study
-and reached for the doorknob.
-
-Bobbie sprang forward in one excited leap.
-
-“Stop! Hey! Where are you going?”
-
-Henry’s attitude was admirable. His hand never reached the door. In
-point of fact it was never intended to. His arm fell stiffly to his
-side.
-
-Then he looked for a spot suitable for quiet conversation away from the
-door. It was important that if Coles were in that study he should not
-know that he, Henry Hope, was outside.
-
-At last he took Bobbie by the arm and moved down the passage in the
-manner of a novice on roller skates, until they were safely out of
-earshot, when he stopped and placed his hands upon his hips.
-
-“You may not know it,” he began, “but I have been three times to the
-corner of this passage, only to find you each time propping up the
-wall.”
-
-Bobbie gazed at him dully and could offer no reasonable reply.
-
-“Say,” demanded Henry, “what’s Coles ... doing ... in that room?”
-
-“How do you know Coles is in there?”
-
-Henry snapped his finger.
-
-“It’s all right,” he said. “I’ll tell you how things are. I believe
-Coles is up against Rouse. I believe he thinks he’s got a chance of
-being captain himself. That’s what everybody’s saying, anyway. Now Rouse
-asked for you as his fag and it seems you’ve told Morley that you’d
-rather stay with Coles. And what I want to know is, why?”
-
-Bobbie was silent.
-
-“There’s only one thing to it. Somehow or other Coles has got a
-strangle-hold on you.... There’s a mystery in this. Coles told Rouse
-that he knew your family and for that reason he particularly wanted you
-as _his fag_. I know Coles is sick with Rouse; of course, he’s blind
-jealous. He’s sick that he wasn’t asked to form one of the deputation
-to-night too.... But there’s more in it than that. Somehow Coles has got
-you in his grip. I’m going to find out why, and the only way to do that
-is to get a hold on Coles. So—what’s Coles doing in that study?”
-
-“How do you know he’s in there?” demanded Bobbie.
-
-Henry made a gesture of extreme pride.
-
-“Most of this I’ve told you I know because Rouse knows—and Rouse told
-_me_, and, by Gemini! he told the right man. But how did I know Coles
-was in _there_? Well, it’s as plain to me as if it were written up on a
-placard outside the door. Coles is nowhere in the school, and you’ve
-stuck here for the last hour. To prove it I came up as though I were
-going into the room and you wouldn’t let me ... and I say ... does this
-mean he’s not going to help in the hullabaloo at all?”
-
-“I don’t know,” said Bobbie wretchedly.
-
-Henry considered the matter for a moment. At last he turned and seized
-the other by the wrist.
-
-“Very well,” said he, “I’m going to fetch Coles out of it.”
-
-“_Fetch him out?_”
-
-“Certainly.”
-
-“How?”
-
-“By going in.”
-
-“But that won’t fetch him out—unless you mean he’ll chase you.”
-
-“_Chase me?_” Henry’s dignity appeared to be somewhat offended. “Chase
-_me_?” he repeated. “Of course not. I mean to go in and tell him
-Pointon’s waiting for him at the Head’s room. By the time he gets there
-the other chaps will be inside and when Coles says afterwards: ‘Did you
-want me?’ Pointon will say: ‘Of course I did. I want every fellow in the
-school.’ He won’t dare to make a shindy. It’ll look pretty bad if he’s
-noticed to be the only one absent out of Rouse’s house.... And then,” he
-added, “as soon as Coles has gone _you_ can go. Do you get me?”
-
-Bobbie cheered up. He glanced at Henry admiringly.
-
-“Do you mean it?” said he. “But how will you get in?”
-
-“That’s easy. You’ll just go and knock at the door, and when he shouts
-out you’ll say there’s a chap come with a message from Pointon.”
-
-Bobbie considered this plan with sparkling eyes. The greyness of the
-immediate future began to fade swiftly away.
-
-“Go on,” said Henry. “It’s all right. If there’s any difficulty
-afterwards I’ll see Terence and he’ll square it. I’m speaking the truth
-anyway. Pointon does want him. He wants everybody. He said so. I’m just
-going to remind Coles about it, that’s all, only I shall put it a bit
-differently, of course.”
-
-“Supposing he kicks you,” submitted Bobbie. “It might hurt.”
-
-This time Henry looked really annoyed.
-
-“Don’t be so stupid,” said he. “You go and knock at the door.”
-
-Bobbie needed no second bidding. He moved forward and knocked loudly.
-
-“Hullo!” cried Coles. “What is it? Who’s there?”
-
-There was distinct vexation in his voice. For one moment Henry quailed.
-There was no doubt whatever that Coles was the best drop-kick in the
-school.
-
-Next moment Bobbie had explained. There was a dramatic pause. Henry
-trembled with excitement. At last he heard movement inside the study and
-Coles’ voice saying:
-
-“All right, send him in.”
-
-The moment had come. Henry set his teeth, and with one hand at his
-coat-tails surreptitiously ready to protect himself and every nerve
-alert, he walked stiffly to the door and went in.
-
-As he stood there facing Coles and Coles’ cronies he remembered the day
-when he had been a fag himself. Everything was so oddly similar. He
-could just imagine Slade in Coles’ chair and Black standing watchfully
-beside him. Things had not changed very much. History seemed likely to
-repeat itself. He did not know that his eyes looked wide and
-terror-stricken with the strain of nervous tension. He was not really
-afraid. Nobody likes being kicked, of course, but with Henry it was the
-dread uncertainty of not knowing whether he was going to be or not that
-was so upsetting.
-
-Coles rose to his feet.
-
-“Pointon wants _me_?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“Is that all he said ... he just wanted me?”
-
-Henry’s brain was alert.
-
-“People noticed you weren’t there, I think. And it seems he wanted
-everyone. So he wants you.”
-
-Coles suddenly advanced upon him.
-
-“Get out!” he bellowed. “Get out, you frightful garden slug!”
-
-Henry turned and made for the door. He did not really care at the moment
-whether there was any answer to the message or not. All he wanted was to
-get out without running. He strove with all his might to do it. He felt
-the hot breath of the ogre behind him. Every nerve was urging him to
-jump. He would not. He saw the knob of the door with wide protuberant
-eyes, his head craned forward, his hand outstretched to grasp it. He was
-almost through ... then it was too late. He heard the swish of its
-coming, half turned, his hand flew to save him. It was hardly swift
-enough. The great boot thudded against its target and he shot forward in
-a stupid bunch and out into the passage. With the frenzy of utter
-despair he straightened himself in the very nick of time and assumed his
-natural gait. The pain didn’t matter. It was nothing. His only aim was
-to save his dignity, and by the skin of his teeth he did it. The door
-slammed to behind him, and he never so much as jumped.
-
-He moved up the passage and peered at Bobbie over the tops of his
-spectacles.
-
-“I’ve told him.”
-
-There was just a suspicion of a sob in his voice. Bobbie made no
-comment. He looked at Henry Hope admiringly. And at last he said:
-
-“Oh, _WELL DONE_.”
-
-“I won’t stay,” said Henry. “You follow on. I expect they’ll be out in a
-minute. I—I won’t stay.”
-
-With scarcely a pause he went stiffly on his way. Bobbie looked after
-him. And though he may or may not have guessed, he never at all events
-knew how shockingly it had hurt.
-
-He stood for a while, waiting uncertainly, and at last the door opened
-again and Coles and his friends came out. They were talking quietly to
-one another, and Coles turned to him as they passed.
-
-“Here, you can cut. But jolly well be back here as soon as this show’s
-over. D’you understand that?”
-
-Bobbie nodded excitedly and darted away. Henry had kept his word. He’d
-be there to cheer Rouse after all.
-
-Thus, then, the last who were in Morley’s passed out to join the silent
-watchers who stretched in a vast half-circle before the stained-glass
-windows that hid the deputation and the Head, and the house grew
-strangely still. There was no creak upon the stairs, no voice in any
-room. Every boy had gone.
-
-Yet not quite all.
-
-In an upstairs study one remained. He stood at the window looking out
-into the dark, his shoulders squarely set and his heart throbbing with
-forlorn hope. Every man jack in the school had been a brick to him. It
-might be that they could win the day by strength of numbers. If so he
-believed that they would never have a more ardent captain in any year to
-come than he would be for them this term. But deep in his heart he was
-desperately afraid. The school were strong, but he had an instinctive
-fear that they would not be strong enough to win. So he stood waiting, a
-silent watcher, for the answer that would come.
-
- * * * * *
-
-A group of masters were standing quietly on the flight of wide stone
-steps; at windows and doors porters and servants of the school, their
-faces round with wonder, had gradually appeared; but the wide, stiff
-phalanx that showed the real strength of Harley’s purpose had never
-moved. Six hundred boys were waiting in silent dignity for an answer
-from the Head, and when he had drawn aside the heavy curtains and had
-gazed upon them, no single boy had seemed to move a muscle of his face,
-not even a solitary cough had snapped the magic of their studied
-silence.
-
-So they had waited, and at last their answer was on the way. Under the
-archway the old oak door swung slowly on its hinges. Then Pointon came.
-He moved with a hesitant step, waiting for those behind him, and though
-the watchers had hoped that he would give them some kind of cue he made
-no sign, only at last, with Smythe and Terence at his elbow, and the
-deputation at his heels, he moved towards the crowd.
-
-Every face turned tensely towards him, pale and uplifted in the dusk,
-and seeming to sway this way and that as if for a better view of his
-real expression.
-
-And now a stillness that was even more telling than the utter quiet of
-their waiting settled upon the crowd whilst Pointon climbed on to the
-parapet and looked out over them grimly.
-
-There was no need to lift his hand. Without one gesture his quietly
-steady voice broke that ominous hush, and spoke his message.
-
-“We have been to the Head and we’ve told him that the only fellow we
-mean to have as captain is Rouse. The Head won’t listen to us. We’ve
-tried to make him understand that nobody else will stand for election or
-take on the job, and that whilst Rouse is here nobody else would ever be
-elected. Rouse was made for the job. Even I, who can’t play footer, can
-comprehend a simple fact like that. But the Head can’t. He won’t budge
-from his first decision. And now that he’s seen you all out here he’s
-sent us to tell you what his answer is.” He paused to look round them
-soberly, and still there was no move. “His answer is this. He has a son.
-His son is at Wilton. He says that if we will not elect a captain he
-will elect one for us, so he’s writing to-night to Wilton and his son is
-going to leave and come here. When he arrives he—the Head’s own son—will
-be appointed captain of footer, and I’m to tell you that the first thing
-he will do will be to teach us how to obey.”
-
-He stopped and stood for a moment staring out upon them dully. Then he
-moved and they understood that he was done.
-
-For an incalculable space of time the school stood rooted to the spot,
-incredulous, stiff, mute with stupefaction. Then in one psychological
-second the whole vast crowd had shifted into sudden movement and was
-spreading, fan-like, forward and outwards. There came a swelling roar of
-indignation. The deputation was suddenly swallowed up, and as they
-disappeared the crowd began to find voice, elbowing this way and that,
-in a fever of desperation, whilst over their heads there broke the
-storm-cloud of rebellion.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI
- THE HOLD
-
-
-For just one minute Rouse had stood at his window staring like one
-transfixed into the night, his head a little to one side as if in hopes
-of catching the gist of Pointon’s words. This had been hopeless. The
-distance was too great and the breeze was blowing away from Morley’s. In
-the growing dusk it had even been difficult to distinguish the crowd of
-waiting boys outside the Head’s room sufficiently clearly to gather from
-the sight how things were going.
-
-One sign alone gave him his cue. It was the silence.
-
-He had hoped forlornly for an outburst of fanatical cheering. That would
-have meant that the day was won, that his selection stood, that the
-coming year, in spite of these troublous opening days, would not, after
-all, be lean. No sound whatever came. The hush was ominous. For just
-that minute he stood, a lonely figure, at his open study window. Then
-the answer reached him in a way that was unmistakable.
-
-The night was suddenly broken by a roar of clashing voices, a riotous
-outburst of fierce cries, then the whole assembly was in sudden
-movement. He strained his eyes for a clear sight of what was happening,
-tried all he knew to catch the sense of all the clamour. No set phrase
-reached him. All he could properly distinguish here and there in the
-turmoil was the sound of his own name shouted again and again as if in
-passionate loyalty by many voices that he could not recognise.
-
-But it was evidence enough. The last resort of discipline had failed.
-The school had been irremediably snubbed. And, as he waited, there came
-to him an almost dreaded thought. The school would still not take it. He
-read this as the message of that chaotic shouting. They were coming for
-him. The Head had dragged him from his high estate and the school would
-not lie down that night until they had hoisted him up again, if only to
-see him enthroned upon their shoulders as a little tin god, idolised and
-ten times as strongly established as their captain now than ever before,
-whatever the Head might have to say.
-
-It came to Rouse as a fear.
-
-He imagined himself hatefully in the limelight, a puffed-up and
-imaginary hero without just cause. He had some inkling now as to the
-temper of the school and he knew what it would mean.
-
-He listened again. They were certainly coming towards him. Above the
-lasting din he could still hear his own name shouted ever and again. He
-looked round his study nervously, suddenly spotted the lofty cupboard,
-darted into it and shut the door gingerly behind him.
-
-Two minutes later the clatter of a great stampede was breaking the peace
-of Morley’s. He crouched in his hiding-place and scarcely dared to
-breathe. Soon the forerunners were pounding up the stairs and along the
-passage shouting his name in turn as they came, with a desperate
-affection that would not be denied.
-
-The door of his study flew open and he heard them tumble in one after
-the other, and finally cry the news back to those behind.
-
-“He isn’t here. He’s gone!”
-
-This meant no ending to the uproar. He heard the message passed to those
-on the road outside, in high-pitched voices that clamoured for ideas as
-to where he could be hiding. Then those below, realising that they would
-now be foremost in the search, turned excitedly, scrunching the gravel
-underfoot, and made off towards the school again. But those who were in
-the house intended first to make a proper job of it, while they were
-here, and he heard them running like a pack of hounds into the common
-room, and down to the dining-hall below, whilst all the time they
-shouted for him pleadingly, hoping against vain hope that he would
-answer and produce himself at last.
-
-Then, in the end, they seemed resolved that he was nowhere there, and
-off they set in a stern chase after the body of the hunt, racing across
-the open spaces towards the school again.
-
-He heard the placid tones of Mr Morley feebly remonstrating, then
-threatening angrily, and towards the end entreating with them, but he
-was brushed aside by mere strength of numbers and left in the hall of
-his house shouting mildly after them to show their common-sense and keep
-the peace.
-
-All this Rouse could hear and understand, and when the house seemed
-quiet again he very cautiously opened the cupboard door and stretched
-himself. Next moment he received the surprise of his life. The light was
-suddenly switched on and revealed him. At the same time Terence
-Nicholson spoke.
-
-“Come out,” said he. “Come along out, there’s a good fellow.”
-
-For a fleeting space Rouse was absolutely nonplussed and he could only
-stare. Then he recovered himself with a miraculous effort, brushed his
-clothes with his hand and stepped daintily out of the cupboard.
-
-“Absolutely _NO_ deception,” he observed. “Any gentleman in the audience
-is fully at liberty to come up and examine both the lady _and_ the box.”
-He paused. “Nobody? I thank you, ladies and gentlemen, for your very
-kind attention.” He bowed, paused again, rendered the National Anthem as
-a cornet solo, cried: “Pass out quickly, please!” and finally stepped up
-to Terence, who was regarding him with an affectionate pity and faced
-him defiantly.
-
-“Now, how did you know I was in that cupboard?” said he. “And how on
-earth did you come into this room without my hearing you?”
-
-“Elementary,” said Terence, “my jolly old Dr Watson. I came in with the
-mob. When they ran out again I stayed here and slipped behind the door.
-Nobody missed me, and as soon as they’d cleared off I simply waited for
-you to come out. You see, old boy, there’s always something wrong with
-your schemes. The light from the passage, for example, shone directly
-upon the cupboard door, and it lit up with strange distinctness a tuft
-of your coat which was protruding through the slit between the door and
-the cupboard.”
-
-Rouse regarded his coat critically.
-
-“A nice piece of material, too,” said he. “Try the feel of it, sir.”
-
-Terence smiled grimly.
-
-“As soon as I saw you were _apparently_ not here, though, _I_ of course
-looked towards that cupboard first.”
-
-“Thinking,” said Rouse gently, “to reach yourself a piece of pie so soon
-as the place was clear. I’m inclined to think, young Nicholson, that you
-were as surprised as I was.”
-
-Terence made an abrupt gesture.
-
-“The Head’s given his answer.”
-
-“What is it?”
-
-Terence told him.
-
-“The name of the new Rugger captain,” said he, “is Roe.”
-
-Rouse looked him through and through, the while his expression slowly
-changed from one of puzzled misunderstanding to one of set resignation.
-
-He asked no questions. He just thought it out for himself whilst Terence
-watched him. It was no use saying: “What do you mean?” The words were an
-explanation in themselves. At last, however, he spoke. His face was a
-little drawn and his eyes shone with an almost feverish light, but his
-voice was natural.
-
-“Roe?” said he brightly. “Not _young_ Roe, the son of _old_ Roe?”
-
-Terence nodded.
-
-“Soft Roe, I expect,” continued Rouse, “the son of hard Roe.”
-
-There came a brief silence. Terence was clearly disinclined for mere
-frivolity. He sat down at the table and supported his chin with both
-hands.
-
-Rouse gazed at him fondly.
-
-“What an awful shame it is that all this trouble is about _me_. If only
-you’d been the one, what a difference it would have made now. So far as
-Rugger is concerned I do certainly believe I could have made a real
-success of things, but instead of that you see what’s happening. Within
-twenty-four hours I shall be looked to to lead a revolution. And,” he
-added forcefully, “if you can imagine for one moment the buffoon I
-should look strutting at the head of a mutinous procession in a red
-nightcap, beating the air with a piece of old iron, you can see at once
-how impossible it’s going to be. I tell you frankly, Nick, I shall be no
-good at it at all....” He paused. “If only it had been _you_ all the
-fuss was about, nobody could have preached rebellion from the top of an
-egg-box with greater vehemence than I. No paid agitator could ever be a
-more successful firebrand. I should have thoroughly had my heart in the
-thing. As it is, I’m merely going to feel an unutterable fool from start
-to finish. I’ve taken to blushing already—and any advertisement will
-tell you what an awkward habit that is.” He sighed. “Besides,” he added,
-“what line are we going to adopt? Do you suppose the fellow wants to
-come here? If he’s anything of a man at all he’ll be fed up to the teeth
-at leaving Wilton to come here like this. Supposing he refuses to take
-it on. What then?”
-
-“The Head didn’t speak as though there was any chance of him refusing to
-take it on,” said Terence. “He seems to have him pretty securely under
-his thumb.”
-
-Rouse shook his head gloomily.
-
-“I’d far rather keep out of this. I’m beginning to feel unpleasantly
-like a man trying to get elected for Parliament. Every time I say
-anything decent to a chap I wonder whether he thinks I’m only saying it
-so as to get his vote. I’ve a very strong desire to slide away quietly
-and hide under a leaf.”
-
-“I know,” said Terence; “it isn’t for you to head a revolution. But if
-they need someone to show ’em the way they haven’t got far to look. If
-they want a leader—there’s me. I know you better than anyone else....
-I’m captain of cricket, too, and I know what’s wanted in the fellow that
-skippers the school. That’s why I know what they’ve missed in losing
-you. And this madman—who is he?—a stranger to the school—a miserable
-outcast—whose first week’s work has been to trample down all the school
-traditions and snub six hundred fellows with a snap of his fingers.
-He’ll have to give in. Now that I come to think of it, I shouldn’t be
-surprised if Toby fights on our side himself. All I can say is that if
-he does the new Head’s well beaten from the start.”
-
-“Let’s go out for a stroll,” said Rouse. “No one will go to bed yet
-awhile, and that horde of savages will be coming back after me in a
-minute. We will escape into the night.”
-
-They moved out of the study and down the corridor slowly and in silence.
-There was still an uncanny quiet about the house. Their footsteps echoed
-from end to end of the passage.
-
-“Seems queer, doesn’t it?” said Terence. “Like being at school in
-holiday time.”
-
-But on the floor below they heard voices. They were not distinct but
-they were undoubtedly excited. It seemed that three or four people must
-be debating some dark point behind the closed door of a study. Then
-turning a corner they came unexpectedly upon the figure of Bobbie Carr,
-his back against the wall, his thoughts evidently far away. His eyes
-were fixed absent-mindedly on the study door, and at first he did not
-hear footsteps. Looking up suddenly and noticing who came, he shot into
-an attitude of alertness and watched them uncertainly. They stopped and
-smiled at him.
-
-“Were you responsible for any of that hullabaloo outside?” demanded
-Rouse. “Was that you calling out my name about ten minutes ago?”
-
-“I did cheer a bit,” admitted Bobbie. “Everyone’s looking for you. They
-want to chair you round the school. They’re thinking of burning an
-effigy of the Head too. Only they can’t find anything suitable to burn.”
-
-Terence slowly nodded his head. Next moment he had turned sharply. The
-sound of those high-pitched voices had broken out anew. There was no
-doubt now whence they came. They came from Coles’ study, and one of the
-most prominent amongst them was the voice of Coles. He was addressing
-his friends as “Gentlemen!” with a peculiar frequency; also his voice
-had a froggy croak.
-
-Rouse turned his head and looked queerly at the door, glanced once at
-Terence and finally bent a questioning eye on Bobbie.
-
-“Are you ... waiting for Coles?”
-
-Bobbie looked at them, in turn, in evident distress, and made no answer.
-So they waited a moment, looked once again towards the door, and then
-proceeded thoughtfully upon their way.
-
-Outside Morley’s they turned behind the house and strolled slowly under
-the trees. Here was a point of vantage from which they could dimly see
-the school; the still turbulent ranks of rebels arm-in-arm were
-goose-stepping proudly up and down before the Head’s room, waiting as if
-for news that Rouse had been unearthed, and all at once Terence found
-himself distracted by an unexpected turn of events. It was the sound of
-cautious footsteps on the gravel, and when he saw who was passing he
-laid a hand upon Rouse’s arm and silently drew him round. Then, with a
-finger upon his lips, he pointed with the other hand towards the wall of
-Morley’s.
-
-It was none other than Henry Hope, and he was making his way laboriously
-alongside the wall. Now and again he looked up at the windows and paused
-as if guided by the increasing sounds of revelry that came from the only
-occupied study in all the building.
-
-Neither of the two who watched him as he moved was quite clear what he
-was about, but the sight was exceedingly diverting, and a slow and
-puzzled smile came into Rouse’s countenance.
-
-“It’s Coles he’s after,” whispered Terence, after careful observation.
-“What’s he going to do?”
-
-“Heave a brick at his window, perchance,” said Rouse, hoarse with
-delight. “He’s got an idea that Coles has some mysterious kind of hold
-over that kid Carr, and he says the way to find out what it is is to get
-a hold on Coles. He’s starting by getting a hold on the drain-pipe, you
-see. I hope he won’t let go. I shouldn’t at all like to see our Henry a
-mere splash of vermilion on the gravel path. Fancy having to clean up
-Henry with a spade....”
-
-His voice trailed away into silence.
-
-Slowly, and with considerable difficulty, Henry laboured up the pipe.
-Once he paused and seemed to be grunting out a prayer for the strength
-with which to continue. He looked down dizzily, then up again, and
-finally, after a battle with his nerves, continued the perilous ascent.
-At last he came opposite Coles’ window. He reached out a hand like that
-of some family ghost, clutched the window-ledge, and drew himself up to
-a moderately secure position. The moment had clearly come for the
-dénouement.
-
-Henry was the master-detective in his element. He pulled his cap
-furtively over one eye. Then he raised his hand and rapped three times
-upon the window-pane. There came a sharp silence in the room, and
-afterwards a sudden scuffle over chairs. Evidently Henry was to be
-rewarded. Somebody could be heard coming to the window. Henry gritted
-his teeth. He was going to see inside that room. He was going to get a
-hold on Coles. He became absolutely tense with expectation. Assuredly
-Coles would never dare to push him off the pipe. Coles was not prepared
-to commit a horrid murder. Also his rear was safe from attack. Coles
-could not kick him. The only possibility was that Coles might run out of
-the house and throw pebbles. He was going to risk this. He would have
-seen inside the room anyway.
-
-When at last the blind was slowly lifted, those within sustained a
-terrible shock. Henry had thrust his face against the window so that his
-nose was flatly upturned, hideous and blue, against the glass. The row
-of faces that confronted him, the faces of Coles’ cronies, all slowly
-backed terror-stricken before the alarming apparition, till only the
-face of Coles was left, livid with fury and flushed with spirits flowing
-from a teapot. He slowly pushed up the window, then his face came
-forward telescopically on the end of a long neck until his beak-like
-nose was almost touching Henry’s cheeks.
-
-“You cur,” said Coles, between his clenched teeth. “What—what on earth
-are you doing here?”
-
-Henry quailed. Coles was too terrible for words. Nevertheless he peered
-over the tops of his spectacles resolutely into the study, and at last,
-still trying to be brave, he spoke in a deep voice:
-
-“I wanted to see inside your study. Thank you very much, I’ve seen all I
-want to see.”
-
-Coles lifted his fist to strike, but realising the danger of a blow he
-suddenly altered his mind and adopted a novel form of revenge that had
-never come into Henry’s reckoning.
-
-He called his friends forward.
-
-“You see this,” said he, “a kid here spying—the kid Hope! I want you to
-remember this.” He turned to Henry. “You know what happened to Peeping
-Tom, don’t you? He tried to spy and he was sent blind—blind, I tell you.
-We shall try the effect of that upon you.”
-
-He slowly stretched out his hands till they reached Henry’s face, and
-Henry was powerless to resist. With considerable delight he slowly
-unhooked Henry’s glasses from his ears and withdrew them from Henry’s
-face. He held them in his fingers with an air of fastidious disgust,
-looking at them and at Henry, and in the end he whirled his arm like a
-lasso-king and let them go. They flew into the night, and he heard them
-break on the gravel path into a hundred pieces. Then he shook his fist
-in Henry’s face.
-
-“Now,” said he, “see whatever you like, and when you’re tired slide
-down—and look out for the bump at the bottom.”
-
-He withdrew his head with a wrathful jerk, pulled down the blind again,
-and after a moment Henry heard his voice coming from within again.
-
-“Now, gentlemen,” it was saying, “I think I’ll just go downstairs and
-meet him.”
-
-For a moment Henry hung impotently where he was, a veritable monkey on a
-stick. He looked downwards. He could see nothing. The night was dark,
-and without his glasses he could scarcely distinguish the fingers upon
-his hand. He felt for a grip. At last in utter misery and despair he
-began to slip awkwardly down the pipe, and even as he went he heard
-Coles come out of the house and shout to him:
-
-“You may as well hurry up. The longer you stay there the worse it will
-be for you when you get to the bottom.”
-
-Henry looked down again. He could still distinguish nothing. He could
-only feel his way. As his feet touched the ground Coles would leap upon
-him out of the night. He would never see him coming. He would be unable
-to protect himself in any way. Above all, he would have to stagger to
-bed afterwards without his glasses. He would not even be able to find
-the frames. Only the really short-sighted can understand what misery was
-his just then.
-
-He went down stiffly, hand over hand, trying to keep his lips from
-trembling. At last he felt the gravel under his feet, released his hold
-of the drain-pipe and stood upright. From out the darkness Coles spoke.
-
-“Now,” said he, “you can make ready for the biggest hiding you ever
-had.”
-
-Henry backed against the wall and tried to make out Coles’ expression by
-screwing up his eyes till only little bead points of watery blue were
-showing. It was no good. Coles was merely a vast blur blotting out all
-hope. He felt a large hand upon his collar.
-
-“Now,” said Coles.
-
-And then, dramatically, there came from under the trees a sharp command.
-
-“Let him alone!”
-
-Henry shot to his full height, galvanised into hysterical delight.
-Glasses or no glasses, he knew that for the voice of Rouse.
-
-He was saved.
-
-Coles spun on his heel. Two forms were bearing down upon him out of the
-gloom, and he prepared for battle. He felt brave and bold, if a trifle
-uncertain upon his feet. He shot his cuffs and stretched out both hands
-ready to grasp these intruders in a bear-like hug. His face was flushed
-and excited, his temper was nearing boiling point. After a struggle he
-found his voice.
-
-“Who is that?” he demanded. “Who’s that? Come out and face me here! Come
-out from under those trees, you creepy, crawly spies. Come out into the
-open!”
-
-They came slowly towards him. As they drew near to Coles he recognised
-them suddenly, and his voice cracked in a scream of anger.
-
-“W—what! _YOU!_ Was it _you_ sent this beastly little creature shinning
-up that drain-pipe? He’s spying for _you_, is he? Well, of all the
-rotten, low-down swine! D—d—d’you mean to say——”
-
-“The only thing I mean to say,” said Rouse, “is that I perceive you to
-be tight.”
-
-Coles bounded forward.
-
-His words were not coherent. He only babbled. And when he could babble
-no more he struck out.
-
-“_That’s_ not where I am,” said Rouse. “You want to aim _here_.”
-
-Coles turned dazedly, swinging both fists.
-
-For a while they watched him with keen interest. Finally, as he spun
-round for the fifth time, Terence reached out and pushed him over.
-
-“It’s the cold air doing it,” said Rouse, peering at him distastefully.
-“I should advise you to go in.”
-
-Next moment Coles had scrambled to his feet again and was staring up at
-his window and shouting for assistance.
-
-“Hi! Hi! Come down here. There’s a gang of them and they’re setting
-about me!”
-
-Henry turned wretchedly to Rouse.
-
-“My glasses,” said he. “Did you see them fall? D’you know where they
-are? I should very much like the frames. I’ll have to find the frames.”
-
-Rouse made a few light passes over his hand, drew his cap from his head
-and held it over his outstretched hand. At last he slowly raised it by
-the tassel. The frames lay in his open palm.
-
-“There they are, sir,” said he. “The same that you saw this gentleman
-throw into the audience.... Am I right, sir?”
-
-He turned sharply. There had come a sudden clatter of feet upon the
-stairs of Morley’s and a handful of strangely excited young men were
-tumbling pell-mell out of the door. Nobody had noticed Coles. He
-appeared to have been merely waiting for aid. Yet at the sound of
-approaching friends he took courage again. He fixed Rouse with a watery
-eye, then he leaped viciously upon him from behind. His feet were
-intertwined with Rouse’s legs. There was a short sharp struggle. Next
-moment Rouse was free and had turned, judged his distance, and struck
-accurately and with full force. The blow took Coles on the cheek-bone
-and was altogether too much for him. He threw up his hands, spun
-sideways and fell on his back. And as he lay he moaned softly to
-himself:
-
-“_Come on_, oh, come on, you chaps! They’re all setting about me ... all
-of them.”
-
-The chaps answered with a shout of allegiance and sprang upon his
-assailants. There were four of them, and the first ran into Terence’s
-straight left and recoiled with his hands to his face. The next seized
-Rouse in his arms and, loudly shouting, endeavoured to secure a ju-jitsu
-hold upon his neck. Rouse braced himself, wrenched away an arm and hit
-downwards with all his strength at the other’s chin.
-
-The move was eminently successful, but it was too late. The last members
-of the party had come up, and one had sprung on to his back and was
-bearing him down. The other had almost got him by the ankles when
-Terence came down on top of him with the full weight of his body, and he
-met the gravel with his face.
-
-Then, loud above the scuffling and the angry cries of those upon the
-ground, there sounded a deep-pitched angry bay. It was the sound of
-Henry in distress.
-
-“Oh! Oh! I can’t _see_! I can’t see a _thing_! Who shall I hit? Where
-are they? What shall I do? _I can’t_ see.”
-
-“Well, have a look at the ground then,” shouted an angry young man, and
-with a violent push from the rear sent him headlong on to his face,
-where he lay stiffly still and only bellowed the louder.
-
-“Who shall I hit, Terence, who shall I hit?”
-
-The end came as abruptly as the start. They were suddenly all upon their
-feet and staring at each other.
-
-“What on earth are you playing at?” demanded somebody. “What’s it all
-about anyway?”
-
-“It’s about _them_,” cried Coles, walking forward like a somnambulist.
-“They’re spies.”
-
-He lifted a hand and pointed at them stiffly.
-
-Rouse made a gesture of appeal.
-
-“If you fellows aren’t as bad as he is, take him in. He doesn’t look at
-all nice.”
-
-He saw them looking at one another almost sheepishly, some even dazedly,
-then one of them heaved a sigh and reached out a courteous and helping
-hand towards Coles. The others gathered round. There was a slow and
-stately forward move.... Up the steps they went with their sorry leader,
-and out of sight into the house. Thus Rouse and Terence were left alone,
-each with a friendly hand upon Henry’s shoulder, as out of the darkness
-there came a small and shadowy form, and the weary voice of Bobbie Carr
-was wafted towards them upon the breeze.
-
-“Can I do anything to help?” he was saying. “What is it? Can I do
-anything to help?”
-
-Rouse beckoned to him.
-
-“Yes,” said he, “you can. You can take Brighteyes to bed. He can’t see
-very plainly where he’s going.”
-
-Bobbie came up to Henry and looked at him.
-
-“What’s the matter, Hope?”
-
-“It’s my glasses,” said Henry. “All I’ve got left is the frames.” He
-sighed lugubriously. “It doesn’t matter,” said he. “I’ve got a hold on
-Coles anyway, and it may be very useful.”
-
-It was his farewell. Without another word he suffered himself to be led
-away into the house.
-
-It was after the two who still remained had wandered on, skirting the
-school in order to save Rouse from his friends, that they met Toby. He
-was standing outside Seymour’s, smoking a pipe and talking to the house
-master. He came up to them and strolled side by side along the roadway
-until at last Terence said:
-
-“It means rebellion, and if they want me to, I’m going to lead it.”
-
-For a while Toby spoke no word. Only the smoke curled quietly upwards
-from his pipe.
-
-Eventually he answered:
-
-“Yes, of course. I don’t see how you can do anything else. There isn’t
-much doubt that by a step like this the Head has put himself outside the
-pale. The only thing is what line you ought to take.”
-
-“Why, a rebellion,” said Terence again.
-
-“If by a rebellion you mean making a cock-shy of the school, old son,
-I’m not sure that we shan’t be doing ourselves more harm than good. It
-doesn’t take much imagination to see what that will lead to.
-Sport—work—reputation—everything busted—and over the chaos of it all the
-villain sitting with a cheerful smile, whilst you take note what you’ve
-done for yourselves. We want to keep our dignity. We want to carry on so
-that any outsider who hears of this and can weigh both sides will have
-no doubt who was in the right. And, particularly, we want to fight as
-the Grey Man would have us fight.”
-
-The changed expression on Terence’s face showed that he considered
-himself rebuked by one of the few men from whom he could take a rebuke
-in kindly spirit.
-
-“What do you think we ought to do about it, then?”
-
-“Listen,” said Toby, “and if an Old Boy may be allowed his say I will
-tell you.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-It was two minutes later when Rouse looked up with a start. Whilst he
-had been listening to that philosophical counsel Toby had shrewdly been
-guiding his footsteps towards the school. They had turned a corner, and
-now all three stopped short. They were on top of a vast, impatient
-throng.
-
-“Go to them,” said Toby. “They’ve had their night out and when they’ve
-had you a bit p’r’aps they’ll go to bed without smashing anything. And
-if I were you I should tell them what you’re going to do. Let them into
-the secret. They’ll feel more satisfied then.” He gave Rouse a final pat
-on the back, then slipped away.
-
-For a brief space Rouse stood stock-still. Then through a break in the
-dark veil of the skies the moon flashed her bull’s-eye upon him and he
-stood revealed—just as Terence had discovered him making his exit from
-the cupboard.
-
-There came a loud, delighted bellow from the nearest group and it was
-too late for escape. Rouse darted frantically to a flank, but he was
-held by a high wall and he turned and waited for them helplessly. From
-every possible direction his beloved followers bore down. They closed in
-and would not be denied. There came a scuffle in the dark, then he was
-lifted up and at last he could be seen in his rightful place, perched
-upon the shoulders of those nearest to him and clutching a tuft of hair
-in each hand for support.
-
-A stately concourse formed up on either side and slowly surged forward,
-taking new shape as they ranged themselves formally outside the
-stained-glass windows and broke into song.
-
-They had hoped that the Head would presently appear. No sound that he
-could even hear their chanting of allegiance was forthcoming.
-
-Finally it occurred to them that he might not be there and the next best
-thing was clearly a grand procession round the school.
-
-The bearers turned unsteadily about and moved away.
-
-As they went, to the crashing music of the Harley song, watching them go
-stood Terence, still where Rouse had left him, with a smile of
-satisfaction about his lips.
-
-There also watched the new Headmaster, who, unknown to any, had been
-peering crossly at them with one straining eye through a chink in the
-heavy curtains.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII
- CIRCUMSTANCES HAVE ARISEN
-
-
-Christopher Woolf Roe was painfully surprised. He had arrived at Harley
-by a train previously notified to his father in bold and legible
-handwriting and not a soul had met him. He had not exactly expected an
-ornamental awning over the station exit, but he had presumed that
-somebody of standing in the school would have been waiting upon the
-platform keenly peering into the carriages as the train came in;
-somebody who would escort him to the school and introduce him to its
-leading lights, who would converse with him amiably as they went along
-the highroad, congratulating him repeatedly upon his delightful father.
-
-There had, as a matter of fact, been a suggestion made that he should be
-received by a comb-and-paper band comprised of school prefects who would
-march funereally in front of him all the way from the station to the
-school, but word from Terence Nicholson had gone forth that this would
-not be in keeping with school dignity.
-
-Hence he had come unwelcomed and unsung.
-
-Arrived at the school, he had sought out his father. His father had been
-out. This had put the finishing touch to his complete depression. So
-far, all he knew was that, according to his father’s letter,
-circumstances had arisen which made it advisable that he should come to
-Harley. Another letter to the new Head of Wilton had intimated, possibly
-in more detail, that he should do so as soon as possible, and this had
-turned out to be in three days’ time. But as to the real why and
-wherefore, and as to what the circumstances were he was still completely
-in the dark.
-
-He sought for aid.
-
-The school porter fetched the bursar, who told him that he would be in
-Seymour’s house, and who coldly pointed out the way to him with a
-pencil. Here another porter had shown him to a vacant study. On the way
-there he had, of course, passed any number of boys. Not one solitary
-soul amongst them, from the oldest to the youngest, had paid the
-slightest attention to him. He might have been invisible.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Two hours later he had seen his father and he understood.
-
-“The secretary,” Dr Roe had told him, “is a boy called Smythe.”
-
-He sought Smythe out.
-
-Smythe was sitting in his study hidden behind a book, and his first
-impression when, having said “Come in,” he peered over the top of his
-volume to see who came, was that a stray pig was nosing into the room,
-and he rose with a sweeping gesture intending to drive it out. But as
-seconds passed he was held spellbound. Behind the snout, which was all
-he had first seen, and to either side of it, appeared two little
-pig-like eyes. He also perceived two pouting lips. Finally, when the
-head came properly into view around the door, Smythe became alarmed.
-
-“_Come in!_” he commanded angrily. “Come in, man!”
-
-The visitor entered slowly, with short steps, and when he was
-approximately in the centre of the room he halted.
-
-“I’m Roe,” he observed.
-
-Smythe withstood the shock with the greatest gallantry. All the same, he
-did not extend his hand in a warm welcome. He just looked.
-
-“I understand,” observed the other, “that I am to be captain of football
-here, and that _you_ are secretary.”
-
-He had pointed at Smythe accusingly and now he beamed.
-
-Smythe hastened to correct him.
-
-“A few days ago I _was_,” said he; “but I have just completed my duties,
-and now I have resigned. So far as I know there is _no_ footer secretary
-in this school at present.”
-
-“No secretary! But why not?”
-
-“Because,” said Smythe logically enough, “there is no football.”
-
-“But surely——” said the other. “Why ... I’m _captain_ of football.”
-
-“I believe you are,” responded Smythe; “but my last duty was to scratch
-the whole of our fixtures for the season.”
-
-Roe was visibly shaken.
-
-“Of course,” added Smythe presently, “it’s a rotten position for you.”
-
-“No, no,” replied the new boy. “_I_ don’t mind a bit. We must arrange
-some more fixtures now that _I’ve_ come.”
-
-For a moment Smythe stared at him. Then he turned, reached for his book,
-sat down and commenced to read.
-
-“I must make some notices out,” said Roe. “You must introduce me to the
-team.”
-
-He waited hopefully for an answer. Smythe merely turned over a page.
-
-“Of course,” continued Roe, “when I first heard about this I was only
-told that circumstances had arisen which made it desirable that I should
-leave Wilton.”
-
-Smythe looked up.
-
-“Well, I can tell you now,” said he, “that the circumstances which have
-arisen make it very desirable that you should go back to Wilton as
-speedily as you came.”
-
-“You mean to say, then, that there isn’t going to be any football at
-all?”
-
-“There will be house games only—under the control of the games master—a
-matter of arrangement between the captains of the houses. There will be
-no football which will require the services of a school captain—no
-school matches. And I have resigned.” He paused. “I commend that example
-to you,” he observed.
-
-Next moment he was deep in his book again.
-
-Roe looked miserably round the study.
-
-“Why did he fetch me from Wilton then?”
-
-“Goodness only knows! It may be that he wanted you to see the country.”
-
-“But,” said Roe, “this is all rot. I’ve got definite instructions from
-my father. He told me distinctly that I——”
-
-“You go back to him,” said Smythe, “and make sure that you heard him
-correctly. Tell him what you’ve found out. And if I were you I should
-ask him whether you can’t go back.” He moved across the room and opened
-the door. “This is the way out,” said he.
-
- * * * * *
-
-That evening Smythe recounted this incident to Rouse.
-
-“I also have seen the man,” was the answer. “I made a point of it. I
-went up to him and I said: ‘Bless me, I seem to know your face. Yet you
-haven’t been at this school so long, surely?’ He said: ‘I came to-day.
-My name is Roe.’ I pounced upon him. ‘Roe!’ said I. ‘Go on! Not,’ I
-said, ‘_young_ Roe, the son of old Roe? Why, I know your father as well
-as anything. Your father and I are the best of friends. Many a time have
-I discussed your future with him in his private sanctum over a bowl of
-tea. “The boy,” we have always said, breaking a muffin between us—“the
-boy, now, what will he become?”’ He said: ‘I’ve become captain of
-football,’ but he didn’t seem very pleased about it. So I patted him
-kindly on the shoulder. ‘Ah,’ said I, ‘come now. Not captain of
-football—surely.... Why, this school doesn’t _play_ football.’ ‘What
-does it play, then?’ said he. ‘Spillikins,’ said I. ‘I expect you’re
-captain of that.’”
-
- * * * * *
-
-In accordance with his instructions, Roe reported to his father next
-morning and explained things as well as he could.
-
-“The most decent fellow I’ve met so far,” said he, “is a chap called
-Coles. He’s in the First Fifteen, he tells me, and he does seem to have
-the best interests of the school at heart. He told me a good deal of
-what’s in the wind, too. The fellows were pretty near an open rebellion
-at one time, but it seems that Mr Nicholson, the games master, spoke to
-the chief boys in each house at a meeting, and he’s persuaded them that
-the reputation of the school comes first, and now it seems they’re going
-to try what they call passive resistance. Smythe, who you told me was
-secretary to the team, has resigned, and his last act was to scratch the
-school fixtures for the season. The only football they’re going to play
-is inter-house friendlies. The games master persuaded them that as long
-as they kept up practice for the younger chaps the school wouldn’t
-suffer so much. So the whole school are standing on their dignity, and
-Coles says that the next move’s with us.”
-
-He stopped. So far he had spoken in a sing-song voice that was
-significant of blind obedience to his father; he seemed to have told the
-Head not so much what he as schoolboy thought, as just what he believed
-his father would most like to hear.
-
-Dr Roe clasped his hands and leaned forward over the table.
-
-“Certainly the next move is with us. And for this reason. There can be
-no question of warfare between boys and their Headmaster. They must be
-made to yield to discipline. They may not like my views, but those
-views, right or wrong, whichever they be, will be forced upon them.”
-
-His son ventured to speak again.
-
-“This boy Coles is almost the only chap who has spoken to me decently,
-and he says that, although at the moment the school is solid for Rouse,
-he believes that in about a fortnight’s time they will begin to grow
-tired of being without school rugger and that their present enthusiasm
-will wane. He says that that will be my chance. If I can step into the
-breach _then_ I shall probably get a few boys to join me in starting a
-First Fifteen again—just a few at first—but by degrees more and more
-will turn and side with me. He says that if I play my cards well we
-shall have a proper school team again by half-term, and that only Rouse
-and his closest friends will be missing from it.”
-
-The Head fixed him with a penetrating glance.
-
-“That is this boy’s honest belief?”
-
-Roe nodded his head.
-
-“It’s mine too,” said the Head cleverly.
-
-“There’s one other thing,” continued the son. “Smythe, as I tell you,
-has resigned. There’s no school secretary. I shall have to have one
-because I shan’t know the chaps. Coles pointed that out. He said I
-should need someone to tell me whom to give colours to and all that. He
-says that at present it might be unwise for _his_ name to be mentioned,
-but that as soon as things have settled down a bit and the fellows have
-got used to the idea that I’ve come, and that I mean to stop, they may
-decide to make the best of it, and then he——”
-
-The Head made a sudden noise of keen satisfaction. He nodded his head
-briskly.
-
-“Quite,” said he, “quite. I take his point. You think now that he—he is
-already a member of the school team, you say?—he is a capable
-footballer?”
-
-“Oh yes, he is one of the most senior players here.”
-
-“You think he would be willing to become the secretary?”
-
-The boy blinked his pig-like eyes and smiled.
-
-“It would make the fellow who has resigned look so silly, wouldn’t it,
-if he found we got another one in his place so easily? Smythe was really
-very impertinent to me.”
-
-The Head pursed his lips.
-
-“I will see this boy,” he announced. “Ask him to come and speak to me
-to-morrow.”
-
-Roe nodded. At last he leaned forward dutifully. He shifted awkwardly
-upon his seat.
-
-“I’ve talked it over with Coles ... and we rather hope you might be able
-to move him to my house.... And if you can do it ... as if it were
-compulsory ... so that fellows wouldn’t know he’d asked for it ... he
-thinks that then he and I might get a decent team together in
-Seymour’s.... He has some very good friends in that house ... and if we
-could get up a little excitement by challenging Morley’s, who at present
-have the best Fifteen, to a friendly ... and beat them ... Coles thinks
-it might turn the tide in our favour.”
-
-The Head smiled shrewdly.
-
-There was silence.
-
-“How did you find out all this?” said he. “How did you meet Coles?”
-
-Roe dipped into the recesses of his memory.
-
-“Why, he came up to me ... and held out his hand ... and then he said:
-‘Circumstances have arisen which make you very welcome. Come and have a
-chat in my study.’ That’s how it was.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-The following day Roe appeared in school with the colours tie of the
-Harley First Fifteen knotted around his neck, and the result was
-immediately evident. Rouse and Smythe, the only two in the school who
-were entitled to wear that tie without the formality of winning it back
-for the coming season, were forthwith to be noted wearing the neat black
-tie of Harley’s mourning.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII
- SOMETHING UP HIS SLEEVE
-
-
-One week later that bubbling effervescence which had been the outward
-and visible sign of the school’s unrest had very largely subsided.
-
-Harleyans were once more going in dignity about their ways.
-
-At morning prayers those who knew best the temper of the school looked
-out over the sea of faces, all of which seemed calmly set as if in
-resignation.
-
-It was true that there had been a couple of friendly matches between
-houses, but real enthusiasm was lacking. There was over all that hard
-fact that however well a fellow played he could not win his colours.
-There were not going to be any colours. This hit the rising and
-ambitious youngsters badly.
-
-Roe himself had kept discreetly quiet.
-
-The Head had made no further mention of the matter, except to cause it
-to be known that his own son was Harley’s official Rugger captain.
-
-And through this time of fasting, watching the lean year that had been
-his dread as it came upon the school and gripped it, Rouse bore himself
-blithely, true to himself, his sorrow hidden under a mask of gaiety that
-only deceived the few.
-
-One day Bobbie Carr received a letter, and the next day he went forth
-into the open country and, striking the footpath that led from the
-school into the woods, branched away from it and came upon a stile. Upon
-this stile he settled himself to wait.
-
-He had not to wait long, and this was fortunate, because he was
-continually looking about him in fear lest somebody should come upon him
-waiting there.
-
-At last, looking over the open fields, he saw a distant figure coming
-towards him along the trodden pathway, and he knew it at a glance. He
-jumped up and waved, saw the answering gesture and started forward; then
-suddenly remembered and stopped and looked round dubiously. He was best
-hidden from prying eyes in the corner where he had waited, and so he
-drew back under the trees and possessed himself in patience until at
-last the man had come and he could grip him by the hands.
-
-“Father,” said he.
-
-The man drew him affectionately against the stile, and leaned there in
-real content for a while before he spoke.
-
-“It’s a roundabout way from the station,” he said at last. “Still, I
-know the country. It’s a good meeting-place.”
-
-He paused. There was clearly something else upon his mind—something that
-had made him come; something that Bobbie had read between the lines of
-his letter. He asked at last quietly enough:
-
-“You’ve kept the secret, Bobbie? Nobody’s found out? Nobody knows?”
-
-For the fraction of a second Bobbie hesitated. Then he spared his father
-the truth that need not necessarily be told, and shook his head.
-
-“I’ve told no one, of course.”
-
-The man seemed honestly relieved. He began to ask questions about school
-and the new life; the conversation opened on to a wider field. Time
-passed.
-
-It must have been an hour later that his father at last held out both
-hands, said good-bye abruptly and turned away. Bobbie watched him as he
-went slowly back along the pathway, and for the first time since he had
-been at school he was conscious of a kind of home-sickness. His father
-was so evidently lonely.
-
-He did not turn until the figure on the pathway had passed out of sight,
-and then he did so regretfully and started back to school. And as he
-went his father’s warning drummed in his head: “Just this once and then,
-I think, never again. But until it is over you must promise me that not
-even your best friend here shall know your secret. You can’t understand
-as I can what they would say of you here if they knew. And I may not be
-able to keep my right name out of the papers.”
-
-Those had been his father’s final words. And all the way back to the
-school he kept remembering them.
-
-Outside Morley’s Coles met him. He was carrying a handful of belongings
-and he wore a cunning smile upon his countenance.
-
-“Carr,” said he, “I have something to say to you.”
-
-“Yes,” said Bobbie.
-
-“I’m leaving Morley’s.” He paused. “It’s the Head,” he explained. “For
-some reason or other he wants me in Seymour’s. There’s no help for it.
-I’ll have to go. It’s an order.”
-
-He gazed into the distance. Bobbie’s heart beat quickly with delight. To
-lose Coles would be an unprecedented joy. It was a stroke of luck upon
-which he had never reckoned. He turned to Coles with shining eyes and
-seemed about to thank him cordially for going.
-
-Coles looked down upon him with calculated craft.
-
-“Don’t be under any misapprehension,” said he. “I have explained to the
-Head exactly how things are—and you—are going too.”
-
-Bobbie gaped.
-
-“What? _Explained to him?_ What have you explained?”
-
-“That I know your family, and that you are rather specially entrusted to
-my care. I have told him how anxious I am to have you under my wing, and
-so—he has at last consented to you coming too.”
-
-After a minute’s utter silence he spoke again.
-
-“You don’t seem overjoyed?”
-
-Still Bobbie did not answer.
-
-He was wondering how he would get on without Henry Hope at his side, and
-what Henry would say about him going without a word of protest.
-
-“Anyway,” said the persecutor, “don’t forget our bargain. If there
-should be any talk of you staying behind, if they should ask you, you’ll
-know what to say, won’t you?” He waited a moment, looking at Bobbie
-straightly. “Won’t you?”
-
-“Yes,” said Bobbie at last. “I suppose so.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-It was evening.
-
-Over a study table Terence and Rouse faced one another. Rouse had his
-chin resting in one hand, and his expression was that of a young man
-wrestling with a mighty problem.
-
-“You see,” said he, “Seymour’s have challenged us to a friendly.”
-
-“Who really issued the challenge?”
-
-“That,” admitted Rouse, “I don’t quite know. It appears to have
-originated from Mr Seymour himself, and to have been received by Mr
-Morley—probably in a parchment envelope handed up on a silver salver.”
-
-“Never mind,” said Terence. “Let’s play them.”
-
-“Oh yes, we’ll play them. Only I’m trying to reason out what’s in the
-wind. You see, Roe is in Seymour’s.”
-
-“True. I’d forgotten that.”
-
-“And the chances are that if he wants to captain the side the other
-fellows in Seymour’s will have something to say about it.”
-
-“I suppose they want to play us because we’re the strongest house and
-they rather fancy their weight.”
-
-“One would imagine that was the idea. Only neither Betteridge nor
-Saville seems to know much about it.”
-
-Rouse suddenly leaned forward.
-
-“Nick,” said he, “there’s villainy afoot.”
-
-“Villainy?”
-
-“Yes. I don’t know what that means. It’s a phrase of Henry’s concoction.
-We might get hold of a cheap dictionary and get an interpretation of the
-words.... Anyway, that’s what he says—and it’s impossible to listen to
-Henry for long without coming to the conclusion that there’s something
-in what he says.”
-
-“What is the villainy?”
-
-“Henry is now out on the trail trying to find out. But his judgment
-arises from a variety of facts and certain suspicions.”
-
-He paused and for a while there was silence.
-
-“As a matter of fact,” said Terence, at last, “there’s something on your
-mind, old top, and you may as well tell me what it is.”
-
-Rouse succumbed.
-
-He leaned forward, almost as if grateful for this touching invitation.
-
-“Well, it’s this. Supposing the chaps get tired of all this? Supposing
-an agitator or two start moving about amongst them, saying: ‘Hang it
-all, what does it matter to you or me _who_ the captain is? Let’s get
-our footer’? Supposing the masters get on to them and say: ‘Your
-schooldays are the happiest time of your life and they will never come
-again. Why starve yourselves of all that makes them most worth while
-just because of a silly prejudice?’ You see what I mean? Supposing they
-give in?”
-
-“Well, supposing they do?”
-
-“Nothing,” said Rouse, in a small voice; “only it would make me look
-rather a fool.”
-
-“Also,” said Terence, “in the light of all they’ve said it would show
-that they hadn’t got much respect for the traditions of the school. You
-still don’t understand the temper of the school in the least or you
-wouldn’t talk like that. Why on earth _should_ they give in?”
-
-“Because,” said Rouse, “it’s my belief that there’s somebody at work
-trying to make them. Why,” he demanded, after a moment’s pause, “are the
-Head and his abominable son so suspiciously quiet? Nearly three weeks of
-term have gone. Why are they making no attempt to bring the chaps to
-heel as promised? Soon the headmasters of other schools and the parents
-of some of the fellows here will be writing to the Head to ask why we
-are not playing footer. I tell you they’re sitting quiet because they’re
-waiting for something to happen. I believe Henry’s right. There’s
-villainy afoot.”
-
-He glared at Terence challengingly.
-
-In the following silence there came the sound of footsteps in the
-passage and both looked up. The footsteps were stopping at the study
-door. There came a knock.
-
-“Come in,” said Rouse.
-
-They turned in their chairs to see who came. There was a second’s
-dramatic wait. Then the door moved open and the visitor came in. He
-looked at them over the tops of his spectacles and made slowly for the
-table, and reaching it, he stood there looking first at one and then at
-the other.
-
-“What is it, Henry?” asked Rouse.
-
-“It’s this,” said Henry. “All that I told you is true. This evening
-Coles is moving into Seymour’s. He says that it’s an order from the
-Head.” He stopped and watched the effect of this news upon them. And
-then he said: “All Coles’ friends are in Seymour’s. Of course you know
-that.”
-
-Still they made no comment. They were only looking at each other
-significantly.
-
-Henry made ready to drop his bomb.
-
-“That’s enough,” said he. “It makes a lot of things clear to me. But
-it’s not all. I told you Coles had a hold over that kid Carr. Well,
-Carr’s going over to Seymour’s _with_ him—and he’s very nearly blubbing
-about it. That’s all.”
-
-Rouse had struck the table with his fist. The mystery of the challenge
-was at last transparent to him.
-
-“But ... Carr?” said Terence. “Why? Why Carr? Why’s _he_ going?”
-
-“Because,” said Henry, “Coles says that he was put in his care by Carr’s
-own people, and the Head believes him.”
-
-“Well, what’s _Coles_ going for himself? What’s the idea? Why is it?”
-
-Henry drew himself up. His eyes were blazing behind the round windows of
-his spectacles. He clenched his hands.
-
-“What’s he going for?” said he. “It’s as plain as a pikestaff. He’s
-going to join hands with the enemy. He knows that he hasn’t a chance
-here, in the very house where Rouse is loved most, and so he’s going.
-Coles has got something up his sleeve.”
-
-“Henry,” said Terence, “you may be right. I believe you are. But there’s
-one thing you don’t know.”
-
-“What?” said Henry, as if unable to believe the accusation.
-
-“This. If Coles is reckoning on playing upon the feelings of the chaps
-who want their Rugger, then Smythe has got something up _his_ sleeve
-that’ll knock Coles silly.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV
- THE FIRST ROUND
-
-
-Christopher Woolf Roe was in a painful predicament. Behind him, urging
-him on, he felt the hot breath of impending paternal wrath, and knew
-that if he failed in this, the most important duty his father had ever
-set him, he would be disgraced; as likely as not he would at no far
-distant date be cut off with the proverbial shilling. Already his father
-was growing impatient. The notion that he was having to await the
-school’s pleasure before securing their obedience was to him exceedingly
-displeasing. The exemplary patience he had displayed when first the
-helpfulness of Coles had come before his notice had not proved of an
-abiding nature. Moreover, the gradual attention of outsiders was being
-attracted to the school. The scratching of their fixtures for the season
-had been commented upon, and he felt that unless evidence of the
-successful nature of his handling of this situation were forthcoming
-very shortly his dignity would be seriously endangered. Of all this his
-unhappy son was fully aware, yet he could see before him only the
-adamant forbearance of a school unanimously resolute, and the keen
-dislike in which he was personally held was not at all encouraging.
-
-Altogether things were rotten.
-
-Coles, however, had certainly been exceptionally decent, and his charm
-of manner had weighed a good deal with the Head too. There was comfort
-to be gained from the certainty that Coles knew what was what. Coles was
-a very good fellow. He was very grateful to Coles.
-
-“Leave it to me,” Coles had said, and he had left it to Coles willingly.
-
-Standing in the centre of a small group Coles was striving one afternoon
-to justify this touching confidence. He had spoken at length. Ultimately
-he looked round the solemn countenances of those about him to judge the
-effect of his words. Except upon the faces of his two cronies, who,
-since they were not prominent footballers, were not of great account, he
-could not see one hopeful sign. For the rest there was a stiffly
-decorous silence. At last Saville, who, as one of the only two old
-colours in Seymour’s, had been leaning gracefully against a wall, raised
-his voice.
-
-“The point at issue is this,” he announced. “You can’t get away from the
-fact that the Head has insulted our house by thrusting his son on us
-like this, and we’re very sore. So far we haven’t even had the face to
-turn out a house team at footer simply because we were afraid that Roe
-might want to play. Now some misguided idiot—apparently Seymour
-himself—has gone to Morley in secret and arranged a challenge which
-Morley’s have accepted, and after that it’s clearly up to us to play.
-But we don’t want Roe on the side, and we’re not going to have him.”
-
-“Oh, come,” said Coles, plausibly enough. “Be broad-minded about it. You
-don’t suppose Roe’s very happy about all this, do you? It isn’t a very
-jolly position for a fellow. I’ve had a few chats with him, and I can
-tell you he’d far rather not be here. What’s the use of denying
-ourselves even house Rugger just to spite him out of a game? What’s
-wrong with playing for the house? Most of us are nearly eating our
-hearts out for a game.”
-
-“You haven’t got much to grumble about,” said Saville pertly. “You had
-two games for Morley’s before you came here. And now that I come to
-think of it, why _did_ you come here? Can you tell us that?”
-
-Coles shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“I’ve never been able to find out. But it’s my personal belief that it
-was just an idea of the Head’s to break up what he thought was Rouse’s
-clique.”
-
-“Why didn’t he move Nick, then?”
-
-Coles was unable to reply. He made a little further play with his
-shoulders.
-
-“I’ll tell you why it was,” said Saville. “It was because, having shoved
-his confounded son in here, he wanted to build up a strong house side
-for him to have at his back. And he pounced on you for a start because
-he thought you might be amenable to reason. A little later on he’ll move
-someone else in here, so that eventually Rouse will be left with a dud
-house team, and we in Seymour’s shall have the nucleus of a school
-Fifteen. He thinks we shall be as pleased as Punch about that and keep
-on clapping his son on the back every time we see him.”
-
-Coles shook his head.
-
-“I don’t think that for a minute.”
-
-“Well, I do,” opined Betteridge, from a modest position on the outskirts
-of the group.
-
-Coles turned and looked at him as if pointing him out with his beak-like
-nose.
-
-“And,” added the interrupter, “so do a good many other people.”
-
-“You’re all making a great mistake,” said Coles. “In years to come
-you’ll be sorry you mucked your Rugger like this. Personally I was
-always in favour of Rouse as skipper, and I think that to have brought
-his own son here was a beastly thing for the Head to have done, and so
-does Roe himself. But that’s no reason for cutting off your own nose to
-spite your face. It’s agreed that we don’t lose any dignity by indulging
-in house friendlies, and if we’re going to play a match let’s get out
-our best side. I believe Roe is a very hot forward, and even if we won’t
-let him be captain that’s no reason why the poor blighter shouldn’t have
-a game. He needn’t be skipper.”
-
-“Ah!” said Saville, “that’s just it. He’ll want to be.”
-
-Coles made a sly gesture with his hand.
-
-“You leave it to me. I’ll have a word with him. He’ll quite see your
-point of view. We’ll fix that up all right.”
-
-“We should like him to come on the field walking a modest distance
-behind everybody else,” said Betteridge. “That’s what we should like.
-You might tell him that, will you?”
-
-“You leave that to me,” repeated Coles magnanimously. “He’ll quite see
-the sense of not forcing himself to the front. And I do think it’d be a
-pretty rotten exhibition of sportsmanship to tell him he can’t even play
-on the side at all.”
-
-He paused and looked round them blandly. Nobody responded to his
-glances; every head had turned instead towards the big clock over the
-school which was striking the hour, and next moment the group had
-swiftly dispersed and Coles was left alone looking after them. He was
-himself in no special hurry. As a matter of fact, he had an appointment
-with the house master.
-
-At last he slowly pursed his lips and nodded his head.
-
-They would let Roe play. Half the battle had been won.
-
- * * * * *
-
-It was a day to be appreciated, and in token of the fact the whole of
-Morley’s were ranged along one touch-line and the greater part of
-Seymour’s along the other, whilst sprinkled here and there in the crowd
-were representatives of lesser houses expressing their opinion on this
-game in the detached manner of disinterested onlookers. There were also
-a couple of spare balls being kicked about, and even those who had never
-the patience to watch houses other than their own playing had come
-running to the scene at the prospect of getting in a few kicks
-themselves. After all, in these days good Rugger was rare. Except where
-Morley’s were concerned, there had not been any great zest in the house
-friendlies played to date. It had been too evident that these games
-would not lead to anything.
-
-But a trial of strength between Morley’s and Seymour’s, with the latter
-strengthened by the inclusion of Coles at the expense of the former,
-gave promise of being a little out of the ordinary. Besides Rouse was
-playing on one side, and it was understood that Roe might be discovered
-upon the other. There was a chance of the two meeting.
-
-“Perhaps,” one young man said hopefully, “perhaps Rouse’ll scrag him.”
-
-There came at last a significant stir along the crowded ropes. The
-reason was apparent. Morley’s were coming out.
-
-From the stone steps beside the cloisters from which the chosen of
-Seymour’s would presently appear Coles had stood watching, and now he
-turned suddenly to those below and nodded to them.
-
-“Morley’s have gone out,” said he. “Are we all here?” There was no
-immediate answer. He glanced at the young man beside him. “Come along,
-Roe. We’ll move off.”
-
-The words were scarcely above a whisper, but Roe turned obediently and
-proceeded into the open beside him, seemingly proud and happily at his
-ease. Out on to the gravel path he went, and then quite suddenly he was
-struck by a curious silence behind him, and he turned and cautiously
-looked over his shoulder. Then he understood. The team were huddled in a
-group at the bottom of the steps, staring after him dully, very still
-and very haughty, and not one fellow amongst them all had so much as
-moved his foot.
-
-He reached out nervously and plucked at Coles’ arm.
-
-“I say ... stop ... I say ... they aren’t coming! They haven’t moved!”
-The peculiar stupidity of his position struck him then with force.
-“We’re _all alone_.”
-
-Coles stopped and spun on his heel. Next moment he had darted back down
-the steps, but Roe stood like a derelict pig where he had been left,
-frozen with astonishment, looking first towards the field where Morley’s
-were waiting and then towards the team who wouldn’t come. From every
-possible direction boys were staring at him rudely. He knew the
-horrifying shame of some scene-shifter slow in removing himself from the
-stage and discovered in a ridiculous attitude at the lifting of the
-curtain.
-
-Coles had darted into that flock like an angry shepherd, but they
-stubbornly refused to scatter.
-
-“What is it? Why don’t you come? Morley’s are waiting.” He made an
-impatient gesture. “What’s the trouble?”
-
-Betteridge replied. He was standing with folded arms, Napoleonically,
-outside the changing-room, and he spoke emphatically:
-
-“It’s only a matter of form. But isn’t it usual for the captain of the
-side to go out first?”
-
-“Great Scott, what does it matter? Isn’t the game the thing that counts
-most? As a matter of fact, you may not know it, but the Head’s outside.
-He’s been standing over there in the corner for the last ten minutes and
-he’s waiting to see us come out. The reason Roe went out with me was
-because if he didn’t the Head would be as wild as anything. He’s only
-walking with me so as to satisfy the Head. He doesn’t care twopence
-whether he’s captain of the side or not.”
-
-“And what’s the idea of _you_ going in front?” asked Betteridge, and his
-tone was very cold. “Until to-day the supposition has been that Saville
-was captain of footer in Seymour’s.”
-
-There was a moment’s ominous silence.
-
-Coles stared at him fixedly. At last he answered:
-
-“I see what’s in the wind. A little petty jealousy. As a matter of fact,
-I believe I’m the senior man in the First Fifteen here, and I saw no
-particular need to wait for anyone else to go first. All I wanted was to
-prevent giving the idea that Roe was shoving himself to the front.”
-
-“The understanding was,” said Betteridge, “that Roe was going to walk
-behind. As for you being senior in the First Fifteen, there isn’t any
-First Fifteen! All we’re concerned with here is the house side, and
-Saville happens to be the elected captain.”
-
-“It doesn’t matter a cuss to me,” snapped Coles, “who walks on first. It
-isn’t a confounded Court procession, is it? My idea is to get a game of
-Rugger, and you raving idiots are going the right way to get house
-Rugger stopped altogether by the Head. You can bet your life that if the
-Head sees Roe walking on all alone and behind everybody else, when he’s
-been appointed captain, he’ll have something rather interesting to say
-about it.” He made a sudden angry gesture. His hot temper was rising
-swiftly to the surface. “Personally, I’m going out to the field how I
-like and I’m not going to wait for anyone else to tell me when I’m to
-go, and if by the time I get to the half-way line you chaps are still
-crouching down here, I’ll tell Rouse the match is off.”
-
-“I think he’ll understand that as soon as he sees you walking arm-in-arm
-with Roe,” said Saville, speaking for the first time. “And I rather
-imagine you’ll be chased off the field. It may turn out that these seats
-will be the best after all for watching that part of the show.”
-
-[Illustration:
-
- “‘THE MATCH IS SCRATCHED, SIR,’ SAID HE.”]
-
-“What the deuce do you mean?” cried Coles, in a sudden scream of wrath.
-“Do you mean to say I’m trying to curry favour with the Head?”
-
-“I mean to say,” said Saville, “that it was your idea that Roe should be
-allowed to play, and we agreed on the distinct understanding that he
-wasn’t going to be captain. Now it’s your idea that he should walk in
-front, and I wonder you don’t want to go and sprinkle roses in front of
-him as he goes.”
-
-“It’s for the sake of the game, you utter ass! What do I care who goes
-in front! I want my Rugger.”
-
-“Then you can jolly well have it,” snapped Betteridge. “And you can play
-it in your own backyard.”
-
-Coles turned towards him, and for one moment he looked as if he could
-have jumped down and attacked him with his fists. But there came instead
-a new diversion. Across the steps there swept the shadow of the Head.
-Then he stood magisterially before them, and finally he singled out
-Coles.
-
-“What is the delay?” said he. “What are you waiting for?”
-
-Before Coles could answer Saville had stepped forward.
-
-“The match is scratched, sir,” said he. “I am just going out to
-apologise to Rouse for keeping them waiting so long.”
-
-He ran up the steps and went out into the open. The Head turned and
-stared after him indignantly. His own intended words had been taken out
-of his mouth. He had meant only to ascertain without doubt that this
-scene was on account of his son before himself stepping in and
-forbidding play. He had been forestalled. Saville was trotting towards
-the touch-line. The ranks of expectant onlookers opened and let him
-through. The Head saw Rouse come to meet him, saw him lift his hand and
-rest it upon Saville’s shoulder, watched them as they spoke. Then Rouse
-had turned to those nearest to him and explained. The air became very
-still. Saville had been so clearly the forerunner of sensation. Heads
-were turned towards the unhappy Roe still standing in splendid isolation
-on the gravel path, then back to Saville. Finally all eyes settled upon
-Rouse. He was collecting his team regretfully and there was something in
-his manner that showed how sorry he was that this had happened. Then
-Morley’s were walking off the field.
-
-All this the Head watched with set eyes, and at last he turned again to
-that sullen group at the bottom of the steps, regarded them for a
-moment, then snapped out his dictum:
-
-“Find Mr Nicholson for me, one of you. Tell him that I wish to speak to
-him in my study at once.”
-
-And all the while Coles stood beside the Headmaster, staring dully into
-the distance. For this was the first round and he had lost.
-
-It was Betteridge who found Toby and told him, and with just a nod of
-the head Harley’s games master went sorrowfully along the pathway toward
-the Head’s room and disappeared through the old oak door, whilst the
-crowd who had been expecting a dashing game of Rugby football turned
-almost disconsolately to watch him go. The next five minutes were full
-of the calm that precedes the outburst of a storm. No one so much as
-kicked a football into the air. They could only wait now for the worst,
-knowing that somehow or other the Head was going to hit back.
-
-Those dull five minutes were barely passed before Toby came into sight
-again, walking just as solemnly as before. Saville was moving his way
-and Toby stopped him. His voice was very tense.
-
-“The Head has just told me that after to-day he forbids house
-friendlies, or any football of any kind, until the captain he selected
-is recognised by the school. The fellows have chosen a hunger strike and
-so he intends that it shall be a proper one. He’s hit back with your own
-weapon.” He paused and looked at Saville earnestly. “It’s going to be a
-lean year in earnest now. And I only wish I could see where it’s going
-to end.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV
- THE SAFETY VALVE
-
-
-There is splendour in storm and flood and tempest, and no man regrets
-that now and again in life thunder and lightning spoil some chosen
-holiday. But those long grey days that come in stretches and blot the
-calendar for weeks on end with the dreary misery of heartless and
-unbroken skies are only mean and uninspiring, and they have no single
-use. They are discontented days and they bring with them discontent.
-
-The first thunder-burst of a revolution had come to Harley as a vast
-excitement, and those who had no real part to play in it had stood at
-their windows watching the threatening majesty of its power unfold. But
-days had passed, and with them had departed much of a schoolboy’s first
-intense delight in bold rebellion, so that when the time of cheering and
-singing had gone, and only grey days empty and wearisome remained, a
-sulky discontent slowly wrapped Harley in its mantle. All days were grey
-days. There had been no school Rugger and each week was devoid of
-interest. Saturdays were not holidays but hollow days. The only interest
-that had helped to keep Harleyans awake out of school hours had been
-house friendlies. Now these had gone from their ken. The Head had hit
-straight and hard.
-
-Directly Coles heard the news he smiled again, for he knew that this
-blow would provide a first step towards the school’s collapse. For a
-minute their pride would steady them. Members of the Fifteen who were
-suffering most would set the example, but by degrees fellows would be
-found in favour of giving in. The call of Rugger in their blood would be
-too strong. He and his friends would move quietly amongst these wobblers
-and encourage them in their notions. In this way a reactionary party
-would begin to grow, snowball fashion, each newcomer persuading some
-crony of his own to think with him. Then would come Coles’ chance.
-Fellows would look round for a leader, some bright spirit who could show
-them a way out of their dilemma that would be in keeping with their
-dignity. That bright spark would be forthcoming without delay. Coles
-would be the man of the hour. He was the best drop-kick in the school.
-He was an old colour. He would be their philosopher.
-
-“Let the Head have his way to this extent,” he would say. “Let Roe be
-the official captain. It will be too late to print cards with his name
-on this season, and many outside the school will never know. And I will
-be secretary. I will guide his hand. I will choose the teams. I will
-award the colours. We will end the term gloriously. The Head will think
-he has won, and he will be affable and amenable to reason, but in
-reality we shall be laughing up our sleeves, for the captain of footer
-will have to do just what his secretary tells him.”
-
-Coles was very cautious. He did not allow the fact that time for these
-plans to mature was short to interfere with him. It was not yet
-half-term and he knew that the school’s collapse once started would come
-suddenly. When it came he would be ready. But he must not arouse
-suspicion by attempting to hurry things on their way. He watched from
-afar, and he kept Roe quiet. Only his friends were subtly busying
-themselves with intrigue. And whilst Coles watched and waited, that
-terrible listlessness that is the forerunner of a dry-rot was spreading
-over Harley. Only Morley’s kept up their heads. In Mainwright’s Smythe
-tried to lead his men in the proud path, but it was too much for one
-man. Presently, to stand about at corners and kick one’s heels became a
-habit. Boredom became a plague and the infection spread.
-
-Carr felt it more, perhaps, than any other boy in Seymour’s because he
-was constantly in Coles’ society and was borne down by the shadow of it.
-Football would have been his one great relaxation. Rugger would have
-helped him to throw off the yoke. It would have brought him more into
-touch with fellows like Rouse and Terence Nicholson, whose very presence
-filled a room with optimism.
-
-Henry Hope did not desert him, but he clearly considered him a
-perplexing and unsatisfactory young man, and he seemed to regret his
-silence over the thing that mattered most; nevertheless, he persevered
-daily. The fact that he had at least some kind of hold over Coles, if he
-could only get the opportunity to use it, was, moreover, a considerable
-comfort to him.
-
-These grey days had their effect too upon Saville, and on one of them he
-wandered wretchedly into Rouse’s study and stood like a man with a hump
-on his back before the trio whom he found there.
-
-“Don’t stand there with that weight on your shoulders,” said Rouse.
-“Take it off and put it down in a corner.”
-
-Saville straightened his back bravely.
-
-“It’s the hump,” said he. “It’s enough to give anyone the hump. Things
-are rotten bad.”
-
-He paused as if to let this information sink in. The others did not deny
-it.
-
-Saville sighed. “It’s not so bad for me, or chaps like me. What is so
-frightful is having to stand by and watch this dry-rot setting in
-amongst all the middle school chaps. It’s like watching a lot of
-strikers being starved into submission.”
-
-Rouse glanced at him significantly.
-
-“You think they’ll give in?”
-
-The other hesitated. “No. At the moment I can’t think of any particular
-fellow who’s specially likely to give in, and of course it’s no use just
-one or two giving in, anyway. But you see what I mean. At this very
-moment we’re losing. We asked for this fight and it’s going against us.
-We’re getting more than we’re giving. And that weighs on the chaps’
-minds. They’re just crazy to hit back. It was different before. House
-friendlies were a sort of safety valve. Fellows who were longing for a
-school match could at least put their hearts and souls into a house
-game. You saw how they turned out in the hope of seeing Seymour’s play
-Morley’s. It was pretty nearly pathetic. And in a sense I feel that mine
-is the responsibility. It was because Betteridge and I wouldn’t play
-under that yahoo’s captaincy that house Rugger was stopped. And I can
-tell you I’m precious sorry about it all. We’re being absolutely sat on,
-and the chaps can see it. Isn’t there any way at all of getting a bit of
-our own back? Isn’t there anything we can do?”
-
-Rouse made no answer. He had been listening to Saville attentively, and
-once he had nodded his head in total agreement. Otherwise he had made no
-move. Now he turned to the two young men who were sitting with him, one
-upon the table and one upon the window-sill, and looked at them
-inquiringly. Saville was at a loss. He stared first at Smythe and then
-at Terence Nicholson, and finally at Rouse. On the face of each he
-perceived the same significant expression.
-
-“You may think I’m mad,” said he resentfully, “but it’s perfectly true
-all the same.”
-
-“I know it is, old horse,” said Rouse.
-
-“Then, dash it all,” repeated Saville, “isn’t there anything we can do?”
-
-Still Rouse made no move. He just looked at Saville steadily.
-
-“There is,” said he. “And Smythe has done it. Take a seat!”
-
-“Where?” demanded Saville, looking mournfully round the study.
-
-“Sit on that box. There’s something we want you to know. The safety
-valve of which you spoke has, as you say, gone bust. Let there be no
-panic. Smythe has another up his sleeve. As soon as there are sufficient
-pennies in the hat he will produce it.” He paused. “We told Smythe to
-scratch our fixtures for the season. He obeyed except in one respect. He
-did not scratch the Rainhurst match.”
-
-The effect of these words was remarkable.
-
-Saville rose from his box in the stiff, unnatural manner of a man under
-the influence of hypnotism. Then he lifted his hand and pointed at
-Smythe with an extended forefinger:
-
-“You didn’t?”
-
-“No.”
-
-Saville sat back, and for a little while he leaned against the wall with
-a distant smile, seeming to be recalling some memory of the long ago. At
-last his lips parted and he spoke in a half whisper:
-
-“The Rainhurst match!”
-
-He leaned forward. The other three were looking at him in appreciation.
-
-Smythe began to explain. “I looked ahead and I saw what things would be
-like if the worst came true. My idea was that if, in the end, it had to
-be done, we could scratch that match last of all, but I decided to hang
-on to the fixture. I said nothing to anyone until a fortnight or so ago,
-when the Rainhurst secretary wrote and said that he’d heard we’d been
-scratching a lot of matches, and did our fixture with them still stand.
-Then I consulted Nicholson. And he wanted to ask Rouse. So we all three
-discussed it and I wrote back.”
-
-“And what did you say?”
-
-“I said,” admitted Smythe, “that we should be there.”
-
-The silence was acute. At last Rouse broke it.
-
-“We realised what you are realising now, old sportsman—the danger of a
-rot and the value of a safety valve. You ask what we can do to hit back.
-Well, we voluntarily scratched our fixture list. The Head has gone one
-better and forbidden house games. We shall go one better still. Our
-defiant answer will be the playing of the match of the season. The
-Rainhurst match will come off.”
-
-“How can we do it?”
-
-“It’s not very difficult,” said Terence. “Rainhurst is within cycling
-distance. There is also quite a good service of trains. On the afternoon
-of the second Saturday in the second half of term the First Fifteen will
-simply go to Rainhurst by various secret ways and meet there. The
-Rainhurst team will be on the field and the game will be played. Then we
-shall all find separate ways home. The Head will probably never know.
-Who’s going to miss us?”
-
-“But how about the Rainhurst Head? He’s bound to know what’s the matter
-here. Won’t he smell a rat?”
-
-“Not,” said Smythe, “unless Roe is on the field, and then we should all
-smell one. And we can do that without going to Rainhurst.”
-
-Saville considered the matter from every side. At last he looked up
-again.
-
-“What I mean is, he must know that we’ve scratched all our matches.
-Won’t he wonder a bit? Supposing he writes to the Head and mentions it?”
-
-“Why should he? When their secretary wrote to me the other week he just
-said he’d heard that we’d scratched some of our matches. Was the
-Rainhurst match to stand good? He didn’t say anything about the Head
-asking.”
-
-So at last Saville emitted a hoarse chuckle of delight: “Glory be! What
-a terrific rag! But it can be improved on. Why not form up in a body
-outside the school and march there?”
-
-“So soon as there’s any procession,” put in Rouse, “I always cease to
-take any interest in things. Nothing causes me more suffering than to be
-called upon to process.”
-
-“Besides,” said Terence, “that would only be asking for trouble. Someone
-would be expelled.”
-
-“Also it is too far,” observed Smythe. “The idea is to get there in a
-fit state to play football. We don’t want to reach Rainhurst on our
-hands and knees.”
-
-“It had never occurred to me that this was going to be possible,” said
-Saville. “In my wildest dreams I never imagined anything like this. Have
-you chaps been keeping this to yourselves all this time?”
-
-“A short while ago,” said Rouse, “I was beginning to brood, and so they
-told me. Now it’s you who are beginning to brood, so we’ve told you.
-We’ve been keeping it as a kind of tonic for those who get downhearted.
-The fewer people who know, the safer the secret.”
-
-“Only,” said Terence, “it’s getting near the time now when we ought to
-tell some of the chaps. There ought not to be any harm now in letting
-the news filter through to some of the young ’uns. If they’re getting
-restless it’s just the kind of thing to steady them and keep them
-solid.”
-
-“It’ll be our saving,” said Saville. “If this gets known, the Head’s
-idea of wearing them down hasn’t got an earthly.”
-
-Smythe leaned forward.
-
-“There is one other point. We’ve got to consider what the Head will do
-if he finds out, and I think we can take it he will. The best part of
-the school will go to Rainhurst to see the match and that will give the
-show away.... Then what will he do? Whom will he drop on?”
-
-“Me,” said Rouse, in a meek voice.
-
-“Precisely. It _will_ be you, and we’ve got to guard against that. We
-must stand together. If he blames you, every man jack must step forward
-and take his share of the blame. I shall say that the idea was mine.
-Terence will declare that he made the plans, so on and thusly. We shall
-all agree that the only part you took in the affair was to captain the
-side. And if he tries to expel you——”
-
-“We’ll cut his throat,” said Saville.
-
-Then he rose to his feet and stretched himself.
-
-“I feel a different man. I should very much like to burst into song.
-Tell me, is there any objection to my repeating this to anyone
-else?—Betteridge, for example? I should absolutely love to. There’s a
-touch of the dramatic about it, and I should just enjoy laying myself
-out to break this news to him in my best style. He’s decidedly broody
-too, if that’s the chief qualification for admission to the secret
-circle.”
-
-“Yes, I don’t see why you shouldn’t tell Betteridge,” said Rouse, and
-hesitated. “But I shouldn’t tell anyone else in Seymour’s just for the
-moment.” He looked at Saville shrewdly, and Saville caught his meaning
-and nodded his head. Then Rouse rose and stood dreamily with one hand
-extended as if to indicate the beauty of the distant landscape.
-
-“I seem to see a certain Saturday afternoon. There will be an unwonted
-calm about the old school. The Head—God bless him!—will be sleeping by
-the fire. His carpet slippers will be dangling from his toes. His
-waistcoat will be comfortably loosened.... Suddenly he will wake with a
-start and he will be struck by the eerie stillness everywhere about him.
-He will rise and look out of the window. At first he will see nothing.
-He will climb to a window on the top floor, and then with a kind of
-telescopic eye he will see everything at once. He will look along every
-road that leads towards Rainhurst and he will see several small clouds
-of dust. Dimly he will make out the figures of all kinds and conditions
-of Harley fellows footing it along at a good pace, some even riding
-bicycles or getting lifts in carts. He will see the railway station
-crowded with the chaps who can afford to buy railway tickets. He will
-see trains on the move with our chaps leaning out and waving coloured
-handkerchiefs at him. It will be like a Derby day. At last he will send
-for the bursar. ‘Look here,’ he will say, ‘What is all that commotion?
-What’s on?’ The bursar will look at him wisely. ‘Didn’t you know?’ he’ll
-say. ‘There’s a very big match on to-day. The school are playing
-Rainhurst.’ The only thing I regret,” he added, “is that by going to
-Rainhurst to play I shall not be able to be present in the Head’s room
-at that moment.”
-
-Saville jumped suddenly forward and flung out his hand.
-
-“Look!... Betteridge! He’s walking by the window. I must go and——”
-
-He never finished. He just made a delighted gesture of farewell, and was
-gone.
-
-At last Rouse turned again to his companions.
-
-“The safety valve is open,” said he. “By to-morrow the welcome whisper
-should be passing from lip to lip.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-A careful onlooker casting back his mind in after years to the ten days
-that intervened between the greatest depth of the school’s dejection and
-its complete recovery has said that the countenance of the average
-Harleyan of that day was to him the face of a good barometer showing a
-steady rise from storm to set-fair by regular upward moves from day to
-day.
-
-From the moment when Rouse, by breaking the news to Saville, had, as it
-were, thrown that message like a pebble into the pool of Harley’s
-dejection, the rippling circles of water that showed just where it had
-sunk spread with almost mathematical precision until the outermost
-circle had reached the outermost boys in the school. The countenance of
-the school was, therefore, more than a barometer. It was a graph,
-showing exactly how far the whisper reached each day.
-
-The manner in which the quickly passing word somehow avoided masters was
-enigmatical. It may be that some few of them knew without seeming to
-know. If so, there was not one enemy amongst them. For all the groups of
-boys that the Head might have seen any day standing about school deep in
-some earnest discussion, their eyes newly bright, all symptoms of their
-depression vanished, he never guessed the truth, so that each little
-band of friends were able to make their own arrangements for the journey
-to Rainhurst on that great day that was surely coming without one single
-obstructing order from the Head.
-
-Directly the school had reassembled after half-term Rouse sent for Henry
-Hope.
-
-“Henry,” said he to Terence, “can always indicate to a man the temper of
-the school in a few well-chosen words. Henry knows everybody. In short,
-what Henry thinks to-day Harley will think to-morrow.”
-
-Henry appeared before him without delay, and was interrogated.
-
-“As far as I know,” said he, “there’s nobody now who hasn’t heard.”
-
-“Has there been upraised,” demanded Rouse, “one single dissentient
-voice?”
-
-“There has not,” responded Henry; “except in places where it doesn’t
-matter.”
-
-Rouse nodded his head thoughtfully.
-
-“As far as you know, after moving about amongst all classes, you can
-safely say that the plan has the whole-hearted support of the school?
-Anyone who split now would most likely be lynched?”
-
-“Why, sure,” said Henry.
-
-“There is one other point. Do you think that amongst the rank and file
-who had been hit hardest by the great staleness of life up to half-term
-there is a general convalescence? Has the fever passed? In other words,
-are those sad eyes of which you spoke to me a while back now shining
-with the light of a great enthusiasm?”
-
-“Everybody seems frightfully bucked.”
-
-Rouse nodded once again, and this time with an air of finality.
-
-“Thank you very much for the very thorough manner in which you have
-carried out your investigations, Detective Hope,” said he. “You have
-been of the utmost service to Harley. It is only by keeping one’s finger
-continuously upon the pulse of the school that one can really hope to
-save them from their melancholia.” He turned. “That being so, Nick,” he
-observed, “we will go visit Smythe and he can commence operations
-forthwith.”
-
-It was late that evening that Smythe, on his round of selected studies,
-reached the little room that Coles called his own. Coles did not seem
-surprised to see him. He rose hospitably and produced a chair from a
-dark corner, turned to the fire and poked at it lustily.
-
-Smythe, however, proceeded to the business of the day without
-hesitation.
-
-“You’ve heard about the scheme that I’ve come about already, of course.
-All I’m doing now is interviewing the team that Rouse has picked. It’s a
-novel way of acting secretary. I’ll just show you this.”
-
-He produced from his pocket a piece of paper. It bore the names of
-fifteen Harleyans, who had been selected to play in the great match of
-the year, and the name of Coles was included. Smythe drew his attention
-to the fact.
-
-“I just want to know,” said he, “that you’re quite willing to turn out,
-and I want your word of honour that in the event of there being a big
-row about this when it’s found out you’ll stand with the team and take a
-fair share of any blame that may be going. I ask this because the
-probability is that the Head may try to drop on Rouse and make him the
-scapegoat. I also want your word of honour that you will say nothing and
-do nothing that could lead to this secret being discovered by the Head
-or any beak at all.”
-
-Coles looked at him oddly.
-
-“You want my word of honour? Why mine?”
-
-“We’re asking for everybody’s,” said Smythe coldly. “You needn’t be
-alarmed.”
-
-“But why? What makes that necessary? Who do you suppose might give it
-away?”
-
-“We’re asking this of each fellow who’s going to play, purely to avoid
-giving offence to any one man. The temper of the school at present
-doesn’t permit of taking risks. That’s all. Do you mind giving what we
-ask?”
-
-“No,” said Coles at last. “Why should I? What’s all the suspicion
-about?” He paused, glancing at Smythe resentfully. “What is it you want
-me to promise?”
-
-Smythe repeated it.
-
-He jerked his head.
-
-“All right. I’ll give my word.”
-
-Smythe solemnly put a little tick against his name on the list, stayed a
-few moments talking over arrangements, and finally took his departure.
-
-In the corridor outside he came upon two boys. One he identified without
-difficulty as Henry Hope, but as he passed Henry drew his companion into
-the shadow of the wall behind him. For Henry had just made a regrettable
-discovery. He had reported that nobody of importance existed in Harley
-who was not delighted at the prospect of the Rainhurst match, and he had
-overlooked one case, a case that had only just come properly to his
-notice. There was a young man in Harley who showed no pleasure at the
-arrangements made, who seemed, on the contrary, smitten with some
-foreboding. The young man would give no explanation. He would offer no
-definite opinion. It was merely a case in which the symptoms of
-depression had increased rather than decreased, and were it not for one
-outstanding fact the matter might have been exceptional, and therefore
-of no real importance. But Henry could not lose sight of that one fact.
-The young man concerned was Coles’ fag. Henry would have to watch out.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI
- YESTERDAY’S CAPTAIN
-
-
-The men of Rainhurst were undisguisedly perplexed. For the last two
-hours Harley fellows had been arriving at the school, not openly, but in
-mysterious driblets, looking about them as if in fear of being spotted
-and yet decidedly proud to be on view. Moreover, as each party had
-arrived they had been greeted by their predecessors with cordial
-hand-shakings as if by way of congratulation on their safe arrival.
-
-Now they were all gathered together in one great concourse just inside
-the entrance to the school, whilst one amongst them, a strangely thin
-boy with tremendous spectacles, stood out from the crowd and from a
-position of vantage in the roadway was peering into the distance.
-Whenever one of the Harley Fifteen appeared in sight this boy turned to
-the waiting throng, lifted his hand in dignity above his head as if for
-silence, and in a loud clear voice announced the gentleman’s name,
-whereupon there followed a momentary silence until the player himself
-appeared at the gate, when he was greeted with tumultuous applause.
-
-It was all exceedingly odd.
-
-The First Fifteen were coming, too, not in the appointed brake from the
-station but just as the boys themselves had come, clandestinely and by
-various routes, some by train, and others by cycle or by trap. The
-captain of Rainhurst, who was watching it all with a frankly curious
-stare, had never seen the like.
-
-As time passed, however, it became evident that there was still some
-further treat in store for those who were waiting at the gates. There
-was that in their watchful attitude that one may see in the vast crowd
-at any state procession that cheers its favourites as they pass, yet
-waits in tense expectancy, keeping its greatest outburst for the great
-one whom they have really come to see.
-
-There became noticeable, too, an increased alertness in the manner of
-the boy who was making the announcements. He peered more frequently and
-rather more impatiently up and down the road. Sometimes he left his
-position to secure a better view from the other side of the way.
-
-Clearly the arrival of someone of real importance to them was expected
-at any moment.
-
-It came at last. The looker-out, who, though wholly self-appointed,
-seemed to be treated with a tolerant courtesy and some respect by his
-fellows, darted suddenly towards them and threw up his arm stiffly erect
-above his head, pointing the way to heaven.
-
-The silence was immediate.
-
-“They’re coming,” said he. “Look out, it’s Rouse!”
-
-In the respectful hush that had fallen upon the crowd there could be
-heard distinctly a noise like the beating of a drum. Boys turned, one to
-the other, in surprise. There was a minute’s keen expectancy. At last
-solution came. Rouse hove into view, not as one might have expected a
-popular hero to have appeared, nobly upon the shoulders of his comrades,
-but hunched upon a bicycle, and the noise accompanying him was not the
-beating of a drum: it was the bumping of a punctured back tyre on the
-roadway. His long legs were driving the pedals with laborious care, and
-between the strokes his knees were rising under his armpits. He was
-flushed with exertion and suffering from acute self-consciousness, and
-in this manner he turned in at the gate and came unsteadily along the
-gravel path.
-
-Now when Rouse had said that so soon as he was invited to process he
-lost all interest in events he had spoken truly. He was never more
-hopelessly uncomfortable than when he was the centre of admiration or
-the object of prolonged applause, and during the present term he had had
-more of this than he could manage. When he had first come into sight his
-mind had, moreover, been so concentrated upon the importance of making
-the turn at the gate without colliding with the wall that he did not
-properly understand what all the cheering was about. He found out quite
-suddenly, and in that moment, looking along the deep ranks of his
-applauding followers and realising suddenly that it was all for him and
-that he was once again the unwilling hero of the hour, he lost his nerve
-entirely, slowed to a snail’s pace and suddenly fell off.
-
-He stood up, not knowing where to look or what to do to stop their
-cheering. Smythe came to his side and Rouse turned to him gratefully.
-
-“I say, do tell them to shut up, will you?”
-
-He was sorry to notice that Smythe brushed the point aside.
-
-“Where on earth have you been?” he was demanding. “I thought you were
-coming by trap?”
-
-Rouse considered the point absent-mindedly.
-
-“I thought so once, too. It seems a long time ago. I can hardly remember
-the time when I wasn’t sitting on that bike.”
-
-“What happened?”
-
-“I don’t know. That has yet to be discovered. But when twenty minutes
-had gone by and there was still no trap we decided we’d got to do
-something about it. Every bicycle for hire in Harley had been booked up
-a week ago, so there was nothing for it but to try our luck at cottages,
-and at one I managed to borrow this.” He paused and took a deep breath.
-“Until the old man of the house had lifted me into the saddle and given
-me a lusty shove off down the hill I wasn’t at all sure that I could
-ride a bicycle, but once the thing was fairly under way I didn’t dare to
-fall off for fear I should never be able to get on again, so I just kept
-on pushing the pedals round, and until I got inside these gates I
-thought of nothing else but sticking on. It was all that cheering upset
-me.”
-
-“Something upset you I could plainly see,” said Smythe. “I thought you’d
-ridden over a brick.”
-
-Rouse turned with a haughty gesture and cast a contemplative eye upon
-the bicycle.
-
-“It’s been making that bumping noise ever since I started. I don’t know
-whether there’s anything the matter with it.”
-
-“It’s punctured,” said Smythe instructively.
-
-“Is it? Quite likely. I’m no real judge of a bicycle, but I should think
-it’s got everything the matter with it that it could have, including
-mumps on the front tyre. Nick couldn’t borrow one at all, so he stopped
-a kid who passed us on the road and they’ve been taking turn and turn
-about ever since, one of them riding and the other balancing on one foot
-on the step. I’ve seen worse trick cyclists at a music hall. They’re
-both walking up the hill at present. The kid offered to walk all the way
-and let Nick come on, but Nick said: ‘No fear. We’ve both got to be at
-this match and they’ll wait for me, but they won’t wait for you.’”
-
-He smiled reminiscently, then turned sharply on his heel. The cheering
-had broken out anew. A small boy eaten up with pride was wearily riding
-a bicycle into the school grounds, and as they watched, a tall
-fair-haired young man dropped off the step and began to walk somewhat
-stiffly through the crowd.
-
-“That’s Nick,” said Smythe. “We’re all here now.”
-
-Next moment another young man was at his elbow. A voice had interrupted
-them apologetically. They turned and saw that it was the Rainhurst
-captain, and with a slow whimsical smile Rouse held out his hand.
-
-“I say, is this true? One of your chaps has just been telling me. Do you
-mean to say you’ve come here absolutely on your own? Has your footer
-been stopped? Don’t they know anything at all about it at the school?”
-
-Rouse began to explain. Half-way through the other stopped him.
-
-“Well, all I can say is that if you fellows have gone to all this sweat
-just to save this match being scratched then you deserve to win it—and,”
-he added thoughtfully, “I’m only sorry you won’t.”
-
-Rouse laid a hand upon his arm.
-
-“I wonder if you could show me where I could get a rub down? I don’t
-know whether you’ve ever ridden from Harley on a punctured bike, but I
-have—and only just.”
-
-As he followed the other away down the gravel path he looked round at
-the record crowd that, the cheering over, was now lining up along the
-touch-lines. His eyes passed thoughtfully over those members of the home
-side who were already taking casual place kicks on the field, and then
-came back and settled in turn upon certain of his own team who were
-coming slowly towards him from the changing-room. And in those few
-moments a strange solemnity obsessed him. He found himself remembering
-all that this lean year had meant to Harley. This was their first school
-match, and it would be their only one. The season would stand alone in
-history, and it was all on his account. He wondered whatever they could
-see in him, or what sympathy he had aroused in them that could warrant
-such devotion to one man. He was suddenly conscious of the weight of
-responsibility that was his. He, who had meant the season to be so
-famous in the annals of the school, had been the sole cause of the
-miserable fiasco that it had become. And it seemed to him that if only
-the school side could play such a game to-day as would be worth the
-fellows having come to see, it might make some amends. As a team nothing
-out of the way could be expected of them. They were only a scratch
-Fifteen, and they had not yet had one single practice game together. No
-one could foretell their capability. But he was their captain, and it
-was possible that by setting the example he might get each man on the
-side to play the game of his life. In the eyes of the Head he was
-yesterday’s captain, and Christopher Woolf Roe was to-day’s.
-
-Well, when the story of this one match came to be written it should, if
-he could by one day’s captaincy ordain it, stand out as the greatest in
-the school’s long history. That would be some slight consolation to all
-those who had missed the game that was so near their hearts throughout
-this miserable term.
-
-He changed and came out into the open and found his team, and all the
-while he could not find a word to say to anyone. Yet as they stood
-waiting silently for him to lead them out, he turned to them with a
-sudden spontaneity.
-
-“Look here, the fellows have come no end of a distance and some of them
-may not get back before roll-call, but it’s in our power to give them a
-game that’ll keep them talking till the end of the year and make them
-proud to have been at school this term instead of half ashamed. I want
-you to do it. This is the only chance we shall have. Let’s make this
-match worth having played in.”
-
-He stopped abruptly. It suddenly occurred to him that he was talking
-heroics for perhaps the first time in his life. And so with a sudden
-awkward smile he turned and led the way out. No one spoke; but as they
-followed him out into the open the spirit that had prompted Rouse was
-stirring in every breast.
-
-The moments passed. The teams were lining up. The whistle blew. Rouse
-stood in readiness behind his team, casting an affectionate eye over
-each member of it as he moved to his appointed place. Then at last, to
-the tune of the most whole-hearted shout of “Harley” that Rouse had ever
-heard, the Rainhurst captain lifted the ball gently over the heads of
-Harley’s forwards and the school half had misfielded. There was a rush
-of hurrying forwards towards the mark and the Rainhurst pack were down
-and shoving. Now the handicap of a lean year was transparent. The school
-men were slow in getting down. Before they were properly packed the ball
-had been in and out, and the Rainhurst threes were slinging it away to
-the wing, where a youngster with the pace of a stag was coming down the
-touch-line to take his pass. There flew across Rouse’s view sudden
-patches of the Harley colours; the school backs racing across and
-bringing down man after man; but the ball had travelled too fast for
-them to reach and the Rainhurst wing took it safely, ran in and kicked
-high and faithfully across. Rouse watched with set eyes as in mid-air
-the wind caught the ball and carried it swerving out of its course;
-then, as it began to fall, he saw his chance, darted along the goal-line
-and cut in under it. He had one hurried vision of a man in the Rainhurst
-grey and green flying towards him and gazing upward. He took no notice.
-He just fetched out a sudden burst of resolute speed, took the ball from
-the other’s reach in his stride, bowled him over and left him on the
-grass. Then he kicked. The ball sailed up-field like a bird and, far
-over the distant touch-line by the Rainhurst twenty-five, fell neatly
-out of play.
-
-He had gained the school relief, but now he grew gravely anxious for the
-future. He did not like the way those Rainhurst threes had come away to
-threaten his line so early. It was ominous. He contracted his mouth
-severely as he saw the ball thrown out of touch and the forwards
-scrambling round it for possession. Once his own men had it, but the
-pack were not properly together and it was lost. Then the game opened up
-and the Rainhurst backs got on the move again. Somebody dropped a pass.
-There came another scrum. Rouse saw that Rainhurst had it once more and
-were heeling like clockwork. The Harley forwards were being beaten every
-time. From his own position on the field he could watch all this as if
-from the pit stalls of a theatre, and it kept him on tenterhooks. Once
-he was moving up happily behind his team, driving them on with mighty
-punts up-field whenever the ball came within his reach, when, quite
-suddenly, there flashed into the picture the Rainhurst backs racing
-across the field, wheeling and coming down upon him with the ball, and
-the whole phase of the game was changed. He drew back. He saw the Harley
-men move up against the coming line, watching with beating heart to see
-if they could shatter it. But the combination of this team in the attack
-was paramount. Every Harley back had made his tackle, and the ball was
-still in the hands of a man in grey and green. There were others running
-beside him. Where they had come from he had no time to guess. But so
-soon as a Rainhurst man was down another seemed to have darted into his
-place. He waited cautiously. He was the last line of defence. If he made
-but one mistake now Rainhurst were through. He must choose the
-psychological moment and he must pick the right man. There was not one
-second to spare. Everything in his wide field of view faded away, and
-the only thing that he could see was the fast magnifying picture of a
-line of figures in grey and green on top of him. The moment had come. He
-picked his man, and as he moved to take the ball, Rouse hurtled across
-his front, swung round his legs, and, breathless with the thud of
-collision, hung on. The ball flew wide, but he was too late to reach it;
-a gigantic boot whizzed past his face and carried it on towards the
-Harley line. The Rainhurst forwards pattered past him. The game had gone
-by and he was out of it, but he had given his own side time and the
-Harley men were back and defending stoutly.
-
-After that it was give and take, and the game would not shift out of the
-Harley twenty-five. One high punt carried the ball out of the ruck, and
-Smythe came in from the wing and gathered it neatly. There was a quick
-expectant hush whilst he started away, and Terence was up alongside with
-safe hands ready for his pass. The ball jumped into his arms and he had
-it safely and was cutting with lowered head into the bunch of forwards
-who were hovering round him. A new shout of hope went up from the Harley
-side of the ground, but it was premature. The last to be seen of Terence
-was the vision of his body being dragged to earth by three men in grey
-and green, whilst the ball worked out into the open. Without delay those
-dangerous Rainhurst forwards, perfectly together, were round it in a
-herd. They were coming down-field with it at their toes as if it were
-merely a practice dribble. The sight of Coles darting into the picture,
-and flinging himself upon it, relieved anxiety for a moment, but he was
-somehow bundled out of the way and the pack came on. Rouse got ready
-again. The fellows on the touch-line saw him crouching for his spring
-and knew that he would never let them through. But in the tenseness of
-the moment their voices grew hushed and they could only wait. A sudden
-diversion saved the day. One hulking forward in the front rank of the
-Rainhurst pack had kicked the ball too hard and it had bounced out of
-reach. In a flash their chance had gone. Smythe came across their front
-at a sprint, gathered the ball with extended hands and carried it clear.
-
-Again the shouting started. Smythe had it safely and his wing was clear
-for twenty yards. He bent to his task and ran. One of the Rainhurst
-halfbacks was pounding behind him, but had not the pace to make the
-tackle. Smythe shook him off and looked for his own three-quarters. They
-had shaped out into position and were well in motion. Then the Rainhurst
-wing, whose duty was to mark Smythe, came in with a rush and he passed
-the ball; but as he spun sideways and was dragged down on to his back he
-had the horrifying vision vouchsafed him of another man in grey and
-green speeding away with that same ball on his chest, whilst Terence was
-pounding after him and reaching desperately for his jersey. There was
-one tense moment of doubt and fear, then the sprinting man had swerved
-past Lister and had only Rouse to beat. Just as before, Rouse came into
-the picture with a dashing enthusiasm and took his man at a gallop. The
-Rainhurst runner had no chance. In two seconds it was all over and Rouse
-was scrambling to his feet, whilst the school forwards, a badly bustled
-pack, came round and struggled for the ball. It came out and somebody
-fell on it, so that there followed another scrum. Again it worked loose
-on the Rainhurst side, but Coles smothered the lucky half before he
-could get it away, and not an inch was gained. At last Saville, seeing
-the ball bouncing before his eyes, grabbed at it and punted for touch.
-But the Rainhurst blood was up and they meant to score. The game had
-settled upon the Harley twenty-five and nothing could move it on.
-Rainhurst were too good. Every scrum went in their favour. They could do
-everything but cross the line. Time and again their threes seemed safely
-away and would have scored, had not there shone from out the Harley
-Fifteen a wondrous individuality of play that held them. There was
-always one who darted in at the critical moment and scooped the ball
-into his keeping or downed the man who had it. His instinct of defence
-was magical. He seemed ubiquitous and impregnable, and through Harley’s
-rough time he held together a team that were weary of tackling by an
-outstanding energy that made him a standard-bearer to his side.
-
-Wherever he could be seen at grips with the attacking host the Harley
-men rallied around him. He grew discoloured with mud and the bruises of
-continuous collision and became unlike himself, but so long as they
-could identify his shape the vast crowd never ceased to shout his name.
-
-And so when half time came and play stopped suddenly there was set upon
-the field a tableau.
-
-Yesterday’s captain stood unconquered upon his line, with his scratch
-team gathered round him, and the Rainhurst men were held.
-
-There came a gracious interval, and on to the field moved streams of
-enthusing Harleyans who clapped upon the back each member of the team
-that they could reach, whilst Rouse moved this way and that amongst his
-men, whispering words of counsel for the even greater battle that was to
-come.
-
-“You were fine,” he said to each in turn, “but we haven’t scored yet.”
-
-They nodded grimly, making their own resolve in secret, and so when the
-whistle blew again, and the ball was once more lifted into the air, it
-was Harley who started the attack.
-
-The forwards, as if in an effort to make up for their clear defeat in
-the scrum, gathered the ball amongst them and took it away up-field with
-an all-devouring dash. For a little while the Rainhurst men were
-staggered. Harley made way by grim degrees towards their goal. Close up,
-Betteridge, who was long in the arm, contrived to reach the ball and
-toss it back over his head to the neighbourhood where the three-quarters
-were waiting eagerly. Terence jumped sideways and took it as it bounced;
-but a stalwart figure in grey and green was upon him before he could
-make away, and the chance was gone. Yet Harley would not be denied. The
-great shouting from their fellows on the touch-line kept them at it.
-Again and again the ball was taken forward at a pell-mell rush, only to
-be suddenly gathered and punted back by Rainhurst.
-
-And at these times it was Rouse who nipped in and fielded it as it fell,
-so that great punts into touch, far up, kept the school at the right
-end.
-
-The suddenness with which Rainhurst turned their defence into attack
-proved the greatness of their side. For a full ten minutes they had been
-hard pressed, and no one knew how it was that their stand-off half found
-that wonderful opening. Yet in some way he had caught the Harley men all
-on one side of the ground. A high punt carried the ball towards him and
-he took it on the run, and kicked down the field. It dropped midway
-between Rouse and himself, and he had just that extra turn of speed that
-enabled him to get to it first. He held it for a bare moment whilst he
-swerved, then he had kicked again, high over Rouse’s head, and was
-following up as before. The luck was all his. The try depended on the
-bounce of the ball, and it bounced straight into his hands. Afterwards
-it was only a question of pace; he had that pace and he scored far out.
-
-Slowly and solemnly Harley lined up under the posts. They heard the
-frenzied cheering of the Rainhurst boys and bore it patiently. But Rouse
-said never a word, and only those who took a covert glance at him knew
-what must be passing in his mind.
-
-The place kick went wide, and so the game restarted. And now the
-shouting for Harley, hoarse with strain, seemed, nevertheless, redoubled
-into a roar of pleading. Just once Rouse looked towards them. Then he
-turned back to the game and was pacing slowly across the field, staring
-with set eyes at the scramble for the ball as it came out from touch.
-Time passed. Fellows on the line began to glance nervously at their
-watches, but he seemed to take no count of it. He just moved always
-behind his team, nursing each movement with consummate understanding and
-calling to them gently by name when the play opened up.
-
-At last their opportunity came.
-
-Almost upon the Rainhurst twenty-five a free kick was awarded Harley.
-The shouting died away. The crowded touch-line suddenly grew still.
-Rouse moved forward. He looked round for Coles. Coles was the best
-drop-kick in the school. It mattered not to Rouse that this might prove
-the winning effort of the match, and that if so the certainty existed
-that Coles would know how to turn it to good account. The school came
-first. He called to Coles:
-
-“Try for goal.”
-
-Coles went to the mark, looked round him almost nervously, took careful
-aim; the ball fell and he met it beautifully on the bounce with his toe.
-It was a great kick, and at first it seemed to have scored. Yet just
-beside the goal the breeze caught it and held it up. It dropped slowly
-just on the wrong side of the posts. Coles turned away distressfully. He
-took no notice of the cordial clapping. He had failed. Rainhurst took
-heart again. Over and over again they broke away, only to be smothered
-by the irresistible tackling of Rouse’s chosen backs. They had earned
-one try and it was clear that it had been the most they could do. It was
-not an effort that could be repeated. Harley could prevent it, but there
-was something they could not do. They could not find the way through to
-that other goal-line that would mean so much to them. At last this
-seemed to be borne in upon them slowly and they began to tire. They were
-losing and their hearts were failing them. Rouse could see it. He said
-no word. Instead he grew more resolute in manner and more wonderful in
-his own kicks, knowing that nothing can pull a tired team together like
-example. Somehow or other they would have to score. He was their captain
-and it was his task to whip them into a last desperate effort that would
-carry someone over that line. If they could not win this match, then at
-least they should not be beaten. He began to grow restless. Time was
-passing quickly. He felt that great responsibility upon him again. He
-had been chosen captain. If he could not somehow get one try out of this
-side from Harley then he was not a worthy leader. They had to cross that
-line. It was his task to make them. Only so could the greatness of this
-match be capped. Only so could this day be marked for always in red
-letters on the school’s official calendar.
-
-And then, suddenly enough, the ball worked loose and a Rainhurst man,
-bearing down upon it, had gathered it into his arms and was away. Smythe
-was out of position and he had a clear field. Coles sped diagonally
-across the field and with a gallant effort almost reached him, but the
-Rainhurst man had too great a pace and escaped by inches. As he ran he
-looked urgently for his partner. Not only his own centre but the whole
-of the Rainhurst line were with him. He glanced along it delightedly,
-saw it moving with him at top speed, and then he looked ahead. There was
-only one man to pass—a tired man, discoloured with the stain of battle.
-One man against a line. He ran in a little, ready for a swerve, prepared
-to pass. The one man watched him as he came with glassy eyes. The moment
-came. Rouse moved to make his tackle. As he did so the Rainhurst man
-flung the ball towards the centre, and in that moment he realised his
-mistake.
-
-In those precious seconds that Rouse had had in which to make his quick
-decision he had realised that, with a complete line running with him,
-the man with the ball would not attempt to get through on his own. It
-was an isolated case in which he would be justified in not tackling that
-man. Once he, the last line of defence, was down and out of action, the
-Rainhurst line were through and a try was a virtual certainty.
-
-He had bent to a dummy tackle, then straightening instantly he sprang
-into the air and intercepted the pass. Next second he was away with it
-on his chest.
-
-In that moment the little world around the field went wild. The whole of
-the Rainhurst line had passed him and were looking back dazedly over
-their shoulder. Before him the field of play opened out, and he saw that
-the way was clear. Until he had summoned his utmost speed he looked
-neither to right nor left, but when at last he was running as only a man
-extended to the last degree can run he glanced around for aid, and it
-was there. Terence was sprinting beside him like one possessed, and his
-voice rang wildly across the open:
-
-“With you! With you!”
-
-It was enough. Rouse turned again to his front and called out one extra
-yard of inhuman pace. He knew now that he was not alone. The day was
-saved. A man in grey and green sprang across his path, and Rouse handed
-him off and sent him staggering aside. Then he could see that, just as
-when the Rainhurst line had come upon him, so now he had come upon his
-rival back, and he saw him preparing for his tackle.
-
-He moved his hands and began to circle them ready to give his pass.
-
-Just beyond Terence he caught a quick glimpse of Smythe flying down the
-touch-line in an effort to draw alongside. The deafening cheers of young
-men leaning over the ropes and beating the air with caps were urging him
-on.
-
-Then the moment had come. He swerved in slightly, made ready, and flung
-the ball straight and true into Terence’s hands.
-
-A baby could not have dropped it.
-
-And as the Rainhurst man came at him and brought him down on his side,
-he saw the flying figure of Terence darting over the line and grounding
-the ball between the posts.
-
-At that moment he would have given his kingdom to have stayed where he
-fell upon the grass, and to have lain in peace until the aching in his
-weary limbs had passed.
-
-Yet he scrambled up. The air was thick with waving hats. He shouted to
-Smythe, but in the din no one could hear his voice.
-
-So he signalled the order, and Smythe went slowly to the mark and took
-the kick. In a deadly hush the ball rose into the air and dropped truly
-and gracefully over the bar.
-
-In the turmoil that followed the referee’s no-side whistle was scarcely
-heard. Rouse looked round hopelessly. There was no way out. Wave upon
-wave of shouting Harley maniacs were bearing down on him from every
-side.
-
-He was seized and shaken, found himself lifted up by the legs. He tried
-to break free. It was utterly useless. So at last he looked at them
-wearily in turn.
-
-And then he smiled.
-
-For this one day he had been their captain. Nothing mattered now.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII
- SALVE
-
-
-Alone upon the wide deserted expanse of the playing fields at Harley
-there stood, a picture of misery, the only fellow in the school who had
-not dared to go to Rainhurst. There were, it is true, somewhere in the
-school, other boys, but they had mostly remained behind under
-compulsion. Some were in detention and some in the infirmary. A round
-dozen or so were of a type who never did watch football even when it was
-taking place under their noses, and they had played no part in that
-clandestine excursion simply because it had had no attraction for them.
-But there was only this one boy who had been afraid to go.
-
-It was Christopher Woolf Roe. He was by no means happy, and he was
-obsessed with a melancholy interest as to what his father would have to
-say when he knew what the school had done. He gazed out mournfully over
-the forsaken football ground. No sound of any boyish voice reached his
-ear. It might have been holiday time. So when a step sounded
-unexpectedly behind him on the gravel path he turned in surprise. The
-school porter was crossing from the neighbourhood of the Head’s room,
-and something in his manner suggested that he was conveying a message.
-Roe, starving for company, looked at him as a pig looks at some farm
-hand carrying a pan of swill.
-
-“Do you want me?” he asked hopefully enough.
-
-The porter answered with dignity. As a man of discrimination he had been
-on the school’s side throughout this strife, and he was not disposed to
-make conversation with one whom he considered something of a traitor.
-
-“The Headmaster wishes to speak to you, sir,” said he, and withdrew.
-
-Without a word Roe moved away dejectedly towards the stained-glass
-windows of his father’s room, and passed through the old oak door beside
-the steps. He had not even the heart to whistle as he went.
-
-He knocked at the door and was greeted by ominous silence. He went in.
-The Head was standing by the fireplace, leaning against the mantelpiece,
-and by every line of his face Roe could see that he was going to address
-him not as a father but as the Headmaster of a Public School. He moved
-silently across the carpet.
-
-“Did you want me, sir?” said he respectfully.
-
-He placed one hand in the other and rubbed them gently together.
-
-The Head looked at him grimly. Half-an-hour ago he had stood at his
-window looking out upon his kingdom. It had struck him quite suddenly
-that the neighbourhood of the school was strangely quiet. He had leaned
-out a little farther. He could still see nobody about. Finally he had
-craned his neck to its limit and turned his head all ways. There was no
-doubt about it. The school was deserted. He had never seen the place so
-quiet on a Saturday. The seats under the trees were all unoccupied. No
-sound came from the fives courts. No figure could be discerned on any
-pathway. The only houses that he could see looked uninhabited. Sudden
-perplexity had settled upon him. He had furrowed his brows.... Next he
-had left his room and had gone into the school and along the corridors
-to places from which he could see the playing fields from every angle.
-He peered into the common rooms, inspected the library.... His
-suspicions became a certainty. There was something wrong. He went back
-to his own room, and all the way along the corridor the tap of his
-footfall produced a hollow, echoing ring that spoke of utter emptiness.
-
-From his own window he took one final peep on to the football ground.
-There at last he had seen a solitary youth, Harley’s Cinderella, walking
-with downcast mien aimlessly across his front. It was his son.
-
-In the five minutes that had elapsed since that moment he had
-endeavoured to reason things out, but it had been like groping one’s way
-in the dark through some strange underworld. He was utterly bewildered,
-and he was conscious of fast-growing anger. He eyed his son for a little
-while petulantly, and at last he spoke.
-
-“There is nobody anywhere about the school,” said he indignantly. “The
-place is deserted. Can you offer any explanation?”
-
-Roe did not hesitate. He was, in point of fact, glad to get it off his
-chest. Besides the news was sensational and there is always a certain
-gratification in breaking news of a kind that makes a man jump out of
-his slippers.
-
-He spoke incisively.
-
-“Yes,” said he, “I think I can tell you what’s happened. The First
-Fifteen have gone to Rainhurst to play the match of the season, and
-every fellow in the school who could has gone over to see the game.”
-
-The effect of this news exceeded all expectation.
-
-For one moment his father merely looked dazed. But as he began to
-recover Roe slowly backed towards the wall. Then he found himself
-staring helplessly towards his father’s table, absolutely fascinated by
-the fixed glare of his wide eyes shining with concentrated anger from
-behind their spectacles, just as a rabbit is frozen still by the cold
-eyes of a snake. His father did not speak. He just subsided slowly into
-his chair and his eyes never left his son’s unhappy countenance. He was
-looking him through and through, and Roe could see that he was at the
-same time turning it all over in his mind and looking at this outburst
-by a fettered school from every possible angle. Nothing was going to
-escape consideration. The probability was that he was no more vexed at
-the open lawlessness of such a match than at the astounding fact that
-the officially appointed captain of football at the school had been left
-out of the team by those who had selected it. He was very clearly taken
-aback.
-
-At last his lips jerked open and he spoke, but no muscle of his body
-moved, and his eyes never for one instant shifted from their close
-examination of his son. His voice was ominously hard and dry. He said:
-
-“If you knew that this was going to happen why did you not mention it in
-time for me to stop it?”
-
-Roe moved a pace nearer to the wall.
-
-“Coles said——” he began.
-
-“Coles?” snapped the Head. “What part has he in this? Has he gone with
-the team? Is Coles playing for the school?”
-
-Roe tried to steady himself before he spoke. He answered after a
-moment’s pause:
-
-“He’s playing. But he had a reason. He thought that if he refused
-suspicion would settle upon him and spoil our chance of doing any good
-later on. There was another thing too. He had made a plan.”
-
-“What plan?” The Head stood up. “Coles seems to imagine,” he exclaimed,
-“that I wish him to come to my support with underhand plots. I require
-no such help whatever. His suggestions of late have been an open insult
-to the power of my authority. You will tell Coles that whatever I
-require of him will be obtained by exacting his obedience to my
-instructions and not by lending my ear to subterfuges. Coles utterly
-misconceives his position. You will tell him that I am exceedingly angry
-to find that to advance some plot of his own he agreed to disobey my
-orders.”
-
-Roe shivered miserably.
-
-“And you,” declared his father, “what have you done to _stop_ this open
-defiance of my instructions? You are captain of football here, and as my
-own son you came to this school with a ready-made reputation. You could,
-by strong action, have swayed the school to my support within a
-fortnight. Instead you have been crassly inactive. This match has taken
-place under your very nose and you have not so much as lifted a finger
-to prevent it. We are well into the second half of term, and instead of
-showing determination in tackling the state of affairs you are content
-to be made ridiculous by a youngster whose sole qualification to
-captaincy is his popularity. I am amazed.”
-
-Roe moved a step farther back.
-
-“I thought——” he began.
-
-“Be silent,” commanded the Head. “Listen to me. Immediately Rouse
-returns you will tell him to come to my room without a moment’s delay——”
-
-Roe interrupted.
-
-“It’s no use sending for Rouse,” said he. “Everybody who’s playing has
-sworn to take a share of the blame.”
-
-The Head stared at him. Roe proceeded to explain, but the Head was
-impatient.
-
-“I shall see Rouse,” he repeated. “And you, as captain of football, will
-make it your business to give him those instructions personally. There
-is another thing. Mr Nicholson has gone up to London for the day. I
-understand he is returning by car very late to-night. Instruct the
-porter to send to his rooms and leave word that I require to see him
-here to-morrow morning immediately before chapel. You yourself will
-remain about the school until Rouse returns. Whatever time it may be you
-will see that he comes here forthwith. If I am not here he will wait
-until I return. You clearly understand?”
-
-“Yes, sir,” said Roe, in a melancholy whisper.
-
-The Head pointed towards the door, turned in his chair and picked up a
-paper with hands that were trembling with suppressed wrath. Roe closed
-the door gently behind him.
-
-As soon as he had gone the Head threw his paper on to the floor and
-stood up. He moved to the window and stood there a moment looking out
-upon the school’s strange solitude. It was tea-time. By now the match
-must be nearly over. Within a few hours those who had broken his strict
-command would be returning and going to their respective houses.
-
-He had until then to make up his mind as to the penalty that must be
-paid. Rouse had challenged his son’s authority, and his son had proved
-hopelessly unable to compete with him. Sudden keen disappointment came
-into the Head’s heart. He felt extraordinarily alone. There was no
-single being in the whole school who was upon his side. He had sent for
-his son in the belief that his son stood out amongst ordinary boys as he
-stood out amongst ordinary headmasters. His son had failed. He had
-nobody now to depend upon. He stood entirely alone. But the school had
-challenged him and he must find an answer.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII
- THE UNCOUNTED COST
-
-
-Now and again words spoken in a hollow tone drifted through the night
-and reached Terence in snatches.
-
-Occasionally he answered, but it was evident that one of those moods was
-upon Rouse in which he loved to maintain a rambling monologue, content
-to speak his changing thoughts or to register opinions as they came to
-him without requiring any answer at all.
-
-Most of the boys had travelled by train, but many had returned as they
-had come, by trap or bicycle; some were walking, however, and it was for
-this latter reason that Rouse and Terence had elected to walk too.
-
-“We shall lose half the fun,” Rouse had affirmed, “if we do this thing
-in too great comfort. Let’s have the satisfaction of knowing that, as
-some of the kids have had to walk, we’ve walked too. It’s only
-sporting.”
-
-He was talking again now. Terence pricked his ears politely.
-
-“It is not,” he was saying, “until you have wheeled one of these
-infernal machines for about twelve miles without getting a ride even
-down a bit of a hill that you properly understand why they are called
-push-bikes.”
-
-Terence turned to look at him.
-
-Rouse was plodding a little in rear. It was pouring with rain and his
-overcoat was soaked and shining; rain was even dripping from his very
-ears. Yet the night was cheerfully illumined by his smile. Terence, who
-had a handbag in one hand and the other in his pocket, nodded ahead.
-
-“We’re nearly there. You see those lights? That’s Harley!”
-
-He stepped out with new hope. One might have imagined that he had no
-care in all the world.
-
-Rouse’s response came in a sober monotone:
-
-“You are quite right. That one red light, shining all alone, is the end
-of the Headmaster’s cigar, I think. He will be waiting up for us with a
-tray of cold supper. May heaven reward his kindly nature.”
-
-They walked on for another mile in contemplative silence. For a time
-Terence took a turn at wheeling the bicycle. At last the cottage from
-which they had borrowed it was reached, and it was gratefully returned
-with the price of a new back tyre.
-
-Twenty minutes later they finally came to Harley’s gates. In the
-distance they could just distinguish a group of youngsters who had been
-walking ahead of them making their way stealthily across to Mainwright’s
-house.
-
-They turned, and behind them they could hear the steady tread of another
-couple who had been plodding along behind change suddenly to a cautious
-softness.
-
-Rouse looked round him quizzically. At last he returned his gaze to
-Terence. “Nick,” said he, “it would be well to rise on the toes.” Next
-moment he was leading the way with a mysterious and ghostly tread along
-the gravel path towards Morley’s. “It is the last lap,” said he. “I
-wonder if we are going to secure a cigar or nuts.”
-
-Terence made no immediate reply. He was looking watchfully towards the
-Headmaster’s room. But the blinds were drawn and only a dim light could
-be seen within.
-
-They moved across the open. The rain was still beating down relentlessly
-upon them. Little pools of water were spreading across the football
-ground. There was a melancholy mist about the distant houses. They were
-dog-tired. Whilst they went, their heads bowed a little to the downpour,
-Rouse spoke no further word, not, however, because he was wondering in
-his heart what was to be the outcome of that great game, but curiously
-enough because his mind was busily planning how he could manage to get
-another hot bath before he went to bed.
-
-When, therefore, right outside Morley’s, a figure came suddenly towards
-them, Rouse looked up with a start. Then he stopped. It was impossible
-to mistake the build of that young man. It was Christopher Woolf Roe.
-Instinctively the captain of cricket and the captain of football drew
-near to one another and waited for him to speak. They had not long to
-wait. He stopped in front of them and looked at Rouse.
-
-“The Headmaster would like to speak to you,” he said.
-
-Rouse eyed him good-humouredly.
-
-“Did the Headmaster give you a _note_?”
-
-“No, he didn’t. He said you were to go to his room directly you came in
-and wait there till he came back.”
-
-Rouse shook his head sadly.
-
-“I wonder if he knows that in my present condition I shall leave a pool
-of water wherever I stand?” said he. “It seems such a pity to spoil his
-carpet, doesn’t it? Besides, I shall sneeze so. And sneezing always
-makes him cross.”
-
-Roe looked him slowly up and down with his pig-like eyes.
-
-“The fact is,” said he, with ill-concealed delight, “you’re in for it.”
-
-“If you mean to imply,” said Rouse, “that the Head is getting up a
-raffle, let me say that you are mistaken. I shall not be in for it.”
-
-There was a moment’s pause.
-
-“All right,” said Roe at last. “I’ve told you, haven’t I?”
-
-He moved haughtily away, his duty done. Rouse and Terence looked
-thoughtfully after him.
-
-“I think I’ll go along,” said Rouse, in a low voice. “When he sees how
-wet I am he’ll cut it short.”
-
-“I’ll come along too.”
-
-Rouse laid a restraining hand upon his shoulder. “No. Leave things alone
-for now. I’ll go and see what he’s got to say. There’ll be plenty of
-time for you afterwards. Go in and see if you can’t bag me a hot bath!
-And,” he added over his shoulder as he was moving off, “somewhere in my
-study there’s a tin of sardines. It would be a rather pleasing thought
-if you bust it open so that we can give them a decent burial on a slice
-of bread.”
-
-Terence made no answer: he just stood hesitantly where Rouse had left
-him watching as he went to meet his doom.
-
-And now the way across the sodden football ground seemed very long. Only
-now that he was alone, and going backward instead of forward, did Rouse
-thoroughly realise the ache that was in his legs. Each footstep became a
-dragging effort.
-
-It suddenly struck him that this would never do. Roe would be watching
-him. Very likely the Head was peeping out from behind his curtains. He
-would look to them as if he were going guiltily to the scaffold. He
-assumed an extravagant jauntiness after that. On the gravel path he met
-the group of enthusiasts who had been walking behind him all the way
-from Rainhurst, and he stopped and curveted humorously before them, his
-overcoat shining like oilskin, raindrops flying like spray from his
-sleeves and trouser legs.
-
-“The performing sea-lion,” said he. “My next will be Sir Henry Irving.”
-He suddenly whipped his bowler hat from his head, dented it with one
-blow of his clenched fist and pulled it far down over his ears. Then he
-stood before them with folded arms. “Fifty faces under one
-hat—Napoleon!” His hands flew to the battered bowler and twisted it
-round with wild movements. “Charlie Chaplin!” Again he bounded about.
-His hat received another violent buffet. He faced them again. “A Nun!”
-Then he pulled it to one side and declared “Father Christmas!” Finally
-he made one swift gesture and struck another pose. “The Head Man of
-Harley,” said he. “Hard Roe.”
-
-So far as it could be, it was lifelike. The hat was perched well forward
-over his forehead and his mouth was drawn down into a scowl. One knee
-was bent a little and his hands were clasped behind imaginary
-coat-tails.
-
-For perhaps two seconds he held the pose. Then a thunderous roar reached
-him from almost immediately above his head. It was the voice of the
-Head, and the noise shaped itself at last into the word: “_Rouse!_”
-
-Rouse shot to his full height like a man electrocuted and looked up.
-
-That which might very well have been the head of a bloodhound was
-silhouetted against the lighted background of an open window.
-
-Rouse slowly punched his hat to its right shape and placed it tenderly
-upon his head. The window was shut with a resounding bang. He began to
-move along thoughtfully towards the old oak door, and long after he had
-passed out of sight beyond it there still stood huddled aside in the
-darkness his erstwhile audience in attitudes of absolute astonishment.
-
-Alone for a moment, Rouse spent a brief period of time in an attitude of
-reverence striving to recover his proper dignity. Then he moved solemnly
-forward across the small space that separated him from the oak door
-wherein he was to learn his sentence. He knocked respectfully. At first
-he could hear no answer. But at last the silence was broken and a stern
-voice said to him: “Come in.”
-
-He went in cheerfully. Except for one electric candlestick upon the
-writing-table, the room was in darkness, but the candle was so placed
-that it shone directly upon the Head’s lined countenance, and Rouse
-could see that it was very grimly set. He moved across the room and
-stood before the table in readiness to learn the worst. Their eyes met.
-Rouse did not give way. He looked at the Head, not impudently, but with
-evident self-reliance. And the Head looked at him.
-
-“Where have you been, Rouse?”
-
-For one moment Rouse was in doubt as to how much was known, and it was
-on the tip of his tongue to say: “Bird’s-nesting,” or: “I’ve been out
-into the country, sir, and I was a bit late back.” But something in the
-other’s expectant eyes warned him, and finally he answered simply
-enough: “It was the Rainhurst match, sir. And we’ve been to play it.”
-
-The Head made no move. “You led me to believe that the whole of your
-fixtures for the season were cancelled.” He paused. “In this school—or
-indeed in any school—there must be one Head and one alone!”
-
-It occurred to Rouse to murmur brightly the truism that two heads are
-better than one, but he remained discreetly silent.
-
-“My orders were that, until the captain of football was properly
-recognised in this school, football was to cease. In addition, you have
-been out of bounds. I find that the whole school have been with you and
-there is no doubt that it was you who persuaded them to go. You have
-dared to challenge my authority. By posing as a martyr to my stern
-ruling you have earned such easy popularity that your vanity has grown
-into a foolish bubble. I think that when the school wakes up to-morrow
-to find what you have led them into that bubble will be pricked. You
-will be no longer a self-appointed hero; you will have very little to be
-proud about. No doubt you considered that by devising the expedition
-which you led this afternoon you were covering yourself with fame. It
-might have been so. But those who knew me at Wilton could tell you that
-it was a very idle hope if you thought that you could defeat me.” He
-paused. “Why did you do it?” he demanded, in sudden violent anger.
-
-Rouse was about to answer, but the Head leaned forward across the table
-and pointed at him with a thick forefinger. It was clear that he
-required no answer.
-
-“I can tell you why,” said he. “It was to gratify your self-conceit. In
-the face of my stringent order, you deliberately arranged a match in
-which you could pose as captain of the school team, purely to appease
-your injured vanity.”
-
-He stopped suddenly. Rouse’s countenance had undergone a surprising
-change. There was no longer any expression at all to be discerned upon
-it. His face had become a mask. He was a little pale. The only signs
-that there was any life behind it lay in the brightness of his eyes and
-the occasional movement of his mouth.
-
-A gentle glow of satisfaction spread over the Headmaster. His words had
-been meant to hurt and they had succeeded. He went on ruthlessly:
-
-“You had no thought whatever for the school. It was nothing to you that
-junior boys were missing the whole of their football through your blind
-selfishness. To retire from your false position was more than your crass
-conceit would let you do. But to justify yourself in remaining a kind of
-figurehead in the school you arranged this match. No doubt you have
-considered the possibility of your expulsion. It may be that you think
-your safety lies in strength of numbers.... You will tell me that you
-are no more to blame than any other boy in the school. I believe others
-are ready to say the same. I am fully prepared to find you eagerly
-shirking the blame that any worthy captain would accept for the conduct
-of his team. You, who were eager enough to pose as captain, are quite
-unready to take responsibility. That you require the school to share
-with you. I have considered that fact very carefully this evening whilst
-I have sat here waiting for your return, and I have already said that
-when the excitement of this afternoon has passed, and the aftermath sets
-in, when the school looks round to-morrow for something freshly
-interesting to attract them, they will receive a shock. I shall be
-interested to notice how much you personally suffer from that shock. I
-do not intend to expel you. I intend to demonstrate to the school
-exactly what you have led them into, and your own punishment will lie in
-the slow realisation that will come to you of the great injury which
-you, in your vain bravado, have done to your school. From to-morrow
-games of every conceivable kind will cease. Hitherto the boys, robbed of
-football, have been able to glean some satisfaction from minor forms of
-sport. To-morrow all such opportunities will have vanished. By my orders
-the fives courts will be closed. The gymnasium will be locked up. I have
-written a note this evening to the school’s boxing professional to tell
-him that his services will not be required next term. Every kind of
-sports kit in the school will be impounded. Any boy seen in athletic
-attire will be placed in detention. In addition, the town will be placed
-out of bounds. School hours will be increased. The only recreation
-allowed will take the form of outdoor walks by forms under a form
-master.”
-
-The Head suddenly sat back in his chair and made a gesture of final
-triumph.
-
-“You have sinned,” said he, “but it is the school that will do penance.”
-
-Rouse had never so much as moved a muscle of his face. Just as he had
-foretold, the raindrops had trickled into a pool about his feet. Now at
-last his lips parted.
-
-“Thank you for telling me your intentions, sir,” said he. “I shall know
-now what to do.”
-
-The Head rose slowly to his feet.
-
-“Your tone signifies that you still do not thoroughly understand the
-great punishment you have brought upon the school. That decides for me
-the one point upon which I was still uncertain. It is clear that there
-is no hope of an altered attitude on your part. Let me then add this. I
-have explained that all sports will cease and I have no intention of
-relaxing my decision. It follows that every coach at present here will
-be unemployed, and will therefore leave the school. Since there will be
-no games, and no coaches, there will be no necessity for a games master.
-Mr Nicholson will therefore go to another school. And it will be your
-fault that the school has lost him.” He paused. “Now that you understand
-the punishment that your bravado has brought upon those whom you essayed
-to lead,” said he, “you may go.”
-
-There was a moment’s silence. Their eyes met.
-
-Then Rouse turned and out of the room he went; slowly, stiffly, as one
-who walks in his sleep.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX
- THE CUP OF BITTERNESS
-
-
-The Headmaster’s forecast of how the school would feel when they woke up
-on the morning after, and of how they would take the news, was very
-tolerably correct. Some heard the truth overnight and scarcely slept.
-But it was not till breakfast-time on the Sunday morning that the report
-could properly be spread. By dinner-time it had found its way into the
-farthest corners of the school, and that everybody knew was evident by
-the bump with which the school’s good spirits fell. Most boys had
-wakened in excellent humour, refreshed after a good night, eager to talk
-over with others the outstanding points of that great game, and full of
-satisfaction at having been at the school during a term when such an
-historic match had been played.
-
-They were ready, too, for fresh sensations. That followed as a matter of
-course. Very few really believed that that expedition could have taken
-place without somehow coming to the notice of the Head, and the air was
-alive with surmise as to what he would do.
-
-The news of what he had already done hit them with a thud.
-
-At first it seemed incredible—that part which concerned Toby, anyway.
-And then when confirmation of it came from every available source, and
-there could be no further doubt, the school bowed their heads to the
-blow, and Harley passed into mourning.
-
-There were many who could not believe that there was not some way out.
-The ban on games was not so very terrible. But that, because of that
-match with Rainhurst, Toby Nicholson should go, and with him the school
-boxing coach and the gym. instructors, was too shockingly bad to be
-true. Everybody had known why Toby had gone to town that day. He had
-known about the match, and so he had kept away. Now he was to pay the
-penalty for not denouncing it. For a while brains were dulled. The
-brightest boys could think of no way of escape save humble apology to
-the Head or open riot. The latter could scarcely save Toby; it might in
-the end only serve to aggravate the general position, and the former was
-almost more than they could visualise. It would, in any case, only mean
-sacrificing Rouse to save Toby.
-
-In every study friends sat together in silent wretchedness. There was
-scarcely a face in all the school that had not grown noticeably longer
-since morning. Rouse was little to be seen. A few had passed him walking
-across the open, with head erect and a face that was quite
-expressionless, but none except seniors had had a word with him, and
-even they could not guess accurately what his real feelings were. That
-he was keeping them to himself, and that he was very badly hit, was the
-most they could report.
-
-Terence only was with him in his study when Toby knocked quietly at the
-door, just before dinner-time, and came in, and Rouse got up stiffly and
-stood at the table watching him as he entered, palpably afraid to hope
-for any better news.
-
-“Is it true, sir?” said he at last. “Did he mean it?”
-
-Toby rested his hands cheerfully upon his hips.
-
-“It’s true, yes; but after all, term’s nearly over. It’s not so very
-awful.”
-
-Rouse drew away.
-
-“But it’s my fault. That’s the trouble. The Head told me so. He got at
-me.” He paused. There was silence for a moment. Then he said again: “He
-got at me.”
-
-“How?”
-
-“Somehow he’d come to know that the fellows had planned to share the
-blame. He said I was afraid to take it on my own shoulders. He said it
-was my personal vanity that the school would have to suffer for now.
-Because I was too conceited——”
-
-Toby stopped him.
-
-“He didn’t tell me that. He said that I was clearly too recently a
-schoolboy to carry proper weight with the fellows here now. His idea was
-that it would do me a great deal of good to go to another school for a
-while and gain experience in handling youngsters, and then in a year or
-so’s time perhaps come back here, with a heavier manner about me, and
-try again. He considers that half the trouble here this term has been
-because I have not exercised proper influence with you chaps. He is
-prepared to recommend me to a post at another school. But to strengthen
-his own position here, he wants me to go this week and not to wait till
-the end of the term. That’s all.”
-
-Rouse shook his head.
-
-“No,” said he. “He was right. It’s my fault; and besides, how about
-Wilcox and the gym. sergeants?”
-
-“Wilcox has had notice,” answered Toby. “The Head is going to recommend
-him for another job, too. The gym. sergeants are to shut up the gym. and
-go for a holiday. And they’re to wait instructions. But he doesn’t want
-me to come back whilst you two are here. He thinks I’ve a bad influence
-over you somehow or other.”
-
-“What shall we do?” asked Terence, speaking for the first time. “Where
-will you go?”
-
-“I shall go for a holiday,” he answered. “And,” he added, “_you’ve_ got
-to cheer up. You’ve had your good time. You played the match. My biggest
-regret is that I wasn’t there to see it. I don’t mind my gruelling. You
-mustn’t mind yours.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-Now there was throughout this mournful Sunday only one study in Harley
-that held a young man whose countenance was not distressed. Upon this
-young man’s lips there was, as a matter of fact, a decided smile. He sat
-at his table looking cheerfully across the room at Christopher Woolf
-Roe, and when he spoke his voice was light.
-
-“When I first heard it,” he was saying, “I was frightfully fed up,
-because I’d a pretty decent chance of being captain of boxing next year
-and I’ve been practising a good deal, whilst there’s been no footer. It
-seemed to me that this rather upset my apple-cart. I had a sudden vision
-of boxing being barred next term, just like footer has been this, and I
-can tell you I didn’t like it. But I can see now that after all it isn’t
-at all a bad scheme of your father’s. He’s caught them on the hop.
-To-day everybody will be Rugger mad. And this is the time to get them.
-You and I may be able to give some colours away even yet. Did you tell
-your father about my plan?”
-
-“Well, I told him you had one, but as a matter of fact he got rather
-annoyed.”
-
-Coles was decidedly taken aback.
-
-“Annoyed? Why?”
-
-“He seemed to think it was a bit patronising of you to make a plan at
-all.”
-
-“Oh, nonsense!” snapped Coles. “He didn’t understand. You didn’t explain
-it properly.”
-
-“I didn’t have time.”
-
-Coles shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“Well, anyway, I shall try it all the same, and then when he finds out
-how successful it turns out perhaps he’ll alter his mind. When I first
-got the idea I never thought I’d have such a topping chance as this to
-put it into effect. Just imagine Rouse’s feelings now. If ever he’s
-going to do what we want, now’s the chance. If he needs anything to help
-him decide we ought to send it to him. My original idea was just to play
-on the fact that he’d had his day and he ought to be satisfied, and let
-the school get on with it. This is twenty times better. It’s a dead
-snip.” He laughed shortly. After a moment he opened a book upon the
-table and took from between the pages a sheet of plain paper. This he
-passed with evident pride to Roe. “Would you recognise that writing?”
-said he.
-
-Roe peered at it thoughtfully.
-
-“No,” said he at last. “It looks like some kid’s.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-Curiously enough, Terence expressed exactly the same opinion when that
-sheet of paper was handed to him a few hours later. He added, however, a
-brief proviso.
-
-“Naturally,” said he, “a fellow who wants to write an anonymous letter
-doesn’t use his own handwriting.”
-
-Rouse had moved to his side and was reading it through again with solemn
-eyes. At last he spoke.
-
-“Do you think that’s true? Whoever he is, do you think he’s right?”
-
-“I think he’s off his nut.”
-
-Rouse laid the paper upon the table and carefully smoothed it out. Then
-he sat down and began to read it through all over again.
-
-It was quite a short note. It had no proper beginning and no ending. It
-purported to be a mere statement of fact.
-
-
-“There is a general feeling in the school,” it read, “that as you have
-had your ambition and led the school team on the footer field you ought
-to give way now. The fellows think that if it’s a question of
-sacrificing either you or Mr Nicholson, it ought not to be Mr Nicholson
-who must suffer for what was your idea. Some of us have decided to let
-you know this.”
-
-
-For a little while Rouse sat with his head propped in his hands staring
-at it fixedly, and eventually he sat back.
-
-“Whoever it was,” said he, “he read my thoughts very well indeed. What
-he’s written down is exactly what I’ve been thinking all day. The only
-thing I’m afraid of is this. Supposing I go to the Head and give in.
-Supposing I promise to play under Roe and get the school to recognise
-him as captain. What will the Head do? Will he play the game? I’ve got a
-horrible fear at the back of my head that he won’t. I can picture the
-way he’ll smile. He’ll say that he’s very glad to hear it. And then if I
-say: ‘Now, will you let Mr Nicholson stay?’ he’ll open his eyes at me
-and say: ‘Good gracious, boy, I’m not here to make bargains. My decision
-of last night was not a threat; it was a punishment.’ And then I shall
-have humbled the school for nothing.”
-
-Terence moved towards him again and gripped him by the shoulders.
-
-“Look here. Don’t you do anything confoundedly idiotic. Leave the Head
-absolutely alone. We’re not going to let a man win a fight by hitting
-below the belt. Toby can look after himself. As he says, it’s nearly the
-end of term already. We’ll see it out. This rotten note is a lie from
-start to finish. There’s no such feeling in the school at all. Don’t you
-be guyed by a thing like this.”
-
-“Well, who’s written it?” demanded Rouse. “Tell me that. The thing was
-left lying on this table. Somebody must have put it there.”
-
-Terence took it up once more.
-
-“Let’s have another look,” said he.
-
-Next moment there came a gentle tap at the door, and the one who in all
-the school Rouse would have least wanted to see that note came in, and
-he sprang up quickly. It was Toby.
-
-Rouse looked at Terence with quick meaning, but Terence ignored him.
-
-“Here, Toby,” said he, “you’re just the chap we want. Have a look at
-this.”
-
-Rouse sprang towards it.
-
-“No. Give it to me. It’s mine. My mind’s made up. That doesn’t make any
-difference at all.”
-
-“Yes, it does,” said Terence sharply. “It’s getting at you. You believe
-it’s true.”
-
-“It is true. Give it to me. I want it.”
-
-Terence pushed him away, then stretched out his hand towards Toby.
-
-“Take it,” he said. “Tell Rouse what you think of a thing like this.”
-
-Toby came towards him with a puzzled manner. He glanced quickly at
-Rouse, and noting his expression turned to Terence; then in the scramble
-for possession, he suddenly snatched the sheet of paper out of his hand
-and moved aside with it. Rouse stopped abruptly and looked at him
-hopelessly, while Terence, glaring defiantly, sat down at last in a
-chair and said:
-
-“Don’t be such an ass. Why shouldn’t he see it? It’s only Toby.”
-
-There was a short silence.
-
-At last Toby looked at them each in turn.
-
-“Where did you get this?”
-
-“He found it on the table when he came in after dinner,” said Terence.
-
-“Who do you suppose put it there?”
-
-“I only wish I knew.”
-
-“D’you know who wrote it?”
-
-“No,” said Terence. “Either someone’s disguised his handwriting or else
-it’s a mere kid.”
-
-“What does it matter anyway?” said Rouse. “It’s true, and that’s an end
-of it.”
-
-Toby was reading it through again and looking carefully at the writing.
-
-“As a matter of fact,” he said at last, “I can tell you who wrote this.”
-
-The two chums turned to him.
-
-“There’s only one fellow I know of who makes a ‘T’ like that,” said
-Toby. “It’s a pretty good effort at hiding his hand, but it’s not quite
-good enough. I could identify that ‘T’ anywhere. I’ve seen it too often.
-The fellow who wrote this is in my form.”
-
-He waited a moment as if that were an intentional hint.
-
-“Well?” said Terence.
-
-“Carr wrote this.”
-
-There was a moment’s utter stillness. At last Terence made a peculiar
-noise in his throat and turned contemptuously away. Rouse moved slowly
-towards Toby, and taking the note from him again looked at it once more.
-
-Then he said:
-
-“Carr? Why on earth should Carr write a thing like this?”
-
-“Oh, you ass,” cried Terence, jumping up with a wild gesture. “Can’t you
-see it? Haven’t you tumbled yet? Why, good Lord, man! whose fag is
-Carr?”
-
-“Coles’,” said Rouse, in a whisper.
-
-“Yes,” repeated Terence, “Coles’.” He waited a moment. “And so,” he
-added, “Carr wrote that because he was made to. Hasn’t Coles got a hold
-on the kid? Didn’t Henry tell us that Carr was the only fellow who
-wasn’t delighted about the match? Do you wonder he wasn’t delighted when
-he knew he’d got to write something like this on the strength of it?
-Coles probably intended to send you a note like this anyway. The Head’s
-given him a better opening than he ever bargained for, that’s all. Carr
-wrote it, yes. And Coles made it up.”
-
-Rouse turned very slowly upon his heel and faced him.
-
-“Then,” said he, “if that’s so, it may have been Coles who let the Head
-know that all you fellows had promised to share the blame if there were
-any trouble about this match.”
-
-“I should say it most certainly was. He probably told Roe and got him to
-pass it on.”
-
-“Yes,” said Rouse thoughtfully. “Yes. I suppose that would be it.”
-
-For a moment or two he stood like a man awaking from a trance. His eyes
-passed slowly and unseeingly round well-known objects about the study,
-and came to rest at last upon Toby’s thoughtful countenance.
-
-“Did you want to see me, sir?”
-
-“What I came in about will wait,” said Toby. “But now that I’m here I
-should just like to say this. If you do anything fat-headed—anything on
-the lines of that letter—it will be strictly against my wishes, and
-absolutely against the best interests of the school. If you lose your
-nerve now you may undo all the good that your example has done for the
-school throughout this term. I am going to-morrow, and when I leave here
-I want to be sure that you will carry on the good work you have been
-doing all the way through the term. I want you to promise me not to give
-in just because—it hurts. It’s not for your sake, it’s for the good of
-Harley.”
-
-“Yes, that’s all right, sir,” said Rouse, in a peculiarly small voice.
-“I quite understand. You can trust me to see that the chaps hang on to
-the end ... now. I wasn’t thinking of that so much. Only if you don’t
-want me particularly I’d like you to excuse me a moment?” He paused. “I
-should like,” he added, “to go along and find Coles.”
-
-The brothers Nicholson looked first at him and then at one another.
-Clearly the same thoughts had entered either mind.
-
-It was Terence who spoke.
-
-“There’s only one thing,” said he. “I ought to just mention it. You
-haven’t forgotten that Coles is something of a boxer? You remember he
-won the heavyweights last year?”
-
-Rouse nodded his head.
-
-“I know.”
-
-“That’s all right then,” said Terence. “Would you like me to wait here?”
-
-“You can wait anywhere you like,” said Rouse, “as long as you don’t come
-too.” He began to walk out of the door, then turned and spoke over his
-shoulder. “Yes,” he said rather more graciously, “I _should_ rather like
-you to be here when I come back if you don’t mind waiting.”
-
-He went out and closed the door behind him, then he began to walk
-quickly along the corridor and down the stairs. Out in the open he
-became an object of general interest. He was conscious that all who met
-him glanced at him in curiosity. He gave no sign of his feelings at all.
-He looked at one or two that he met and nodded to them cheerfully. At
-last he was opposite Seymour’s, and he went in and mounted the stairs
-two at a time.
-
-Outside Coles’ study he stopped just for a second and knocked. Then he
-went in. At first there appeared to be nobody inside. But he glanced
-into the corner where an easy-chair was placed before the fire and
-observed a tuft of hair showing above it. He moved forward and leaned
-over. Coles was sitting there asleep. His mouth was open and his
-features limp. A plain young man awake, he was widely renowned for his
-extreme ugliness when asleep. Rouse dropped his hand on to his shoulder
-and shook him vigorously. There came a distant growling. Rouse continued
-to shake.
-
-“What on earth is it?” muttered the object in the chair, slowly opening
-his eyes. “Who wants me? Why don’t you——” He recognised Rouse with a
-start and stopped abruptly. “Hullo!” he said. He rose somewhat foolishly
-and began to smooth his hair with his hands. “I was asleep.”
-
-“Yes,” said Rouse calmly. “So I noticed. I’m just about to put you to
-sleep _again_ too.”
-
-“Eh?”
-
-Rouse explained.
-
-“I’m going to hit you under the chin,” said he, “and I hope it’ll hurt.
-I thought you’d like to know.”
-
-At first Coles only stared at him confusedly, but presently the effects
-of sleep began to pass from him, and he collected his thoughts and made
-ready to deal with the situation. He went over Rouse’s surprising
-statement word for word, in silent communion with his inner self,
-analysing it with evident care, and at length he looked up at Rouse
-queerly.
-
-“You’re going to hit me under the chin? But why are you going to do
-that?”
-
-He did not seem particularly disturbed at the prospect. He was merely
-politely interested. Possibly this was because he was very well aware
-that he himself could box and that Rouse could not.
-
-Rouse did not waste words. He laid that strangely significant sheet of
-paper upon the table rather as if it were a mandate, and pointed at it
-wrathfully.
-
-“I think you’ve seen that before?”
-
-Coles leaned forward indifferently.
-
-“What is it? I can’t see.”
-
-Next moment it was thrust angrily before his eyes and held there.
-
-“Can you see it now?” said Rouse. “Is that _your_ composition?”
-
-Coles read it through coolly.
-
-“Are you under the impression that I wrote this?”
-
-“I know who wrote it,” said Rouse. “I’m asking you whether you made it
-up.”
-
-Coles weighed his answer with care.
-
-“If I wanted to write a note to you I should put my name to it. This has
-been written by some kid.”
-
-Rouse folded the paper up and put it in his pocket with some
-deliberation.
-
-“We won’t argue about it. I didn’t really expect you to admit the truth.
-But I wanted to mention it to you so that you’d understand what the
-trouble was about. There’s another thing as well. Can you tell me how
-the Head found out that everybody who played in the match yesterday had
-promised to take a fair share of the blame if there were any trouble?”
-
-“I wasn’t even aware that he did find out.”
-
-“Well, he did. And that’s one reason why he decided to punish the whole
-school by sending Mr Nicholson away. I suppose, as a matter of fact, you
-told Roe?”
-
-Coles pushed his chair angrily away from him and faced Rouse across a
-clear space. When next he spoke his voice was thick. His wicked temper
-was rising rapidly beyond control.
-
-“Is this all you came in for? Did you butt in here and wake me up just
-to chuck lies at me, or is there anything else you want to say? If not
-you can get out, and as quickly as you like. You may think you’re still
-captain of footer, and you may think sheer swank will carry you through
-to the end of the term. But it won’t go much further with me. I’ve had
-enough of it. Either get out or apologise.”
-
-[Illustration:
-
- “I THINK YOU’VE SEEN THAT BEFORE?”]
-
-Rouse drew back a little. He was slowly turning up the sleeves of his
-jacket.
-
-“I came in here to hit you under the chin. As soon as you’re ready I’ll
-begin.”
-
-Coles looked at him with a certain narrow satisfaction, then pushed the
-table to one side and moved a chair.
-
-“You can see how much space there is here. You’ll have to stand up to
-it. It won’t be much use running round the room when you find how it
-hurts.”
-
-Then as he put up his hands Rouse stepped in without delay and struck at
-him with his clenched fist. What followed was very much what might have
-been expected. For a little while Rouse appeared likely to slaughter his
-man before the fight had really got going. His blows knew the utter fury
-of one who fights with right upon his side but very little science. Any
-one of these blows would, had they landed fairly and squarely upon their
-target, have put Coles down and out. Unhappily they were all partly
-warded off. Coles merely seemed to stand aside and watch Rouse
-interestedly as he strove to find an opening, and at last, when the
-opportunity arose, he hit back at him with all his force and brought him
-up short.
-
-As Rouse came in again Coles took up the defensive rôle once more. He
-had never shown better form. The cramped nature of the room prevented
-any possibility of footwork. It was incumbent upon him to stand his
-ground and fight, and this seldom suits a boxer who can use his feet,
-but Coles suited himself to the circumstances with outstanding success.
-His temper, which a few moments ago had been at fever heat, slowly
-cooled off as he found himself gaining the upper hand. The thought that
-a few moments hence he would have Rouse at his mercy acted as a sedative
-upon him, and presently he smiled. Rouse noticed it and drew back for a
-breather, collecting his energy the while for a greater and fiercer
-onslaught yet. Next moment Coles’ left shot out and tilted back his
-head. The pain of the blow was considerable, but in his present mood it
-counted with Rouse as naught. He set his teeth, adopted a new pose and
-prepared to dash in again. Before he had finally made up his mind,
-however, which hand to hit with, that long left had come out again and
-drawn a trickle of blood from his nose. He moved forward wrathfully and
-suddenly let fly with his own left. Coles caught the blow neatly with
-his elbow and slammed in a right swung. For a second or so it seemed to
-Rouse that his neck had been broken. He was not at all sure where he
-was. It came to him quite suddenly that he had fallen sideways and hit
-his head against the wall, so he straightened himself with an almost
-deprecating smile and put up his hands again.
-
-Just as before Coles’ left shot out and tapped his nose. Rouse became
-decidedly annoyed. He sprang in and swung up his fist towards Coles’
-chin. To hit Coles on the chin was all he had come for, and he could see
-no reason for delaying any longer. The blow never landed. Coles merely
-tilted his head tauntingly out of reach and countered again with his
-right. Rouse swayed giddily backwards and was brought up straight again
-by a blow in the middle of the waistcoat. Then for a few short moments
-he stood still, considering the situation in a puzzled manner whilst he
-faced Coles with a badly bleeding countenance and glassy eyes. The worst
-of a fight with bare fists is that it makes such a mess. He could feel
-that his face was rapidly growing unsightly; he was aware that blood was
-dripping down his chin and on to his collar. Unfortunately he could do
-nothing to stop it.
-
-He had had no fights since his early youth. Coles was hitting very
-straight and cruelly hard. He seemed to be planting blows on the same
-place over and over again too. Rouse could tell that from the pain of
-their landing.
-
-At last he found himself rocking groggily on his pins and he pulled
-himself together sharply, and when next Coles came at him he struck out
-lustily with either hand. One blow landed and he was delighted beyond
-measure. The other was somehow lost in mid-air, and before he could
-puzzle out what had happened Coles had hit him again with his straight
-left and dazed his thinking powers.
-
-Rouse’s eyes recovered their normal vision slowly, and he looked before
-him. The walls seemed to be caving in, the chairs and the tables were
-dancing before his eyes. Coles looked disproportionate and rather
-horrible. He wondered if all this meant that he was going to be beaten.
-He could not believe it. To be licked by Coles, particularly when it was
-he himself who had started the fight, would be the last drop in his cup
-of bitterness. He dimly conceived what he would feel like when the news
-went round the school. What would Nick say when he crept back with a
-disfigured countenance and a look of shame? These thoughts passed
-through his mind at high speed but with peculiar clearness, and their
-effect was immediate. He poised himself squarely upon his feet. Somehow
-or other he had got to hit Coles on the chin, and if he could not do it
-by attack then he would do it by countering with all his force each time
-Coles himself came in. As he waited he furtively wiped his mouth with
-the back of his hand. His lips were very bruised. One of his teeth was
-loose. He felt quietly angry and decidedly disappointed. But under no
-circumstances whatever would he give in. He was not going to admit
-defeat even if it were pointed out to him whilst he lay stiffly
-outstretched upon the floor. In point of fact he found himself wondering
-whether there would be room for him to lie stiffly on that particular
-floor anyway. He very nearly smiled at that. Then with sudden resolution
-Coles was moving forward. To Rouse he seemed strangely magnified. He
-came with a watchful attitude, his eyes brightly ashine, his clenched
-fists ready as if for a final blow. Rouse made preparation. With
-alarming suddenness Coles was on top of him. His fists were striking out
-with terrible intent. They were landing almost as they liked. Rouse
-rocked this way and that. At last he caught a sudden glimpse of Coles’
-face for once temptingly exposed, and he hit out on the spur of the
-moment. His fist landed gloriously, and with delightful accuracy, upon
-the chin, and he gave a sigh of content. Whatever else happened now he
-had at least done what he had come for. He had hit Coles on the chin.
-The blow gave him a second’s respite. He had evidently hurt Coles a good
-deal. Yet in the end it availed him little. Before the faint smile of
-satisfaction had died from his lips Coles was up against him again,
-driving at his face with long arms that could not be properly avoided.
-He fell forward, and finding himself leaning against Coles’ waistcoat,
-struck at it cheerfully with each hand in turn, and heard Coles grunt
-distressfully. He drew back to give himself more room. Coles was a
-little unsteady upon his feet.
-
-They could face each other now upon more level terms. Rouse watched him
-closely, wondering what his next move would be. His own strength was
-giving out and he had no intention of wasting it in fruitless attacks.
-
-Then Coles began to spar for an opening. Rouse waited dubiously, not
-knowing quite what this portended. He received a blow full in the mouth
-with the utmost surprise, and found himself falling backwards against
-the wall again. He strove to stand upright. Coles’ chin showed again for
-one moment clearly exposed, and he struck at it with all the enthusiasm
-which he still possessed, but the blow only half landed. Then he became
-suddenly angry at the absurdity of fighting in the preposterous amount
-of space afforded by Coles’ study. In his last tumble he had barked his
-leg against a fallen chair. Unless his eyesight deceived him there was
-not a picture in all the room that was hanging straight.
-
-Blood had splashed across a part of the wall-paper.
-
-But he remembered again that after all it had been he who had started
-the fight. It was his own fault.
-
-Coles was coming again. Rouse strove to stand steadily. His face was to
-be the target again. He could see severe intention in Coles’ face. But
-now resolve came to him anew. He would not be knocked out. He would
-fight to the end. So long as he stood up he could not be considered
-beaten. He looked for Coles with fiery eyes and smote at him. Coles was
-grinning. As he smote that grin vanished suddenly, and he knew that he
-had got home. He steadied himself and smote again. Again he landed
-nicely. Then it was Coles’ turn. He struck cleanly, and once again Rouse
-tumbled sideways. His hand went out and found the wall, and he steadied
-himself like that for a moment, then turned and looked for Coles again.
-He began to wish he had taken off his coat. He might have done better.
-He was uncomfortably hot. There was a nasty taste in his mouth. His eyes
-were closing. His head sang. He was giddy. Coles caught him in the face.
-He rocked a little more. At last he began to slither foolishly down the
-wall. Half-way he stopped, one hand propping him up. He tried to give
-himself a shove off towards Coles, and floundered towards him hopefully.
-Coles loomed up against him with fists like small hams feeling their way
-towards his face again. One of them landed with a resounding smack. He
-sank down on to the floor and stayed there for a moment. At last he got
-up. Coles said nothing. He just got ready to hit again.
-
-Rouse saw it coming. He would not be beaten. He struck out for himself
-gamely, missed, and hit again. Coles got in the way of that last one and
-received it on the chin, and Rouse tried to follow it up. He was half
-afraid that if Coles hit him again he would succumb. He drew away from
-the friendliness of the wall and tumbled against the table. They were
-out in the only clear space in the room again at last, and, facing
-Coles, he saw him preparing for a final blow; he put up his tired hands
-doggedly, leaned forward and struck at the dim shadow that was Coles,
-but the shadow slipped aside. Then he received a thudding blow in the
-mouth, heard himself give an unwitting sob of despair, felt himself
-falling. He was on the floor. He tried to get up. His limbs would not
-answer his behests. He kicked out uselessly with one leg trying to find
-support. At last he lay still.
-
-When at length he came vaguely to his senses and looked round and about,
-Coles was sitting on the table staring at him sullenly.
-
-He noticed with interest that Coles was marked about the face rather
-more heavily than he had supposed. Then he closed his eyes again. At
-last he struggled up. He looked for Coles politely, found himself
-standing with his back towards him, and turned.
-
-His lips were swollen and difficult to control, so that he spoke with a
-certain indistinctness.
-
-“Well,” he said, “I’d misjudged things. You can box and I can’t. You
-were too hot for me. If you don’t mind we’ll go on with this another
-day. And between now and then I’ll learn to box too.”
-
-Coles looked at him contemptuously.
-
-“You’re too late,” said he. “There isn’t going to be any boxing. It’s
-knocked on the head. That’s one of the thoughtful things you’ve done for
-the school, and I hope you’re satisfied.”
-
-Rouse turned and went out. The corridor was deserted and he was
-grateful. He was not anxious to be seen coming out of Coles’ study like
-that. He went unsteadily down the stairs and out into the open. The cold
-wind cut at the broken skin bitterly, but now he held his head high and
-went almost proudly across the open towards Morley’s. He was not of the
-type that show their inner feelings to one and all. He knew that fellows
-of all kinds and conditions in Harley would be looking to him for a lead
-as to the correct behaviour at this final crisis, and he must set the
-right example. It was possible that they might think his face had
-suffered like that in the match, and in any case he was not going to
-look ashamed about it. Even when Coles began to boast, and people came
-to know that he had picked a quarrel with Coles and had got a hiding,
-there were only a very few in the school who would not understand that
-Coles could box and he couldn’t.
-
-He came at last to his own study and went in. Toby had gone, but Terence
-rose from a chair and moved towards him. He took one glance at Rouse and
-turned away. There was a moment’s silence. Rouse went to the table and
-sat down. He was trembling a little. His hands would not keep still. At
-last he looked up.
-
-Presently he made his confession.
-
-“He put me down,” said he.
-
-“Often?” asked Terence gently.
-
-“Yes. Quite often.”
-
-Terence nodded his head sympathetically. He saw that there was no need
-for words.
-
-At last Rouse leaned his elbows upon the table and buried his battered
-face in his hands. There was nobody but Terence there to see, so what
-did it matter? He was suddenly brave no more ... he was speaking his
-inner feelings.
-
-“This is the term that was to have been an unbeaten season, and it’s
-come to pieces in our hands.” He waited. The room was very silent. “The
-chaps haven’t got to look far to see what I’ve done for the school. I’ve
-ruined the footer, and now because of me every game that a man can think
-of has been stopped, and I’ve got Toby the sack—the finest fellow who
-ever stepped. Last of all I’ve had a licking from the fellow who always
-said that I wasn’t any good. What will the school say to that? Perhaps
-now they’ll see through me. Perhaps they’ll turn to somebody else.
-Supposing it’s Coles? I wonder whether it’s too late to get the Head to
-do the right thing.... P’r’aps if I did something outside the pale he
-might expel me—and keep Toby.”
-
-Terence moved to him quickly.
-
-“Listen,” he began. “Don’t talk like that. You’re forgetting. You
-promised Toby you’d hang on. Every chap in the school’s looking to you
-for a lead. And the side that wins this fight will be the side that can
-stick it out. You’re not going to weaken—now. This is the crisis. Every
-day we’re giving him more rope. Maybe he’ll hang himself if we only hang
-on. But if we give in now he’s won.”
-
-There was silence. Rouse did not look up.
-
-“Toby’s going to-morrow, and he told me to tell you the Head will find
-that the worst thing he ever did was to send him away. Toby’s not the
-only old Harleyan. Some of the others have influence. Lots of them have
-brothers here now—and sons. Sooner or later there’ll be a thundering
-row. I’ve got an idea Toby’s going to get amongst them and that all this
-will work out to the Head’s destruction. But we’ve got to stick it out.
-You see that, don’t you? If you were to get expelled—we should have
-lost. We’ve got to play a safe game till Toby gets to work.”
-
-He stopped.
-
-Rouse got slowly to his feet.
-
-“Yes,” he said at last, “that’s right. We’ve got to stick it out.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XX
- THE LAST ROUND
-
-
-They were like days of drought. Wherever one moved about the school one
-noticed everywhere the same set look on every fellow’s face of patient
-resolution. There was very little ragging. Harley had become a kind of
-expanded orphan school. They took their exercise in crocodile formation,
-moving shamefacedly two by two. The only permitted recreation was the
-reading of heavy books. No boy so much as dared to kick a fives ball
-before him along the gravel path. Few had the heart to whistle. To those
-who were onlookers of it all—the masters, school servants, neighbouring
-inhabitants—this had never been expected. So soon as the news had sped
-its rounds that Toby was leaving, and that all games were to cease,
-those who were wisest shook their heads and foretold whole-hearted
-revolution. Some vividly imagined the Head being captured by boys and
-ducked. Others anticipated open refusal to do any work whatever in
-school hours. Yet Harley took them by surprise. They went like lambs,
-and this was because they had a memory to give them heart.
-
-It was the day that Toby had left. He had caught an early train. With
-barely half-a-dozen exceptions the whole school had turned out to say
-good-bye. It had been like a ceremonial parade on Founder’s Day. Toby
-had shaken hands with every fellow he could reach. He had said nothing
-at all. He had just shaken hands. And the fellows had understood. They
-had started to sing: “He’s a jolly good fellow.” Rouse had stopped them.
-He had got up on to a pile of boxes at the station and addressed them
-with some hesitation and an uncertain voice, and he had explained things
-to them.
-
-“We’ve got to stick it out.” Those had been his words. Toby had foreseen
-this possibility and he had sent that message. “Hang on till he can
-bring up reinforcements from outside. Do nothing that may make it harder
-for you to wait. Get nobody expelled. Wait. Things will come out all
-right if you only show your grit. All you’ve got to do is to stick it
-out.”
-
-They had understood.
-
-Toby was leaving then, not for good, but merely as their messenger to
-every other old Harleyan who still loved the school, and every parent,
-and he would fetch help. They need write no whining letters home. Toby
-would know how to do it. There would be no unpleasant scandal, no
-trouble with the Press. Toby had the honour of the school at heart. He
-would know how to do it. Sooner or later the Head would find that out.
-Then it would be their day. Till then their duty lay in knowing how to
-wait. Every day that passed and left them idle and bored to tears would,
-nevertheless, be a day upon which Toby would without doubt have gone
-another step on the road of retribution.
-
-Whether he could call up the outside forces in time to avail during the
-present term could not be guessed. But he would be working for them.
-That would be enough. This was the memory that those who looked on in
-wonder at the school’s forbearance did not understand. It was Harley’s
-secret.
-
-So the days passed.
-
-The Head, for his part, found them pleasant days. He knew at last the
-wonder of his power. His strength had triumphed. He had the reputation
-of never doing the expected. His answer to their challenge had taken the
-wind completely from their sails and left them open-mouthed with awe.
-They were spellbound with his invincible strength of purpose. They
-realised at last that they had met their master. Slowly but surely he
-was making them bow before him. They had counted upon him making Rouse
-the scapegoat and they had prepared to defeat him. Instead he had
-defeated them. The feeling was delightful. He went his way with a
-shrewdly grim expression befitting a man of such resolution, but at
-heart he was laughing in delight. He began to overlook the
-disappointment he had experienced in his son. Perhaps his son was not to
-blame. After all, one of his stamp in one family was all that folk could
-reasonably expect. He looked round and about him each day and saw boys
-wriggling under his iron rule. He did not wonder why they did not defy
-him. He was content to know that they were learning a lesson they would
-never forget as long as they lived, and he gloried in prolonging it.
-Once he reminded them that their punishment could not be lightened in
-any way until Rouse came to him to say that the school would bow to his
-ruling and would recognise his son. They just ignored him.
-
-So days passed.
-
-Soon Toby had been gone a fortnight. No news came. Terence had had
-letters but they conveyed only one exhortation. They gave no such
-message as the whole school longed so feverishly to hear.
-
-And then at last, when the utter weariness of life had grown almost more
-than they could bear, and some had begun to doubt if Toby could really
-do anything for them, something happened. Terence was sitting with Rouse
-in his study one evening when there sounded upon the door a sharp,
-peremptory knock. Then the door swung on its hinges and there entered
-one who held himself strangely erect, whose chin was so proudly uplifted
-that he seemed a living example of the proud and patient spirit that was
-keeping Harley solid during this the last round of the long fight. His
-glasses had slipped a little over the bridge of his nose, and when he
-stopped and brought his gaze to bear upon them each in turn he looked at
-them quaintly over the rims. At last his bearing relaxed. Safely inside
-the room with the closed door behind him he became suddenly a human boy,
-and it was clear that he was somewhat unsettled. It made him rather more
-likeable.
-
-“I want to tell you something,” he began. “P’r’aps I ought to have come
-before, but I’ve been waiting to make sure.”
-
-“What is it, Henry?” said Rouse.
-
-Henry cast a deprecating eye at his clothes and, following his gaze,
-Rouse perceived that they were smeared with dirt. He held out his hands
-and revealed their blackened palms.
-
-“I’ve been climbing up another drain-pipe.”
-
-“How many is that you’ve climbed up now?” asked Rouse. “What is your
-average for the season?”
-
-Henry ignored him.
-
-“There’s a drain-pipe at Seymour’s,” said he, “that takes you on to a
-ledge, and you can walk along the ledge and look into Coles’ study.”
-
-“What did you want to look into Coles’ study for?”
-
-“I didn’t look in,” said Henry. “I listened.”
-
-He paused. Rouse was looking at him dubiously. Terence had moved from
-his chair and was leaning over the table.
-
-“Why couldn’t you listen at the door, then?”
-
-Henry looked at him scornfully. It seemed almost superfluous to explain
-that in the cinematograph world nobody listens at a door if they can
-climb up a pipe and listen at a window. He heaved a sigh.
-
-“Something has happened,” he said. “Until now no single fellow in the
-school has let us down. If the Head’s been looking for a chance to put
-the screw on a bit, he’s been disappointed. No one’s been caught out
-after the hours he laid down. No one has broken bounds. No one’s played
-games. The chaps have hung together. But to-night I came across Bobbie
-Carr creeping out of school just before seven o’clock.”
-
-“Well,” said Rouse, “what did you do?”
-
-“I stopped him and asked him where he was going, and he wouldn’t say. I
-jawed him a bit and told him that no matter what he was going for he
-wasn’t playing the game. I said he was bound to be caught, and he’d be
-the first one who’d let us down.”
-
-“Did he turn back?”
-
-“No,” said Henry soberly. “He shook me off and went on.”
-
-“And where do you think he’s gone?”
-
-For a moment Henry hesitated. Then he spoke up boldly.
-
-“Seeing how much I know,” said he, “I hadn’t got any doubt. It was my
-idea that Coles was sending him down to the town to get something to
-drink.”
-
-The captain of cricket and the captain of football looked at one another
-gravely and finally looked at Henry.
-
-“And so,” continued Henry, looking at them modestly over the tops of his
-glasses, “I decided to get additional information, and I climbed up the
-drain-pipe and listened at Coles’ window.”
-
-“Well?” said Terence.
-
-“There isn’t any doubt about it at all. Coles was in there with some of
-his pals and they’re drinking. Young Carr’s been sent for another
-bottle.” There was a brief silence. “That’s isn’t quite all,” said Henry
-presently. “I went back to the little gates and waited for Carr to come
-back. I meant to take the stuff away from him and bring it to you.
-But—he’s never come back. I’ve waited an hour and a half. One of two
-things has happened. Either he’s broken the bottle and gone back for
-another, or else after what I told him he’s afraid to come back. Perhaps
-he’s run away.” Henry concluded on a low note. He was clearly
-distressed. “Any day now,” said he, “Mr Nicholson might make something
-happen. The chaps have hung together all this time and given the Head no
-loophole. Now this will be found out.”
-
-It was Terence who answered first. He turned to Rouse.
-
-“You’ve tackled Coles once,” said he. “It’s my turn. I might have better
-luck. I’ll go to his study and make him say where Carr’s gone.”
-
-Rouse shook his head.
-
-“No, it would be no use. If he’s at all tight he’d only make an unholy
-shindy. That’d be worse than anything. I’ll go out. I’ll see if I can’t
-find young Carr somewhere or other between here and the town and bring
-him in.”
-
-“Why should you go?” demanded Terence. “Supposing you get caught
-yourself? The Head isn’t going to give you a second chance, you know.
-It’s asking for trouble.”
-
-“I’ll have to go,” said Rouse, “because all the trouble is my fault.
-I’ve brought enough on the school to justify me in trying to save them
-something. There’s another thing. This is the footer season, and
-according to you I’m captain of footer. This is my job.” He smiled
-disarmingly. “You can help too,” he added. “Go over to Seymour’s and
-find Saville. Tell him what’s up, and see if he can’t get Carr reported
-present until I can get him in.” He stood up. “There’s no time to waste.
-It’s nearly nine now, and if Henry’s idea is right every minute’s of
-value. Even if he’s back by now we may be able to stop him taking the
-stuff to Coles. I’m going out. You get across and find Saville.”
-
-He moved to the door.
-
-“Aren’t you taking a coat,” said Terence, “or a hat? It’s precious
-cold.”
-
-“I’ll go as I am. At this time of night it’s less conspicuous. And I can
-get out by the pavilion—the way you and I used to go when we were kids.”
-
-He waited one moment, as if wondering if he had forgotten anything, then
-he opened the door and went out.
-
-Terence turned to Henry and looked at him in queer anxiety.
-
-“You oughtn’t to have told him,” he said. “You ought to have told me
-alone. You might have known he’d want to go out. He’s nearly worried to
-death. He feels it’s his personal responsibility to Toby to make the
-chaps hang together and stick it out till he can do something for us.
-It’s getting on his nerves. All day long he’s moving amongst the chaps
-telling them to keep their pecker up. He can hardly keep still. In the
-face of news like this he was certain to go out and try to find the
-shocking little ass.”
-
-Henry looked a trifle crestfallen.
-
-“I thought he ought to be told,” he said.
-
-“Yes, yes, I know,” retorted Terence. “But supposing he gets caught
-himself? Supposing he’s seen?”
-
-Henry made a comforting grimace.
-
-“If I know Rouse as well as I think I do,” said he, “he isn’t the sort
-of guy to go and get caught.”
-
-Terence slapped one hand into the other distressfully.
-
-“You don’t know what you’re talking about. That’s just the sort of guy
-he _is_. He’s never made a plan since I knew him that ever went right.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-The Headmaster of Harley sat at his table, his elbows resting upon the
-handsome blotting-pad that graced it, and in his hands he held, with a
-curious, unnatural stiffness, a letter. His head was bowed a little, and
-his attitude was so very still that one who came unawares upon him
-sitting there might almost have thought that he had fallen asleep; but
-presently he moved his head and looked up and around him with a quick
-movement of uncertainty, as if the silence of that vast room were
-oppressing him. And if one might then have seen his face and noticed the
-setting of the deep lines upon it, one would have known the truth. Hard
-Roe was beaten.
-
-The pages of history are crowded with the names of men whose rise to
-eminence was aided by daily self-aggrandisement, but there is no record
-of any one amongst them all whose besetting weakness did not sooner or
-later compass his fall.
-
-If Hard Roe had ever properly understood this truth he had forgotten it
-long before it would have been of most use to him to remember it. For
-some few minutes he merely read the letter through and through, and at
-last, when he knew the words by heart, he found himself wondering whose
-influence lay behind it. He did not know the Governors of Harley well
-enough to understand how much they were likely to know of things at the
-school, and it never occurred to him at all that a man of Toby
-Nicholson’s stamp could have any means of influence at their councils.
-He was unaware how many parents might have lodged complaint against his
-ruling, or what influential Old Harleyans had sided against him. These
-were wheels within wheels which he could not understand. Now he was to
-leave. His term of government ended with the coming of the holidays.
-There was nothing in the letter that could properly offend. One might
-almost have thought that the regrets which it expressed were real. But
-there was nevertheless a coldness in its phrasing which succeeded
-tolerably well in conveying a stern rebuke. That he understood.
-
-He braced his shoulders.
-
-His mouth took on again a natural grimness.
-
-He looked round the room over his spectacles with little jerky movements
-of the head, seeing no single thing save pictures in his mind’s eye
-portraying that phase of the future which was of the first importance to
-his personal pride.
-
-In ten days term would be over. The probability was that the school
-would never know this sequel to the long fight until he had really gone.
-Rumours that he was not to stay might reach them during the holidays,
-but not until they reassembled for the Easter term and found that they
-had really triumphed would they be sure. His imagination presented him
-with a mental vision of how things would be then, and in the forefront
-of the picture he saw the boy who throughout the term had fought him,
-gloating over his fall. The flood-tide of Rouse’s popularity would carry
-him in wild idolatry to the top of the school. And Rouse would ascend,
-laughing bombastically at the memory of the master who had challenged
-his hold over the school and who had been defeated. He slowly shook his
-head in grave unhappiness. Always there had been strong in him a deep
-desire to make a reputation and to hold it throughout his life. He would
-like, after he had gone, that all honest fellows in the school should
-say of him that he delighted in every crisis to stand alone, that he had
-always taken them by surprise, that he had never done what they had
-counted upon him doing.
-
-Now he was defeated. The school would say of him instead that all his
-life he had done wrong and that he had never been exposed till now. The
-bubble that would be pricked would not be Rouse’s but his own. He
-suddenly stood up. To be relieved of his post was not so terrible a blow
-as was the certain knowledge that he would be remembered by the school
-only as one who had been a three months’ wonder and who had failed. That
-was more than he could bear. He looked round the room in sudden
-petulance, and thought it stiff and unresponsive. The sober pictures and
-the heavy curtains were glaring at him stupidly. He moved hesitantly
-towards the door as if to escape from this environment. He wandered into
-the passage, came to the old oak door and swung it upon its hinges. The
-night air came round the corner, cooling his forehead with the touch of
-an old friend. He knew then what he needed ... the friendly solitude of
-the night. For perhaps the last time he would roam his provinces alone,
-fighting the black depression that was slowly weighing him down.
-
-He came out on to the gravel path and looked up at Harley. Here and
-there lighted windows, out of true keeping with the school’s proud
-majesty, were winking at him as if in teasing. He turned across the
-football ground. The night air did not seem very cold. Indeed it served
-him rather well by clearing his troubled mind. So he was moving with
-hands clasped under his gown, his square-built head sunken between his
-shoulders, when his attention was suddenly distracted by a footstep upon
-the pathway by the pavilion just in front of him. He stopped and looked
-ahead, his chief hope an anxious one that he would not himself be
-noticed wandering about so oddly on a winter’s night without his hat.
-Only for one moment was he uncertain as to the identity of the young man
-who was passing. Then clear recognition came to him. That young man was
-Rouse. Funnily enough, he too was going his way without hat or overcoat,
-and the Head stared in perplexity. Next he considered the time.
-
-His definite order had declared that no boy should be out of school
-after seven o’clock. This was defiance. He moved along the grass in the
-stealthy manner of a domestic cat. Rouse, engrossed upon his mission,
-never even turned his head. At last he came to a narrow gate that led
-into the roadway, and here he made a moment’s pause before he boldly
-scrambled over and set off unhesitatingly towards the town.
-
-The Head had stopped to watch with eyes that were fixed and wide, and
-now he stood rooted to the spot, still staring tensely in the direction
-Rouse had taken. It was as though a star of hope had suddenly shone
-through the darkness of the night. The curtain had risen upon a dramatic
-scene that should prove the climax of the play. For ten days more he
-would still be Headmaster of the school. They had not yet taken from him
-the power to expel, and Rouse had played into his hands. Here was a way
-to win.
-
-That sense of crushing defeat lifted from his shoulders as if by magic.
-He turned. Decision had come to him. He began to step out towards the
-school houses. He would go to Morley’s and ask for Rouse. At this hour
-every boy in Harley should be in his study or in his cubicle. There
-could be no conceivable excuse for Rouse. The whole of Morley’s should
-know that the Headmaster had been to the house and had found him
-missing. His sense of dramatic effect bounced around his heart. The
-school should have little enough to laugh at in his own departure after
-all. His wish might yet come true. It should not be by the folly of his
-government but by the outstanding boldness of his last act that Harley
-should ever afterwards remember him. Before he left the school Rouse
-should be expelled.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXI
- SECRET SERVICE
-
-
-The fight was very nearly over. One man was covering up with evident
-caution; his legs were almost giving way beneath him. The other was
-Johnny Winter, and Johnny was standing away and waiting for his opening.
-
-They had said that he was too old. They had even thought it pathetically
-sad that a man who, in his prime, had been unbeaten champion at his
-weight, should be lured back to the ring after three years away from it
-to fight again. Some had supposed it was the bombast of the man who was
-at the top of the tree, and who claimed that not even Johnny Winter
-could have defeated him, that had tempted the master boxer of his day
-out of retirement. Others argued that the size of the purse that was up
-for competition had had the most to do with it. And they had all agreed
-that Johnny was foolish to have yielded to temptation. There was never a
-boxer in all the world who, when his day was passed, came back to the
-ring and fought again just as he had used to fight in his own hey-day.
-
-So they had said. But all his life Johnny had known himself better than
-any of his friends had ever been allowed to know him, and he had
-believed that he was not yet too completely old to win one last fight.
-Now he had proved it. It was the fourteenth round and his man was done.
-Already Johnny was sparring for his final opening. It came suddenly. The
-other man uncovered and struck out with his right. In the twinkling of
-an eye Johnny had slipped in and swung up his uppercut with deadly
-accuracy. It landed with resounding force. The man reeled and fell.
-There came ten seconds of excited wonder. Then he was out; and the air
-was thunderous with a long crash of cheering for that quiet-mannered
-little man with the wispy hair and the patient, deep-set eyes who had
-undertaken to defend his name against a young man in the prime of life,
-and had won.
-
-His seconds darted to Johnny’s side and lifted him up joyously in their
-arms. From every seat near by men had risen on to their toes and were
-reaching for his hand. Friends were elbowing their way towards him. In a
-moment they had closed round and he was hidden from sight. They crowded
-about him as he made for the gangway and went quickly through the
-cheering crowd that was blocking the way. And all the while those who
-were nearest to him could see that his expression never really altered.
-From the first round to the last he had fought with a clean and modest
-gallantry that was a natural part of him. Now that he had won he wanted
-only to escape from all the inevitable lionising that so troubled him.
-For a while he suffered them patiently, but he was longing to be allowed
-to go to his bath in peace. He had done merely what he had set out to
-do. Their praise was kindly meant, but he would be far happier alone.
-
-So at last they let him by and he went gratefully into the
-dressing-room, said just a few quiet words to those old-timers who were
-waiting there to tend him, and passed into privacy.
-
-When, therefore, a little boy came to the door of the dressing-room and
-asked for him, they shook their heads.
-
-“Better go away, sonny. He won’t want to give no autograph. He just
-don’t want to be fussed. He’s fought his fight. You let him have his
-quiet sit-down. That’s worth more to Johnny than his picture rights.”
-
-The little boy looked round them gravely.
-
-“Would you just give him this?” he said at length. “I know he’ll see me.
-He’ll be angry if you don’t tell him I’m here.”
-
-He waited a moment anxiously, holding the proffered envelope in his hand
-with an air of appeal. At last a man with a square head, closely shaven,
-and a perfect imitation of a cauliflower clinging to the side of it,
-reached out his hand.
-
-“What is it?” he demanded. “What’s your name?”
-
-“If you’ll just give him that,” said the little boy, “he’ll know.”
-
-The man went slowly away, and when he came back his countenance wore an
-expression of complete astonishment.
-
-“You’re to go in and see him,” he said resignedly. “And I’d like to know
-who you be. It’s the first time he’s ever said ‘Yes.’”
-
-The little boy went quickly across the room and into the little cabin at
-the farthermost end. Johnny Winter was sitting down, and as the little
-boy came in, the man who had been tubbing his legs moved out of the way
-and disappeared. Then Johnny swathed a dressing-gown about him and stood
-up. He was frowning, and he spoke vexedly.
-
-“Bobbie,” he said, “if I had thought you would have done a thing like
-this I would have made you promise. But I trusted you.”
-
-Bobbie Carr stood proudly and faced him.
-
-“I’ve never seen you fight in all my life,” said he. “I’ve never been
-allowed. And this is the last chance I should ever have. You taught me
-how to box, but you never let me see _you_ fight in earnest. Now I have
-and I’m satisfied.”
-
-His father was looking at him with extraordinary sorrow.
-
-“You were always ashamed that I should see you fight. You said that I
-should get wrong ideas. I’m not ashamed. I’m proud.”
-
-His father made a quick movement with his hand.
-
-“You’ve never understood. I’ve had to think for you. All my life I meant
-you to go to a Public School and mix with the sons of gentlemen. I meant
-you to have the chance to become what I have never been. I’ve saved and
-worked for your education. I meant you to be a gentleman, and if the
-boys at your school or the masters there ever knew that you were the son
-of a bruiser—they’d call it a smudge on your name. That’s why I made you
-promise. It had to be our secret. And so that no one that you mix with
-should ever see you with me at the ringside, I’ve never let you come to
-see me fight. I retired before you ever went to Harley to make quite
-sure. But lately I’ve been afraid. I began to wonder if I had saved
-enough, after all, to give you a fair chance. And then they offered this
-purse, bigger than any I’d ever fought for in my life, if I’d come back.
-I never imagined for a moment that you would come here to see me. I
-thought you were safe at school. But you’ve come. You haven’t played the
-game. The secret will be out. Somebody is bound to have seen you. You
-would be very conspicuous in a Harley cap. When you go back to school
-they’ll know. It’s what I’ve always been afraid of. They——”
-
-“I’m not going back,” said Bobbie quietly.
-
-His father stared at him with glassy eyes.
-
-“Not going back? Why? What’s happened? You haven’t been expelled?”
-
-“No. But I’m not going back to a place where I have to be ashamed of my
-father.”
-
-Johnny took hold of his arm.
-
-“Who did you ask if you could come?” he demanded. “What reason did you
-give? Does your Headmaster know that you came to see your father fight
-for money?”
-
-“I didn’t ask,” said Bobbie. “I ran away.”
-
-There was a moment’s heavy silence.
-
-“You ran away?” his father said at last. “How? Who paid your fare?”
-
-“I did. You gave me much too much money. You thought I needed far more
-than I did. I never spent half of it. I saved it up; and it brought me
-here and paid for my seat.”
-
-His father was staring at him dully, but now his eyes lit up again with
-sudden light.
-
-“Nobody knows?” he said. “Are you sure? If that’s true we can get you
-back there to-night, perhaps, and they’ll never know you came. If nobody
-has seen you here, perhaps——”
-
-“I’m not going back,” said Bobbie.
-
-His father’s eyes met his evenly.
-
-“You mean,” said he at last, “that you never want to be a gentleman? Is
-it that the dearest wish I have means nothing to you at all?”
-
-“I’ll go to another school if you like,” said Bobbie in a small voice,
-“but I can’t go back to Harley. There’s somebody there who knows. He
-holds it over my head and makes me do things. It’s awful. I—I can’t go
-back.”
-
-“Somebody knows?” His father was looking at him keenly. “Why have you
-never told me? _Who_ knows?”
-
-“Coles is there.”
-
-For a moment his father was silent. He stood perfectly still, as a man
-will who is suddenly stricken with ill news. And at last his hands moved
-to his dressing-gown.
-
-“I’ll get dressed. We’ll get away from here. Sit down for a moment. Tell
-me while I dress. What has he made you do?”
-
-Bobbie began to talk. The secrets came out one by one.
-
-“This afternoon,” said Bobbie, “I had to get him another bottle. And
-when I’d got it I came away by the train at seven o’clock. I was seen
-coming out. I can’t go back. If they’ve found out that I came up here I
-shall be expelled. And if they haven’t found out, and I managed to get
-in, then I shall have to go on doing whatever Coles tells me to.” He
-paused. “Next term,” he said presently, “Coles expects to be captain of
-boxing. How could I enjoy boxing with him as captain? Let me go to
-another school, father. Somewhere where nobody need know at all if you
-don’t want them to, but not to a place where I have to keep the secret
-by being contemptible.”
-
-His father was dressed and he did not look at him at all. He just took
-his arm and began to lead him out through the crowded room. Everywhere
-men were calling to him. Johnny took no notice. He just made a gesture
-of farewell and went out into the street with Bobbie.
-
-“There may be a means,” he said at last. “Perhaps I can think it out.
-It’s a terrible thing to run away. You’ll have to go back. If none of
-the masters know you came there may be a way to get you back. Who was it
-saw you leave?”
-
-“It’s a boy who wouldn’t tell,” said Bobbie. “But I——”
-
-He stopped abruptly. A man had come upon them from behind, and now his
-hand reached out and was resting upon Bobbie’s shoulder.
-
-Bobbie turned with a start, and as he looked up he knew the sudden shock
-of a man ducked suddenly in cold water. For the first time since he had
-left the school he felt the touch of guilt, not for his father, but
-because by a freak of Fate it was Mr Nicholson who had found him out.
-Toby it was who stood looking down at him. He knew as well as any boy
-that it was through Toby’s influence that the fellows at Harley had been
-persuaded to stick it out without making a cock-shy of the school. And
-finding him unexpectedly at liberty in London, Toby would not understand
-the truth. He would think that he, Bobbie Carr, had been the only boy in
-Harley who had given in.
-
-There was a short dramatic silence. Then, as Bobbie looked up once
-again, wondering whether he ought to speak or whether to leave this to
-his father, he noticed a most remarkable fact—_i.e._ Toby was smiling.
-What made this more remarkable was that he was smiling not at him but,
-funnily enough, at that quiet-mannered little man, his father. And as
-Bobbie watched he slowly held out his hand.
-
-“You won’t remember me properly,” he said, “but I haven’t forgotten you,
-Johnny Winter.”
-
-Johnny had been looking from one to the other in acute distress, but now
-a memory was suddenly awakened within him, and he took Toby’s hand and
-looked and gently nodded his head.
-
-“Why, yes,” said he. “Yes, certainly I remember you. It’s Mr Nicholson.
-You used to come in and box with us when we were training at Harrow, and
-again at Brighton.”
-
-Toby tapped the little man upon the shoulder with an emphatic
-forefinger.
-
-“I used to come in and box with you and those other fellows wherever and
-whenever I could. You taught me more about boxing than any man of my
-size I ever came up against. Do you remember——” He broke off. “My word,
-that was a great show to-night, Johnny. I wouldn’t have missed that
-fight for worlds. I want to congratulate you.”
-
-He stopped. Johnny was looking at him with quaint solemnity. Then the
-thought of Bobbie seemed to recur to him, and as he turned to fix him
-with a reproachful eye Johnny said:
-
-“This is my son.”
-
-Toby gave not the least sign of surprise. The closest observer could not
-have told whether he had already guessed. His whole bearing was guided
-by an affectionate appreciation of the reasons which had prompted Johnny
-to speak so shyly. So he looked at Bobbie with a slow smile, and then
-back again at the straight-backed little man whom they had thought too
-old to fight. Johnny stood with his soft hat set squarely upon his head
-in a way that spoke of quiet respectability. His solemn countenance was
-a little anxious and one eye decidedly discoloured.
-
-“Then I am very, very glad,” said Toby, “more glad than I can say, that
-you sent him to Harley.”
-
-“It was because I knew that it was _your_ old school,” said Johnny, with
-a little nod of the head, “that I did send him there. And is it that you
-are a master there yourself now?”
-
-“Until a few weeks ago I was games master there.”
-
-“Then you have left?”
-
-“I am on a little holiday.”
-
-A new light of hope came into the little man’s eyes. He was clearly
-seeking for words.
-
-“I wonder,” he began, “if you could possibly help. My boy has come away
-from school without permission. He came against my wishes and without my
-knowledge to see me fight.”
-
-Bobbie looked up at Toby straightly.
-
-“It’s the last time he’ll ever fight, sir. I should never have had
-another chance. It’s the only time I’ve ever seen him in the ring. And I
-_had_ to come.”
-
-Toby began to nod his head absently.
-
-“Yes, of course,” he confessed, “you had to come. So should I have had
-to if he had been my father. Only why didn’t you ask permission?”
-
-Johnny broke in quickly.
-
-“You don’t quite understand, of course,” said he, “but the Headmaster of
-Harley knows me only as John Carr. It would be impossible to let it be
-known that a boy at Harley was the son of a professional boxer. I—I
-wanted to give him every possible chance in life. My one ambition is to
-see him a gentleman. What chance would he have if he were held down
-always by the shame of my trade?”
-
-“What shame?” demanded Toby.
-
-Johnny made a deprecating gesture.
-
-“You understand,” said he, “one does not meet professional pugilists in
-the homes of gentlemen, except as curiosities.”
-
-Toby looked at him inscrutably.
-
-“My son has run away. Unless I can get him back there will, of course,
-be an inquiry, and I shall need to come forward. The papers will sooner
-or later get wind of it and the facts will come out. When once it is
-known that a bruiser sent his son to a Public School and that he ran
-away, I shall never be able to get him into another school in England,
-except as a notoriety. Is there any means at all by which you could help
-me to get him back?”
-
-“I’m not going back,” interrupted Bobbie, with sudden emphasis.
-
-They turned to look at him.
-
-“Why not?” said Toby, in astonishment.
-
-The boy was silent, but Johnny spoke up.
-
-“You must tell him, Bobbie,” said he. “If we want help from Mr Nicholson
-we must tell him everything. There’s a young fellow at the school, Mr
-Nicholson, who happens to know the secret that we’ve tried to keep, and
-by threatening to tell it he has made Bobbie do things that he shouldn’t
-have. No doubt this fellow will guess that the boy came up to see me
-fight, and even if we should get him safely back to-night perhaps he
-will say now that unless Bobbie does this or that for him he will report
-his absence to the Headmaster.”
-
-Toby was looking from one to the other thoughtfully.
-
-“How did this boy come to know you at all then, Johnny?”
-
-For a moment the little man hesitated. At last he began to explain.
-
-“His father had money. There was a time when he acted as my backer, and
-as I won my fights he made a very good profit. Then he came to me one
-day and proposed a put-up job. He wanted me to fight a man and lose. It
-was to sway the betting to his advantage. But I told him what I thought
-of him and he never backed me again. I didn’t care for him to. This son,
-from what I know, will be much the same as the father, and _he_ knows
-well enough my history.”
-
-“His name would be Coles,” said Toby.
-
-The little man looked at him in surprise.
-
-“You know him?”
-
-“Very well indeed,” said Toby. “Strangely well.”
-
-There came an interval of silence. Toby appeared to be considering. At
-last he looked up.
-
-“You are the father of a boy at Harley, Mr Carr,” said he. “Do you know
-all that has been happening there this term?”
-
-“Bobbie has told me,” said the little man. “I am very sorry.”
-
-Toby nodded his head.
-
-“The storm is nearly over, and now there is next term to consider. I am
-not sure how much Harley’s reputation as a sporting school will have
-suffered by the events of the present term, but the probability is that
-an impression will spread that we shall take some little time to find
-our feet again. Not much will be expected of us at Aldershot, for
-example. It will be known that our professional was sent away. Yet it
-will be at Aldershot that we shall have to retrieve our good name. To
-recommence football and try to catch up next term would be unwise. We
-never do play football in the Easter term, nor do many of the other
-schools we play, and in any case we should be a term behind everybody
-else in combination. It will be better to let this stand as a lean year
-at football, and instead we must send such a team to Aldershot as has
-never been turned out by any Public School before. All the enthusiasm
-that has been stored up this term must be called out. We must go boxing
-mad and sweep the board. If any critics think that a term’s ill fortune
-can hold us down we shall show them that they are mistaken. This will be
-possible because the Headmaster who ruined our football season is not
-coming back.”
-
-He paused. The father and the son were peering at him intently. A look
-had come over Toby’s countenance which would have told those who knew
-him best that he was following a particular train of thought and that he
-had led up to the crucial point.
-
-“Do you want your boy to go back to Harley to-night, and box for the
-school in the biggest year in their history next term, Mr Carr?”
-
-Johnny turned slowly and looked at Bobbie, then back at Toby.
-
-“For the last five years I have been counting the days to the time when
-my boy would box for a Public School at Aldershot,” said he.
-
-Toby smiled. He took a step forward and laid his hand on Johnny’s
-shoulder.
-
-“Coles is expecting to be captain of boxing next term,” said he. “What
-do you say to that?”
-
-For a moment Johnny said nothing. At last he looked up.
-
-“I can hardly imagine a worse boy in the school to be a captain than Mr
-Coles’ son,” said he, “and if there is anybody else——”
-
-“There has got to be somebody else,” said Toby. “If we let Coles be
-captain we might as well chuck up the sponge. And there is somebody
-else.”
-
-“Then,” asked Johnny reasonably enough, “why will they not elect him
-captain?”
-
-“Because he cannot box.”
-
-There was a brief silence. At last Toby drew a deep breath.
-
-“I am going to get a car and take your boy back to Harley,” said he.
-
-“Will you be able to get him in?”
-
-“If he has not been reported absent by the time I get back,” said Toby,
-“I will get him in. It is a service for Harley. We need him to box in
-the feathers for the school next term. And here is the bargain. If I get
-him in, will you in return do something yourself for Harley, a secret
-service of your own?”
-
-“What is it?” asked Johnny.
-
-“If I introduce you to a boy in the holidays, Johnny Winter, will you
-teach him to box, and to box well enough to justify the school in
-electing him captain of boxing next term?”
-
-Johnny looked dubious.
-
-“In three weeks?”
-
-“You are a man who could do it,” said Toby. “And you see what it means.
-If Coles is elected captain Harley is doomed. If this fellow can keep
-him out the whole school will follow him, and there will be such a wave
-of enthusiasm for boxing that we shall knock all the other schools
-sideways at Aldershot.”
-
-The little man slowly shook his head.
-
-“He would want to pay me,” said he. “He wouldn’t understand. The whole
-school would know that Bobbie’s father was a pug.”
-
-Toby made an almost angry gesture.
-
-“When Rouse understands that you are the father of a boy at Harley,”
-said he, “he will understand the honour that you will be doing him.”
-
-The little man stood looking into the distance. Toby spoke again.
-
-“The time’s getting short. I’m going to take Bobbie back. You get along
-home to bed. You must be tired. Will you meet me in town to-morrow, and
-I shall be able to give you news of your boy?”
-
-Bobbie looked from one to the other quizzically. The question of his
-return to Harley seemed to have been decided for him. There was little
-to be gained by saying again that he would not go back. Besides, it
-would be different now. The Old Boy who had been on secret service for
-Harley would be watching over his interests. That inconvenient secret
-was not now entirely his own. He would not need to worry about his
-father’s name. If all went well, his father would save Harley from
-Coles, and Harley would understand when Coles told the secret what great
-work his father had done.
-
-He looked up. Toby and his father were shaking hands in the ponderous
-manner of two men making a solemn compact, and the troubled doubting on
-his father’s face was passing into a sober, trusting smile as Toby spoke
-to him.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXII
- HARD ROE
-
-
-Hard Roe had become a changed man. In a single crowded minute he had
-thrown up the part of Napoleon Defeated which for a short while he had
-acted with very tolerable ability, and had assumed instead the character
-of a criminal barrister making his way to the Law Courts with secret and
-sensational evidence up his sleeve. His gown was ballooning proudly
-behind him, the tails of it kept aloft by the pace at which he moved.
-His hands were no longer gripping one at the other behind his back.
-Instead his arms were swinging vigorously from the shoulders as if to
-assist in propelling him to Morley’s before Rouse could return. His lips
-were parted, and such hair as he had was rustling upon his head like
-meadow grass before the breaking of a storm.
-
-The bee-line which he was making took him, first, past the Rugby
-posts—mere symbols of a departed game—and here he struck the broad
-pathway along the outskirts of the playing fields. Where the way
-branched into two he came to Seymour’s, and he would have passed that
-tall house at his best speed, cutting the night air like a land yacht,
-had not a sudden clamour of excited voices, raised in consummate
-confusion, floated down to him from an upstairs window and distracted
-his attention. So he stopped and he looked and he listened.
-
-The bright light in a window immediately above him, evidently that of a
-study, indicated without doubt the source of the commotion. For a little
-while he stood, his head thrown back, peering curiously towards it.
-There was no law against a light in a senior’s study at nine o’clock,
-but there could be no excuse for such disorder as was evidenced by those
-so wildly contesting voices.
-
-At last he made up his mind. Enthusiasm prompted him to hasten upon his
-way, but allegiance to the dogma of unexpectedness was too strong. He
-glanced round him once, then fixed the front door with protuberant eyes,
-lifted the latch and went in. If Mr Seymour was out visiting some
-colleague, the occasion called for action on his own part. It might well
-be that this most memorable evening would grant him an all-round victory
-over the school on points.
-
-He could not have chosen a more sensational moment to appear.
-
-As he reached the bottom of the stairs a young man came dancing down. It
-may be that those who had been watching and who would have followed had
-peeped over the banisters in time and had withdrawn to make good their
-escape, but this one young man was in that condition in which loneliness
-is as nothing. He was singing raucously, and his manner of descent was
-like that of a low comedian on a sliding staircase. His hair was tangled
-and his countenance was flushed to fever heat.
-
-The Head had drawn back as if in preparation for a suitably sudden
-appearance from the wings, but instead he slowly drew himself now to his
-full height. As if at one touch of a magic wand Hard Roe suddenly ceased
-to look merely a silly old man. He was transformed into a lonely monarch
-in a terrible predicament. His rather grim face suddenly aged to that of
-a man who has faced all weathers and seen all things. The look that came
-into his eyes whilst he watched was not now merely one of anger or
-contempt; all thoughts had fled from his mind and left him cold and
-stricken, and his stare was testimony to the power of unexpectedness.
-
-The young man was his son.
-
-
-Time passed on leaden wings.
-
-His son had stumbled once on the bottom stair and had swung forward
-towards the wall. As he righted himself Hard Roe moved out of the
-shadows to meet him, and they came face to face. At first the young man
-did not seem to comprehend the grim reality of it. He just stood swaying
-upon his heels and smiling at the old man kindly. Next he broke into
-cackling laughter.
-
-“I can’t help it,” he confessed. “I’m—I’m drunk.”
-
-Hard Roe threw out his hand and clutched him by the shoulder.
-
-“Stand up! You are _my son_.”
-
-Roe made a belated attempt to look apologetic.
-
-The Head laid his other hand alongside the first and shook him savagely.
-
-“Where have you been? Why are you like this?”
-
-He was speaking through clenched teeth and his arms were trembling with
-the force of his passion. But there came only an unresponsive silence.
-If there is one particular phase of drunkenness at which one may best
-appreciate the beastliness of it, then it is at that moment when one
-perceives the subject looking around him as if in search of a convenient
-spot in which to be sick.
-
-The Head removed his hands and they fell weightily to his sides. He
-began to jerk words incredulously at his son, as if his power of speech
-was somehow dislocated.
-
-“You understand—you understand. You are the Headmaster’s son. You are
-captain of football. You came as an _example to them_. I——”
-
-His passion slowly subsided. He began to grow hard and isolated,
-impregnable. Once he heard a hurried scuffling upstairs as if someone
-were hiding away all traces of carousal and vanishing quickly from the
-scene. Now the whole house was very still. He had an implicit belief
-that even if the banisters were not lined with the heads of inquisitive
-boys, at least every member of the house was listening at an open door,
-and he knew that they would be wondering what Hard Roe would do at this,
-the crisis of his life. He knew that he must not hesitate. He gave his
-son a final shaking.
-
-“Have you no explanation at all?” he begged. “Have you nothing whatever
-to say to me?”
-
-The boy could find no proper answer. His eyes were closing sleepily. He
-had propped himself against the banisters. The final exhilaration that
-had sent him downstairs in that eccentric dance had deserted him, and a
-feeling of giddy biliousness had come in its place. He shook his head
-with a comical slantwise motion.
-
-Above the many conflicting emotions in his mind now the Head remembered
-his reputation. Throughout his life, whenever he had been in doubt,
-facing two roads, he had taken always that way which he felt he would
-not be expected to take. Now the unexpected had, in its turn, come upon
-him with a rush. Once again two ways lay open to him, and he knew now
-that the way which would be the unexpected way would be a way that was
-terribly hard, albeit absolutely just.
-
-He suddenly tilted up his chin. A glare of dour pugnacity had settled
-upon his features as if in token of decision. Then at last he spoke, and
-his voice was resolute and even.
-
-“There is one law in this school, and I show no favour. It was you that
-I brought here as an example to a school which knew no discipline. Now
-it is as an example that I shall have to send you away. You are
-expelled. To-morrow you leave this school in disgrace.”
-
-He stopped.
-
-In all the house there was not one solitary creak. The silence was
-absolutely cold and merciless. And then at last a footstep sounded in
-the portico. Mr Seymour was coming in. The Head turned and looked at him
-with a lofty dignity. It was as if he wanted the position to be
-perfectly clear to the other before he spoke. Then when Mr Seymour had
-looked dazedly first at the boy and then at the Head, Hard Roe spoke up.
-
-“Please have this boy taken to bed at once,” he said gently. “I have
-expelled him. To-morrow he will leave the school.”
-
-He moved to the open door and, reaching it, passed out, whilst Mr
-Seymour still stood looking fixedly at the boy as if he could not
-believe his eyes.
-
-He went out into the dark with his head a little bowed and his hands
-tight clasped again behind his gown. So he made his way slowly back
-towards the distant school, and now the night seemed very chill. There
-was no longer any attraction in seeking Rouse. Rouse was saved. Hard
-Roe’s part at Harley was played. The last act was done.
-
-It might very well have ended in his son leaving with him, proudly and
-almost in disdain. That could not be now. Had he allowed his boy to stay
-on to the end of term and then to leave quietly whilst he expelled
-Rouse, the name of Roe would have stood for ever in disrepute. It was
-his duty to do all in his power to save that name. However keenly the
-school disliked his character, they would know now that he had at least
-been true to it at the crisis of his life. His prophecy would perhaps
-come true.
-
-It might, after all, be the outstanding boldness of his last act by
-which the school would ever afterwards remember him. He had very nearly
-forgotten how badly he had wanted that to be so a short while back.
-
- * * * * *
-
-At last the Head passed through the old oak door again and back into his
-own room. Then it was as though the veil of night fell gently over the
-confines of the school. Here and there, in the haunts of the privileged,
-lights still glittered for an hour or so, showing that some were still
-up and about in Harley; but in the houses and the body of the school
-they vanished one by one, as if the gusty wind were scurrying on its
-rounds and looking in at windows to blow them out.
-
-A full hour passed before the figure of one who was weary and
-inordinately cold appeared with decided caution at the little gate
-beside the school pavilion and, climbing over, began to trudge
-disappointedly along the line of trees right round the outskirts of the
-playing fields towards Morley’s. It was Rouse, and he had both hands
-rammed into his trouser pockets and the collar of his coat turned up
-around his neck. There was an atmosphere about the school that was
-unusually lonely, and he felt it. His errand had proved utterly
-fruitless. He had no particular idea how he was going to get in again.
-He missed the company of Terence. His intention to keep in the shadows
-was taking him a long way round and he was in no mood to enjoy the walk.
-Altogether things were rotten. At last he came to Morley’s and stopped
-to look up for a moment at the forbidding walls. Then he moved with a
-kind of ill-humoured curiosity to the hall window. There came back to
-him the memory of a night of long ago when he and Terence had as
-youngsters crouched below that selfsame window to find themselves locked
-out, and how at last a small boy had tiptoed down the stairs to their
-rescue, had opened the window without a word and let them in, and had
-then gone peaceably to bed. That small boy had been Henry Hope.
-
-Rouse gazed at the window now with the affection of an old friend.
-Terence must surely have made some plan to effect his entry without his
-having to ring the front-door bell. His hand reached out and passed
-cautiously across the window-pane. Then he seized the framework and
-tried it gingerly. Without a moment’s delay there came the sound of a
-gentle movement within, and he perceived a long arm reaching towards him
-behind the glass. Next the window was slowly raised and a tousled head
-of hair was thrust out into the night. Rouse raised himself on to his
-toes and inclined his body forward.
-
-It was Terence, and he spoke in a hoarse whisper.
-
-“Don’t make too much row. Has anybody seen you? Have you had any luck?”
-
-Rouse levered himself on to the window-sill and poised there miserably
-for a moment before he answered, and even then he did not speak. He just
-shook his head dismally and scrambled in. And then he sneezed.
-
-Terence seized him in a steely grip and thrust a handkerchief violently
-into his face. But Rouse freed himself vexedly, listened a moment for
-any sign of alarm, and then proceeded, in the time-honoured manner of
-all who keep late hours, to remove his boots.
-
-He turned once before beginning to climb the staircase and looked
-thoughtfully through the darkness at the shape that was Terence.
-
-“You have not,” said he softly, “such a thing as a hot drink concealed
-about your person, I presume?”
-
-Terence slowly lowered the window and secured it with the latch. When he
-turned he shook his head regretfully.
-
-“Thank you,” whispered Rouse. “That’s all I wanted to know.”
-
-Next moment he was making his way nimbly upstairs. Terence looked round
-him once, then followed after. The warmth of a bed had become a
-strangely appealing thought.
-
- * * * * *
-
-For two hours Harley had slumbered. The last good-nights had all been
-said. The last lights had been snuffed. Only the great clock over the
-school, vigilantly marking time like the ghost of some soldier of the
-king, was still awake and looking far out into the country, when a car
-came droning down the highroad, branched along the fork that led past
-the playing fields and stopped beside the school pavilion. There was a
-moment’s muttered conversation, then out of the car stepped Toby
-Nicholson. He turned once to the small figure wrapped in rugs that was
-still reclining in a corner.
-
-“You understand?” he said. “Wait here till I’ve spied out the lie of the
-land. Then I’ll come back and fetch you. I may be some little time, but
-you must wait.”
-
-Bobbie nodded his head obediently, and Toby turned and scrambled over
-the narrow gate into the school grounds. Off he set along the line of
-the trees, stepping, had he but known it, almost in the very footprints
-that Rouse had left in his tracks. He went swiftly, and at times, with a
-furtive glance around him, he left the shadows and slipped across the
-open to cut a corner. At last he came to Seymour’s and here he stopped,
-just as Rouse had stopped at Morley’s, and glanced up at the windows.
-Everywhere the blinds were drawn. There was not one solitary light. He
-had expected as much, and now he had to come swiftly to a decision. By
-hook or by crook he intended to get into the house and rouse Mr Seymour.
-There were several ways and means. He could ring the bell or batter upon
-the door with his clenched fists until he was answered. He could throw
-stones at windows. These methods would, however, necessarily excite
-undue commotion, and this Toby determined to avoid. Since nothing much
-could be accomplished before morning by those within, there existed the
-alternative, of course, of camping out under the trees until the first
-greyness of the dawn broke through the night, and surreptitiously
-slipping Bobbie into the house at the first opening of the door, if
-necessary with the connivance of a servant. On a winter’s night this
-solution was, however, emphatically inconvenient. There remained,
-therefore, the only really sound means of entry, that of the break-in.
-Without any great hesitation Toby decided upon this latter. He had once
-committed a burglary for the benefit of the cinema, and he saw no valid
-reason why he should not break into Mr Seymour’s bedroom for the benefit
-of the school. He cast an inquisitive eye at the window behind which Mr
-Seymour would be sleeping, and considered the question of the ascent. Mr
-Seymour was a quiet, rather faded gentleman who affected a hat-guard all
-the year round and who looked upon school life from the scholarly rather
-than the magisterial standpoint. Above all, he hated to be bothered.
-
-Somewhere within him Toby cherished a distinct affection for this
-old-fashioned gentleman, and he was aware that this was reciprocated. To
-how great an extent, however, this esteem would be affected by his
-entering the gentleman’s room by the window at one A.M. he did not care
-to surmise. He made a brief inspection, then secured a firm hold on the
-drain-pipe, collected a bunch of ivy in the other hand, and commenced to
-climb. At first his progress was slow. By skilful work he nevertheless
-rose foot by foot until he at last reached a window on the first floor
-parallel with Mr Seymour’s own. He swung on to this window-ledge and
-gravely considered the prospect of his being able to move sideways
-across the face of the wall. So far as he could see there was only one
-practicable route. He must climb to the story next above, make use of
-the attic window-ledge, and swing from here to the window immediately
-above his destination. From here he could drop from his hands and land
-neatly and daintily, like the falling petal of a flower, upon Mr
-Seymour’s window-sill. This he did with delightful grace.
-
-Five minutes later the blade of his pocket-knife was moving gently
-between the upper and lower halves of the window, and after a moment’s
-work he had pushed the catch carefully aside. He paused then for a
-moment, like the look-out in the crow’s nest of a ship, to gaze down and
-take in the surrounding view. For the first time in his life he was
-clinging to the wall of a house in the loneliest hour of the night and
-about to break into a gentleman’s apartment. He sighed happily as a man
-will who delights in new experiences, turned inwards and slowly raised
-the lower half of the window. Then he stepped into the room and sat down
-on the inner window-ledge. The blast of cold air which his entry had
-introduced had an almost immediate effect in a noise of pronounced
-discontent from the recesses of the room. As his eyes grew used to the
-dark he dimly perceived a long arm reaching a bunch of blanket and
-drawing it gratefully about the pillow. Toby collected himself for
-discovery. The terrifying thought flashed through his mind that he might
-possibly have come to the wrong room. Supposing that by some freak of
-Fate Mr Seymour chanced to have changed his quarters during the last few
-days? He cast a hurried glance at his only means of escape, then steeled
-himself for the worst and spoke:
-
-“Mr Seymour.”
-
-At first there was no reply. It was difficult to know, however, whether
-this was because Mr Seymour was not yet awake or whether he was
-endeavouring to decide what to say in reply. At last Toby repeated his
-salutation.
-
-Mr Seymour woke in a sudden convulsion of uncertainty, shuddered a great
-many times, and spoke.
-
-“What?” said he. “Oh, please—for goodness’ sake do shut that door.”
-
-Toby considerately closed the window.
-
-“May I switch on the light?” he inquired. “Shall I fall over anything?”
-
-“Whatever is it?” sighed Mr Seymour. “Put on the light, yes. Really, I——
-Who is it wants me? I——”
-
-Toby stumbled across the room, cannoned violently into the bed and,
-reaching the switch, at last flooded the room with light. As he did so
-he explained himself briefly:
-
-“It’s me—Nicholson.”
-
-Mr Seymour peered at him dazedly.
-
-“Nicholson? Why, yes, I see it is. But how very odd. Do you know, I
-_quite_ thought you’d gone away. Quite. I must have been dreaming. How
-very strange.”
-
-Toby approached and sat down pleasantly on the bed.
-
-“I did go away,” he confessed. “But you know how a felon always returns
-to the scene of his crime. As a matter of fact, I have just come in
-through the window.”
-
-He paused a moment as if to allow this information to sink well in. Mr
-Seymour took the news oddly. He just sat up in bed and looked as if he
-were about to weep.
-
-“What time is it?” he demanded. “Dear me, how troublesome a night! It
-seems only a few minutes ago that I was having a boy put to bed.
-Whatever is it now?”
-
-Toby leaned over him.
-
-“Were all your boys present to-night?” he inquired. “Was anybody
-reported missing?”
-
-The other grew visibly perplexed.
-
-“Really, I can hardly say. So much has been happening to-night. No doubt
-you have not yet heard——”
-
-Toby waved the point aside.
-
-“I may have done you a good turn. I hope so, anyway. One of the
-youngsters in your house has been bullied into getting whisky for
-someone amongst your seniors, and at last he’s kicked. So this evening
-he ran away.”
-
-“Good gracious me!” exclaimed the other, “who’s run away? Why, only this
-evening I have had——”
-
-“Fortunately,” said Toby, pressing on hastily, “I came across him myself
-and I have been able to lead him back to the fold. It may be in time for
-you to take this matter of the whisky in hand yourself before anything
-comes out about it.”
-
-Mr Seymour rose a little farther out of his bed and pointed at Toby
-excitedly. He was suddenly very wide awake.
-
-“You say this boy ran away? I am not surprised. This evening a boy was
-found in this house drunk, and he was expelled.”
-
-“Expelled?” repeated Toby, cocking one eyebrow in surprise. “By the
-Head, do you mean?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“Who was the boy?”
-
-“It was his own son,” said Mr Seymour, and drawing himself completely
-out of bed he began to feel for his slippers. Suddenly he looked up with
-a jerk.
-
-Toby was still staring at him thoughtfully.
-
-“He found his own son drunk?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“And nobody else?”
-
-“Apparently not,” said Mr Seymour. He stood up. “Nicholson,” he
-demanded, “who is this boy? And,” he added, “how on earth did you get
-into this house?”
-
-“His name is Carr,” said Toby. “And I came in via the window. I crawled
-up the wall.”
-
-Mr Seymour approached the window, looked at it incredulously, then
-opened the lower half and peered out.
-
-“It is a nasty drop,” he declared.
-
-Toby moved to the window and stood beside him.
-
-“Yes,” said he. “It looks worse from here. Nevertheless that is how I
-got in. Those pieces of cloth you see there hanging on nails amongst the
-ivy are pieces of my trousers. In other words, you have been burgled.”
-
-“But why on earth didn’t you ring the bell?”
-
-Toby tapped him upon the shoulder.
-
-“The boy who ran away is outside in a car. I thought you would rather we
-got him in without attracting attention.”
-
-“But, goodness me,” said the other, “a number of boys in the house will
-know that he was out. What will be the excuse?”
-
-“The other boys in the house,” said Toby, “know a great deal more about
-what’s been going on than you do. You can bet your life on that. And
-after this evening’s little entertainment there won’t be many who won’t
-understand the truth. My advice to you is to let him come in and go to
-bed without a word. You yourself need know nothing about it.”
-
-Mr Seymour was looking at him dubiously.
-
-“The reason I say this,” Toby explained, “is that it means a lot to the
-school if we can come through this term without the spirit having been
-knocked out of any single boy by the Head’s idea of justice. It won’t be
-quite so satisfactory if this youngster should be found out. It’s the
-last lap, too, Seymour. In another ten days term will be over.”
-
-He paused.
-
-“There will be another term following after,” said Mr Seymour gloomily.
-
-Toby nodded his head.
-
-“Yes,” he admitted; “but it will not be quite the same. Next term the
-Grey Man is coming back.”
-
-He smiled. Mr Seymour gazed at him with open mouth.
-
-“Are you sure?”
-
-“I saw him yesterday,” said Toby. “But it is better that the school as a
-whole should not know just yet. If one thing rather than another would
-send Harley completely off its head just now it would be the rumour that
-the Headmaster was defeated and that the Grey Man was coming back. Well,
-we must play fair. There is something about the Head that at times makes
-him almost likeable in his loneliness. Now the only ally that he had has
-let him down and the Head’s done the right thing by expelling him. There
-will be hard days coming for the Head, and, after all, you and I are
-masters and have a master’s point of view. I fancy the Head knows his
-fate already, but I think that we ought to respect his position to the
-end. It’s up to us to let him break the news when he feels ready. Don’t
-you think so?”
-
-Mr Seymour nodded his head.
-
-“It makes a difference,” said he. “I had always rather looked upon you
-as an Old Boy pure and simple, Nicholson. But I see now that there is a
-little of something else in your composition as well. If you will go out
-and fetch this boy I will see that he gets in by the front door.”
-
-Toby held out his hand.
-
-“I hope you’ll forgive me getting in by the window,” he said. “It was
-the only way. I’ll go out by the door now, though, and leave it unbolted
-for Carr. I shall see you again soon.”
-
-“You will be coming back?”
-
-“I am starting again next term,” said Toby. “See you then.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-With morning sensation came like a dust-storm to sweep Harley in its
-whirl and leave her spinning. The whole of Roe’s own house, of course,
-knew overnight. Those who had been asleep were violently awakened to be
-told. And in the morning the members of Seymour’s spread out fanwise and
-ran through the other houses before their breakfast, carrying the news.
-
-At morning prayers there was some kind of hope that the Head would make
-an announcement revoking his selection of a football captain, and
-perhaps even acknowledging the claims of Rouse, but instead he came in
-without an indication of any kind that anything was untoward and faced
-them. His eyes roamed round the sea of their upturned faces. He noticed
-Rouse in the forefront, but Rouse did not look his way. Next his eyes
-turned upon the rebels of the Sixth lined up beneath his dais, each in a
-most devout and learned attitude, and finally he turned to Pointon and
-jerked his head at him. So Pointon’s voice broke the silence at last as
-he began to read.
-
-When, later, the moment came for the Head to walk down the aisle between
-them, his gown majestically swinging, and to pass through the open doors
-before their shuffling dismissal to their classes could begin, he walked
-with a quick and irritable step, and it was not until he had reached the
-quiet of his own room that he remembered one saving thought in his
-bitter sorrow. They did not yet know that he himself would, at the end
-of term, leave them in triumphant possession of their own unwritten
-laws.
-
-One master and one boy were, as we know, in the secret, but the boy had
-honourably promised not to speak of it to anyone in the school, not even
-to Rouse or Terence or Henry Hope.
-
-“It is not your secret,” Toby had said. “You have stumbled upon it, and
-so it is not yours to tell.”
-
-In Seymour’s they had looked at Bobbie curiously in the morning, and a
-great many boys of his own age had gathered about him to satisfy their
-curiosity by asking questions. But he had smiled at them and shaken his
-head.
-
-“I went out for someone and I was late back,” was all he would say; “but
-I got in all right.”
-
-For the rest, he let their imagination carry them where it would. Rouse
-came upon him and he too would have begun to question, but Bobbie gave
-him a note from Toby and this appeared to afford him wholesome
-satisfaction.
-
-For a little while those who knew that Roe had found a friend in Coles
-wondered what part he had played in Roe’s downfall, and indeed curiosity
-as to which other boys from somewhere behind the scenes had really been
-responsible for his own son’s defection troubled the Head himself; but
-the awe in which he held his father effectually prevented Roe from
-turning King’s evidence. He went quietly, with abashed mien, intensely
-annoyed with his father for ever having fetched him from Wilton to
-become a puppet at Harley. Afterwards Hard Roe seemed almost to forget
-the incident, for he asked no questions of anybody in the school. It may
-well be that in certain respects his sense of pride was satisfied by the
-certainty that his iron justice would live in the memory of the boys he
-would leave at Harley long after he had gone, and that for this reason
-he preferred to leave things entirely as they were. By digging deeper
-into the mystery and dragging to light whatever other miscreants there
-were in Seymour’s he would seem to be finding excuses for his son by
-sweeping away a handful of other boys as bad as he on the grounds that
-they had led him astray, when his one expulsion would have all the
-effect that was necessary in curing the evil by making an example of the
-chief wrong-doer.
-
-He had a distaste for excuses of any kind. His son should have been
-strong enough to stand alone. Instead he had sinned, and he could not
-pardon his son for drinking whisky on the grounds that another boy had
-given it to him.
-
-Coles lived in considerable anxiety during those last long days, because
-he was unaware of the Head’s real attitude and quite uncertain whether,
-before he left, Roe had given him away.
-
-He had Bobbie before him and extracted an oath of secrecy.
-
-“If you breathe so much as a word of this,” he had said, “I’ll tell your
-secret too, and all the school shall know that a low professional pug
-has sent his brat to a school for the sons of gentlemen. Not only that.
-If you let me down I’ll see that your life here is a never-ending
-nightmare. Are you going to promise?”
-
-“I don’t see any need to promise,” said Bobbie, “but I’ll do so if you
-like.”
-
-Coles shook his fist angrily.
-
-“I shall hold you to it,” he declared. “One word, and you’ll wish you’d
-been born dumb.”
-
-Bobbie turned and left him. After all, there was nobody he would need to
-tell—now.
-
-The last few days of term passed slowly. The most sensational thing that
-could have come about had happened. That which followed was only
-aftermath. To the last day they did not know how completely they had won
-the long fight, nor guess that when Hard Roe stood in the great hall and
-spoke to them of their Christmas holidays in a quiet and unemotional
-voice he was in reality bidding them good-bye.
-
-He had not altogether the bearing of a man who had failed. It was rather
-that of a man who knew that he would leave his mark.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIII
- THE DAY OF RECKONING
-
-
-It was the first afternoon of the Easter term, and from his position
-beside the window of his study Rouse was staring steadfastly towards the
-distant boundaries of Harley. Presently he turned and looked towards
-Terence, who sat buried to the chin in a basket chair, with his feet
-upon the mantelpiece.
-
-“I find myself to-day,” said he, “in a mood of the most blissful
-content. You, sir, can you tell me why that is?”
-
-“No,” said Terence. “Unless somebody has mended that hole in your
-trouser pocket for you during the holidays and your locker key doesn’t
-fall through into your sock any longer. That used to irritate you a good
-deal last term, I remember.”
-
-“That is not the correct answer,” responded Rouse. “And you will,
-moreover, be awarded one bad mark for your stupidity. If you are going
-to have another shot, I think you had better stand half-way, with the
-ladies and the little boys.”
-
-Terence turned away and snuggled deeper into the recesses of his chair.
-
-“It leaves me cold,” said he.
-
-“Then I will speak with more warmth,” snapped Rouse, “you poor frozen
-piece of fish. Let me tell you that you are what our American cousins
-would term a boob or bone-head. If you were to unhook your heels from my
-mantelpiece and come and balance yourself beside me for a minute, you
-would perhaps understand what I mean. Just now the Grey Man passed along
-the top road going towards Mainwright’s. When he had gone I found myself
-casting my eye around the old estate, and I may assure you, young
-Nicholson, the place did not seem the same.”
-
-“You were looking at it from a different angle,” explained Terence.
-“It’s that squint of yours. You never know _where_ you’re looking half
-the time.” A brief silence followed. At last Rouse came over to the fire
-and, standing beside Terence, placed his hands on his hips and began to
-explain.
-
-“The Grey Man has come back and the good sun is shining once more over
-the old homeside. That’s what I mean, you flat,” said he. “When I look
-back,” he added after a moment, “it seems to me that two things stand
-out from amongst the events of last term. Passing over those bad times
-when we heard that Toby was to go and that house footer was to stop, and
-such good times as the Rainhurst match, the two things that I always
-remember first are the moment when I first knew that I was not to be
-captain of Rugger, and the moment when I realised that Coles was giving
-me a licking.”
-
-“It is of some interest to me to know,” said Terence, “that you are
-actually able to think of two things at once. I was not previously aware
-that you could.”
-
-Rouse took no notice.
-
-“The fact that I am responsible for the dud year Harley has had at
-Rugger,” said he, “worried me a good deal until I had a chow-chow with
-your brother, and then I began to look forward to this term as I have
-never looked forward to any term before. Now I am really back again, and
-the Grey Man has returned. I tell you, Nick, my son, I feel good. In
-other words, I am chock full of beans.”
-
-“That must be what I heard rattling about inside your head just now,”
-answered Terence, “though it sounded to me more like dried peas.”
-
-“The days which I have spent with Mr Carr have been some of the happiest
-of my life,” insisted Rouse, “and they have done me such a power of good
-that I am half inclined to catch you a severe clip on the head in
-token.”
-
-Terence rose and stretched himself.
-
-“Mr Carr,” said he, “is a white man. What do you make the time? I’ve an
-idea we ought to be getting down to the meeting.”
-
-Rouse consulted his watch, moved to the window and looked out.
-
-“Yes,” said he, “they’re beginning to show up. Foster and Pointon are
-coming down the road and Smythe is just going by. Give me your hand and
-we will tag along.”
-
-As they left the house and started across towards the hall where the
-general meeting was to be held Rouse became peculiarly quiet. Once
-Terence turned to him and noted the brightness of his eyes, and Rouse
-looked up and spoke.
-
-“I wish I hadn’t talked so much about my blissful content,” he observed.
-“I’m beginning to feel a bit different. It’s perfectly true that nobody
-who knows Coles wants him to be captain of boxing, and it would be a
-jolly good lesson to him if he missed it, particularly during a term
-when we’re going all out to smash the record, but it isn’t everybody who
-does know Coles.”
-
-“Well?”
-
-“And,” demanded Rouse, “why should they want _me_ anyhow? I’m not the
-only fellow in the school who goes in for games. I had my innings last
-term, and I played it about as cleverly as a fellow who goes into a
-nursery to amuse a kid and promptly treads on his balloon. If anybody
-_does_ mention my name at the meeting as a possible captain, the
-probability is that chaps will get up one by one and go out groaning. I
-should say that most of the fellows are sick to death of my name. That’s
-how I feel about it anyway.”
-
-“You feel like that about it,” said Terence gently, “because you’re
-batty. It isn’t your fault. We must learn not to laugh at you for it.
-You just can’t help it. You’re batty, that’s all.”
-
-“Not at all. I was as keen as mustard to learn to box, especially from a
-man like Mr Carr, but I’d just as soon box for the school like an
-ordinary chap as be stuck on top and made captain.”
-
-“They want you as captain,” said Terence, “because the whole school will
-follow you and do whatever you say, and they want the whole school to go
-boxing mad. It may interest you to know that I intend to don the gloves
-and clout a few people myself in due course.”
-
-Rouse shook his head.
-
-“Everybody who’s spoken to me,” concluded Terence, “everybody who _is_
-anybody——”
-
-“Nobody’s anybody very much,” observed Rouse, “after they’ve once been
-seen speaking to you.”
-
-“Everybody who is anybody,” repeated the other indifferently, “has been
-enthusiastic about it beyond all expectations. They reckon——”
-
-He stopped. They had come to the entrance to the hall, and Rouse made
-his way in and hurriedly deposited himself upon a convenient chair.
-
-“Sit down,” he commanded. “Don’t stand up there staring. I don’t want
-any attention called to me at all. I feel about the most congenital
-idiot any human being could feel.”
-
-Terence sat down.
-
-“Are you quite sure you can see all right from there,” he inquired.
-“Shall I ask that pretty gentleman in front to take his hat off?”
-
-“That isn’t a hat,” said Rouse, casting dull care aside in the swiftly
-changing manner that was his wont, “that’s the gentleman’s hair. He has
-it like that because he’s in the wool-gathering business. It isn’t quite
-the same colour as it used to be last term though, is it? There seems a
-faint suspicion of early autumn about it. He’s been reading that
-advertisement, ‘All handsome men are bronzed,’ I expect, and he thinks
-it refers to the hair.”
-
-The gentleman addressed turned haughtily and addressed himself to
-Terence.
-
-“Would you mind asking your little boy to be quiet,” he said
-courteously. “I find his remarks a trifle distracting, and I’ve paid for
-my seat the same as what you ’ave.”
-
-“One of the curls is missing,” commented Rouse. “Is some lady the proud
-possessor, or has his little brother been playing with the shears? It
-gives the head a rather mothy appearance anyhow. Reminds me of a
-part-worn doormat more than anything else.”
-
-“Oh, rub his face in a bun,” retorted the gentleman with the golden
-locks.
-
-Rouse opened his mouth to reply but his final comment was cut short.
-Toby Nicholson had risen and there had come a respectful hush. Then,
-because it was his first official appearance on his return to Harley,
-cheering broke out. He coloured awkwardly and stood for a minute waiting
-the chance to speak, and eventually he began. He spoke just long enough
-to explain the position to them, and to remind those who might not have
-realised the fact that the school must certainly have suffered in
-reputation by the leanness of the term just past.
-
-“The way to win back our name as one of the first sporting schools in
-England,” said Toby, “is not to attempt a late cut at a football season,
-but to put the whole of our heart and soul into boxing and the sports.
-For that reason you need a captain who can really lead the school into a
-record year. Boxing has always counted for more at Harley than at many
-other schools, and this term it must count as the only game worth while.
-We want every fellow in the school who’s capable to try his hand at it.
-Only so can we find the very best talent in the school.” He stopped.
-“Who is proposed?” he said after a moment.
-
-Without delay a peculiarly villainous-looking youth rose from his seat
-and stood for a moment waiting.
-
-Rouse nodded towards him.
-
-“That lad has a nice open face,” he observed gravely.
-
-“Open?” whispered Terence. “You wait till he laughs. It opens from ear
-to ear.”
-
-There came the muffled sound of a suffocated guffaw, and at the same
-moment the terrible young man spoke.
-
-“I propose Coles,” said he, “the senior old colour.”
-
-“I second that,” declared another, rising swiftly from a corner seat.
-
-There was a moment’s hesitation, then a totally different type of fellow
-bobbed up from a position close to Rouse. It was Smythe, and he spoke
-with vigour.
-
-“Mainwright’s house have held a meeting to-day, and on their behalf I
-wish to propose that Rouse be elected captain of boxing.”
-
-He offered no explanation. He just waited a moment and then sat down.
-
-Forthwith Saville rose from beside Coles.
-
-“Seconded,” said he.
-
-There was a sweeping murmur partly of surprise and partly of assent, and
-then Toby looked round them quickly.
-
-“Is anyone else proposed?”
-
-It was evident that there was not. But the villainous young man who had
-spoken first rose in his seat defiantly and faced Toby.
-
-“It is quite natural, sir,” said he, “that after last year’s
-disappointment some of the fellows should want to pay Rouse this
-compliment, but it is an unwritten law that the captain of any game
-shall always be the senior old colour of the game and, if possible, the
-best man at it.”
-
-Next Pointon rose.
-
-“Is it not a fact, sir,” he inquired, “that when one selects a captain
-one chooses a man with certain definite capabilities as a leader, and
-not necessarily the best man at the game? Sometimes the two go together,
-but this year we require above anything else the man who can get the
-very most out of the school. Is there any unwritten law which prevents
-Rouse being proposed in that capacity?”
-
-Toby seemed about to answer, but there came instead a sharp surprise.
-Coles himself was upon his feet, just as when he had once before been
-frivolously nominated as captain of Rugger, and he was looking round
-them brazenly, as if by making a bold show he could effectually hide the
-fear that was in him. And this was the fear. Towards the end of last
-term it had become common knowledge in Seymour’s not only that he was
-sending a fag to get whisky for him from the town, but that, although he
-had been the prime instigator in the affair that had brought Roe
-expulsion, he had made no attempt whatever to help Roe or to alleviate
-his heavy share of punishment. In point of fact, he had slunk off. The
-school had begun to realise this and Coles knew it. The fear that it
-might possibly prevent his unanimous election as captain had troubled
-him during the holidays, but at such times he had found comfort in the
-fact that he could not see any suitable rival who could be sent up
-against him. He knew now the limit of their search for a man. The best
-they could find was Rouse, a fellow whom he had thrashed in his study. A
-scornful smile was playing about his lips. He began to speak.
-
-“Look here,” he said, “I wanted to keep out of this.”
-
-That was how one might have expected Coles to begin. They listened to
-him listlessly. For a while he seemed to be idly chattering, as if
-seeking to make clear his own great modesty, but at last he came to the
-point. He was suggesting a fight. They listened now with pricked ears. A
-look of surprised delight had flashed into Toby’s eyes. Rouse was
-peering at Coles incredulously. But it was true. He was claiming the
-rights of an old colour.
-
-“Before a man who has never shown any interest in boxing treads on all
-precedent and makes himself a dummy captain,” Coles had said, “other
-fellows ought to be given a chance to see what he can do. Let Rouse come
-into the ring. If he can beat me I shall be delighted to vote for him
-myself.”
-
-He was rambling on pleadingly in this strain when it was suddenly
-noticed that Rouse too was upon his feet.
-
-“I’m perfectly ready to fight you,” said he, “to-day.”
-
-To the Grey Man Toby explained it in another light.
-
-“It was what I had hoped might happen,” he said. “Because if we left it
-to an election they would elect Rouse, and that would leave Coles with a
-virtual grievance. But as it is, he himself has chosen this means of
-ballot, and if he is beaten now he can have no cause for complaint at
-all, and Harley will be the healthier for seeing a fellow whom they have
-at last summed up thoroughly well outed.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-The school gymnasium was packed from end to end. Wherever one looked
-boys of all shapes and sizes seemed to be piled one on top of the other
-to the level of the roof. Whoever had not properly understood the truth
-about Coles knew it now. The position was very clear indeed. All that
-had been whispered about him in the last days of the Christmas term had
-been true. The fellows in Seymour’s had admitted it. Coles had turned
-spy. He had palled up to the school’s worst enemy. He had bullied his
-fag. He had got whisky into the house and through him Roe had been
-expelled. He had done no single thing for which the school did not, now
-that they understood, condemn him with unutterable disgust. And Rouse
-was standing up to him now to fight him and, if he could, to give him
-the licking he so richly deserved, as a present from the school. Coles’
-day of reckoning had come. Only one thing troubled them. No one could
-say how Rouse could be expected to win. It was true that they had such
-astounding confidence in his ability to do the seemingly impossible that
-this did not worry them very much. After all, he had won the Rainhurst
-match when it had seemed to be lost.
-
-Yet even supposing he had spent his holidays learning to box so as to be
-able to rescue them from the dread results of Coles becoming their
-boxing captain, could he with a bare month’s practice really hope to
-defeat the man who had boxed for the school at Aldershot?
-
-Coles was first into the ring. He came with a lofty and contented air,
-looking significantly round the crowded walls. Then he sat down and
-Rouse came into sight. The bearing of those whose only part was to look
-on was very proper. There was no hysterical cheering. Each man received
-a courteous round of applause. Toby Nicholson came to the ropes and told
-them briefly the object of the match. Once again clapping was the only
-evidence of their approval. The moments passed.
-
-At last it was time.
-
-In a breathless silence the two rose to their feet. Justice had turned
-to them now to hold the scales in a steady hand. They were meeting at
-last on level terms. No study walls hemmed them in. Their quarrel was to
-be fought at last fairly to a finish. Staring stolidly one at the other
-they met, and their right hands touched for a moment in token that the
-play was fair. Then they slipped suddenly into a ready stance and the
-fight had begun.
-
-Now Rouse began to realise that the things Johnny Winter had told him
-must be true. That terrible nervousness that had been upon him for the
-last two hours had passed. Doubt and mistrust in his power to do this
-thing that the whole school were expecting of him had precipitately
-vanished, as Johnny had declared they would when once he was in the
-ring, and in their place had come, not overflowing confidence, but
-detachment.
-
-His mind grew concentrated upon the immediate future in a way that
-entirely obliterated all that tensely watching crowd from the picture.
-He was isolated from them. He could not see things from their point of
-view at all. He only knew that he had been appointed by the school to
-deal punishment to one whom they had condemned, and the task had so
-tightened every sinew in his body that he was fretting to begin. It had
-become impossible to conceive defeat. Coles had come to the end of his
-innings and was faced with the reckoning of his score against the
-school. And he had to reckon now not with a miserable novice but with
-one who understood clearly how to use his fists. Rouse had learned no
-tricks. He had not even acquired the art of easy movement in the ring,
-but he knew how to stand and how to hit, and the straight left which was
-almost the only blow that Johnny had allowed him to rely upon was ready
-for its work. The moment that Coles’ hands were up Rouse slipped in.
-Coles waited for him, just as he had waited when they had fought in a
-study, ready to shoot in his counter the instant Rouse exposed himself.
-But times had changed. Rouse showed him one quick threatening movement
-with his right, and as Coles slipped to avoid the blow, there came at
-him like a piston, very straight from the left shoulder, a closed glove,
-hard and weighted like a loaded stick, and it thudded against his mouth
-and jolted back his head.
-
-He reeled with astonishment, and jumped in with a vengeful counter,
-under a somewhat mistaken impression that the blow was a fluke. But he
-was met by a sure and classic guard that kept out every blow he knew;
-and the moment that he tired of trying and drew back to think things
-over, that left came out again and helped him on his way. And suddenly
-he understood. He had been trapped. His pride in the use of his fists
-had led him into a mad challenge, and the truth was shining from Rouse’s
-steely eyes. He read the message as many another bully has read it
-sooner or later in a bragging career. This man had him cold. Somebody
-had touched up the fellow’s dogged courage with a little science, and
-Rouse was no longer asking to be knocked out. For Coles it was going to
-be the fight of his life. He began to move nimbly about the ring, his
-feet slipping noiselessly over the boards as he tempted Rouse this way
-and that in the hopes of drawing him. But Rouse had been coached too
-well. He understood perfectly what this meant. Coles had not fought him
-this way before. His straight left had hurt Coles, and he was going to
-keep away.
-
-Rouse began to move steadily towards him. Coles danced eagerly across
-his front, but footwork availed him little. Gradually Rouse’s left foot
-began to work its way in, and at last, when it was against Coles’ toe
-and he knew that a step would carry him within striking distance, he
-darted in, and his left went out again and smashed against the other’s
-face. There was a moment of grim excitement as Coles answered him with a
-rain of violent drives and uppercuts that displayed his temper, but at
-last it could be seen that Rouse was safely through the trial none the
-worse for wear, and that Coles was flushed with heat. For a while he
-drew back and waited, then as Rouse began to work in again with his
-guard well up and his chin covered by the point of his shoulder, Coles
-sprang up against him and bore him back. There was a brief grim tussle
-for supremacy at close quarters, and then out of the fury of the rally
-there gradually emerged the undoubted victor. Rouse had thrust his man
-away by sheer strength and had drawn back for a heavy blow. As Coles
-bored in again he struck out. The blow took Coles on the side of the
-chin as he bounded forward, and he just staggered sideways and fell in a
-heap.
-
-For a moment he lay there. There was no applause. The silence was more
-telling. He lay puzzling out what to do, and then at last he got up and
-looked for Rouse with eyes that were ablaze with wrath. Rouse had waited
-for a sign that he was ready, and now, as Coles put up his hands, he
-walked in and began the real work that he had to do. So far he had
-merely steadied his man. The last blow had been the signal that this
-phase was over. The thrashing that he deserved was to come. Coles could
-box and it was difficult to work him into a corner, but his fiery temper
-was a decided help to Rouse, and at length he had Coles against the
-ropes, standing with legs apart and both gloves held in a threatening
-attitude of readiness. Rouse looked at him grimly and came in. For a
-moment there was a whirl of fists. Then just as before the better man
-emerged. A glove flashed up from his hip and almost lifted Coles off his
-feet with the force of its landing. Coles tried to answer with his left,
-but he was off his balance, and Rouse merely dodged back, then swung in
-again with the whole weight of his body behind his glove. This time
-Coles fell slowly, like a man struggling against unconsciousness, and at
-last when he hit the boards he lay still.
-
-Rouse drew back, watching him inscrutably. Still there was no applause.
-Coles was not yet entirely done for. He had not yet been punished to the
-full. He got up groggily and stood waiting. Rouse moved in and struck
-him again. He rocked and tried to collect himself for a final effort.
-
-For the crowd who stood watching it was a glorious moment. Once again
-Rouse had achieved the seemingly impossible. Coles stood there swaying
-in defeat and no man could rightly tell his thoughts, but at last, when
-he saw Rouse moving to hit him again, he leant forward and struck out
-with left and right as he came. One blow landed, but it failed to stop
-Rouse, and he came on slowly, relentlessly. His glove swung from the
-shoulder and landed against the other head with a thud. Coles began to
-fall. He made one effort to hit back. As he righted himself he exposed
-his chin, and Rouse let go a blow that carried every atom of his
-strength. This time Coles just threw out his hands, and dropped in a
-limp heap at his feet.
-
-Rouse turned to his comer with a sigh of untold satisfaction. He had
-only one fear, and that was that Coles might recover in time to come up
-for another round. He wanted to have turned the tables on Coles with
-real effect. Coles had beaten _him_ in one round.
-
-For a moment he was in doubt. Then Toby finished counting and made a
-quick sign with his hand.
-
-Coles’ second came into the ring and picked him up.
-
-Rouse had won. Still there was no applause. He looked once towards
-Terence, but he gave no sign of real gladness. His feelings were part
-and parcel of the feelings of the entire school. A traitor had met with
-his deserts. There was nothing to clap about.
-
-And then quite suddenly he realised his mistake. They had merely been
-waiting for Coles to be carried away. Now they had turned to him, and
-thunder began to roll from every side towards him. It grew and grew
-until the windows were rattling in their frames and the rafters of the
-gym. were trembling with concussion. Louder and louder it swelled.
-Wherever he looked hands were beating the air. He tried to make his way
-to the dressing-room. He was seized by strong arms and hoisted up. He
-tried to quell them. It was no good. The pent-up excitement of the last
-term’s end was too much for their control. Yesterday’s captain had
-become to-day’s. What could they do but cheer?
-
- * * * * *
-
-Across the playing fields there came a little man clad in a sombre suit
-and wearing upon his head a soft felt hat of great respectability. As he
-came he looked from side to side as if in doubt as to which road he
-ought to take, and so when he came within sight of the school gymnasium
-he stopped. Next moment a noise like the crashing to earth of some
-gigantic edifice shattered his very ear-drums, and he stood swaying for
-a moment, shaken from head to foot. At last he turned towards the
-building from which that vast explosion had appeared to come, and as his
-senses gradually reassumed their balance he realised that the thunderous
-echo of it was continuing. He began to walk on, his head turned in
-astonishment as he went, and as the noise grew and grew he stopped
-again, his blue eyes wide with wonder.
-
-Then from the doorway of the gym. there came a stream of running
-youngsters, who turned in the open and waited for those behind to form a
-vast half-circle. Next he saw Toby Nicholson thrust out into the open by
-the weight of the mob behind him, and at last there came a kaleidoscopic
-mass of humanity tumbling out from the doors in a tidal wave, bearing
-upon its crest the boy that he had taught to box.
-
-Then he began to understand, and so he slowly smiled.
-
-He was still smiling like this when Toby disengaged himself and, seeing
-him, came across to shake his hand with extraordinary vigour.
-
-“I have come as I promised,” said the little man, “because I have found
-the very man you want, and he is ready to start as your coach to-morrow
-if your Headmaster is agreeable. I thought I would come down and see him
-myself.”
-
-“The Headmaster wants to meet you,” said Toby. “And you couldn’t have
-come at a better time. Your man has won.”
-
-He turned to look for a moment quizzically upon the seething mob, and
-suddenly moved forward and beckoned to a tall thin boy who had detached
-himself from the crowd and seemed to be looking for his cap. This he
-recovered at last and came towards them.
-
-“Hope,” said Toby, “I want to introduce you to this gentleman. He is
-Carr’s father and he taught Rouse to box.”
-
-Henry looked at the little man over the tops of his glasses, the excited
-flush still evident upon his cheek and his breath still laboured. Then
-he solemnly raised his cap and held out his hand.
-
-“I am very proud to know you, sir,” said he. “Your son has come back to
-Morley’s now and we are firm friends.” He suddenly turned his head. The
-scene was growing into one of indescribable commotion. He looked once
-longingly, then turned to Toby as if in pleading. “If you would just
-excuse me a minute, sir,” said he, “I really _must_ go and cheer a bit.”
-
-He went off with a sudden raking stride, shouting wild cat calls through
-cupped hands, and the little man turned to Toby.
-
-“It would be better for you to tell them who I am, Mr Nicholson, than to
-let them be deceived,” said he. “You see—that boy raised his hat to me.”
-
-Toby nodded his head.
-
-“Yes,” said he, “of course. Any boy here always raises his hat to
-another boy’s father.”
-
-The little man did not entirely understand.
-
-“But,” he began, “a professional boxer——”
-
-Toby stopped him.
-
-“You taught Rouse to box,” he said, “and he knocked Coles out. I can’t
-explain any more. The fellows at this school will always raise their
-hats to you.”
-
-“It makes me feel almost as if I were a—gentleman,” said Johnny simply.
-
-Toby looked at him with a fond smile.
-
-“Come to the Head,” said he, “and be introduced. You’ll understand
-better after you’ve seen him.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-Rouse sat in his bath.
-
-The comfort of hot water wrapping him round was bringing to him a
-wonderful sense of restfulness and repose. The shouting had died away at
-last and he was alone. Somewhere he understood that the school were
-forming into a queue that stretched twice across the playing fields,
-waiting to give in their names as desirous of taking up boxing during
-the coming term. He looked ahead and he could see no single cloud upon
-the far horizon. The year was shaping its course for breaking record. He
-was amazingly content, and when at last there came a knock upon the door
-he turned in surprise and waited a moment before he said in guarded
-tones:
-
-“Who’s that?”
-
-“I’ve brought you a couple of _hot towels_,” was the answer. “I thought
-you’d like them.”
-
-For a moment Rouse lay still, utterly and finally at peace with all the
-world. At last he replied.
-
-“Terence, my boy,” said he, “you are not, all things considered, at all
-a bad old stick. One of these days I am inclined to think that I shall
-very probably learn to like you.”
-
-It was, as we know, only in moments of the deepest emotion that Rouse
-ever called Terence by his proper name.
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
- THE RIVERSIDE PRESS LIMITED, EDINBURGH
-
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber’s note:
-
- 1. Silently corrected typographical errors and variations in spelling.
-
- 2. Anachronistic, non-standard, and uncertain spellings retained as
- printed.
- 3. P. 153, changed "short interfere" to "short to interfere".
-
-
-
-
-***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CAPTAINS OF HARLEY***
-
-
-******* This file should be named 60926-0.txt or 60926-0.zip *******
-
-
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
-http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/6/0/9/2/60926
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/60926-0.zip b/old/60926-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 0531d38..0000000
--- a/old/60926-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60926-h.zip b/old/60926-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 4df3377..0000000
--- a/old/60926-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60926-h/60926-h.htm b/old/60926-h/60926-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index da5d5ac..0000000
--- a/old/60926-h/60926-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,12492 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml">
-<head>
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=UTF-8" />
-<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of Captains of Harley, by Hylton Cleaver</title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
- body { margin-left: 8%; margin-right: 10%; }
- h1 { text-align: center; font-weight: bold; font-size: xx-large; }
- h2 { text-align: center; font-weight: bold; font-size: x-large; }
- .pageno { right: 1%; font-size: x-small; background-color: inherit; color: silver;
- text-indent: 0em; text-align: right; position: absolute;
- border: thin solid silver; padding: .1em .2em; font-style: normal;
- font-variant: normal; font-weight: normal; text-decoration: none; }
- p { text-indent: 0; margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; text-align: justify; }
- .sc { font-variant: small-caps; }
- .large { font-size: large; }
- .xlarge { font-size: x-large; }
- .small { font-size: small; }
- .xsmall { font-size: x-small; }
- .ol_1 li {padding-left: 1em; text-indent: -1em; }
- ol.ol_1 {padding-left: 0; margin-left: 2.78%; margin-top: .5em;
- margin-bottom: .5em; list-style-type: decimal; }
- div.pbb { page-break-before: always; }
- hr.pb { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-bottom: 1em; }
- @media handheld { hr.pb { display: none; } }
- .chapter { clear: both; page-break-before: always; }
- .figcenter { clear: both; max-width: 100%; margin: 2em auto; text-align: center; }
- div.figcenter p { text-align: center; text-indent: 0; }
- .figcenter img { max-width: 100%; height: auto; }
- .id001 { width:30%; }
- @media handheld { .id001 { margin-left:35%; width:30%; } }
- .ic001 { width:100%; }
- .ig001 { width:100%; }
- .table0 { margin: auto; margin-top: 2em; }
- .nf-center { text-align: center; }
- .nf-center-c0 { text-align: left; margin: 0.5em 0; }
- .c000 { margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c001 { margin-top: 4em; }
- .c002 { margin-left: 33.33%; margin-right: 33.33%; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c003 { margin-left: 33.33%; margin-right: 33.33%; }
- .c004 { margin-top: 1em; }
- .c005 { page-break-before: always; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c006 { margin-top: 2em; }
- .c007 { page-break-before:auto; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c008 { vertical-align: top; text-align: right; padding-right: 1em; }
- .c009 { vertical-align: top; text-align: left; padding-right: 1em; }
- .c010 { vertical-align: top; text-align: right; }
- .c011 { text-align: center; }
- .c012 { margin-top: 2em; text-indent: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
- .c013 { text-indent: 1em; margin-top: 0.25em; margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
- .c014 { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-top: 0.8em;
- margin-bottom: 0.8em; margin-left: 35%; margin-right: 35%; width: 30%; }
- div.tnotes { padding-left:1em;padding-right:1em;background-color:#E3E4FA;
- border:1px solid silver; margin:2em 10% 0 10%; font-family: Georgia, serif;
- }
- .covernote { visibility: hidden; display: none; }
- div.tnotes p { text-align:left; }
- @media handheld { .covernote { visibility: visible; display: block;} }
- blockquote {margin: 1.5em 0em; }
- .section { clear: both; page-break-before: always; }
- .ol_1 li {font-size: .9em; }
- @media handheld {.ol_1 li {padding-left: 1em; text-indent: 0em; } }
- body {font-family: Georgia, serif; text-align: justify; }
- table {font-size: .9em; }
- .footnote {font-size: .9em; }
- .figcenter {font-size: .9em; page-break-inside: avoid; }
- div.titlepage {text-align: center; page-break-before: always;
- page-break-after: always; }
- div.titlepage p {text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; font-weight: bold;
- line-height: 1.5; margin-top: 3em; }
- .ph1 { text-indent: 0em; font-weight: bold; font-size: xx-large;
- margin: .67em auto; page-break-before: always; }
- .ph2 { text-indent: 0em; font-weight: bold; font-size: x-large; margin: .75em auto;
- page-break-before: always; }
- .box {border-style: solid; border-width: medium; padding: 1em; margin: 0em;
- max-width: 50%; margin-left: auto; margin-right: auto; }
- .right {text-align: right; display: block; margin-left: auto; margin-right: 0em;
- width: 50%;font-size: small; }
-
- h1.pg { font-size: 190%;
- clear: both; }
- h2.pg { font-size: 135%;
- clear: both; }
- h3,h4 { text-align: center;
- clear: both; }
- hr.full { width: 100%;
- margin-top: 3em;
- margin-bottom: 0em;
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- height: 4px;
- border-width: 4px 0 0 0; /* remove all borders except the top one */
- border-style: solid;
- border-color: #000000;
- clear: both; }
- </style>
-</head>
-<body>
-<h1 class="pg">The Project Gutenberg eBook, Captains of Harley, by Hylton Cleaver,
-Illustrated by H. M. Brock</h1>
-<p>This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States
-and most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
-restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
-under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
-eBook or online at <a
-href="http://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you are not
-located in the United States, you'll have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this ebook.</p>
-<p>Title: Captains of Harley</p>
-<p> A School Story</p>
-<p>Author: Hylton Cleaver</p>
-<p>Release Date: December 15, 2019 [eBook #60926]</p>
-<p>Language: English</p>
-<p>Character set encoding: UTF-8</p>
-<p>***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CAPTAINS OF HARLEY***</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<h3>E-text prepared by Richard Tonsing, Tim Lindell,<br />
- and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team<br />
- (http://www.pgdp.net)</h3>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<hr class="full" />
-
-<div class='section ph1'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c001'>
- <div>CAPTAINS OF HARLEY</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='box'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>SCHOOL STORIES BY</div>
- <div>HYLTON CLEAVER</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-<div class='box'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c003'>
- <div>BROTHER O’ MINE:</div>
- <div>A Story of Harley</div>
- <div class='c004'>THE HARLEY FIRST XI</div>
- <div class='c004'>ROSCOE MAKES GOOD</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-<div class='box'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c003'>
- <div>HUMPHREY MILFORD</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div id='Frontispiece' class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/i_frontispiece.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic001'>
-<p>“WHEN HE HIT THE BOARDS HE LAY STILL.”<br /><br /><span class='right'>[<em>See p. <a href='#Page_273'>273</a>.</em></span></p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='titlepage'>
-
-<div>
- <h1 class='c005'>CAPTAINS OF HARLEY<br /> <br /> <span class='xlarge'>A SCHOOL STORY</span></h1>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c004'>
- <div><span class='small'>BY</span></div>
- <div><span class='large'>HYLTON CLEAVER</span></div>
- <div><span class='xsmall'>AUTHOR OF “BROTHER O’ MINE,” ETC.</span></div>
- <div class='c004'><span class='small'>WITH ILLUSTRATIONS BY</span></div>
- <div>H. M. BROCK</div>
- <div class='c006'>HUMPHREY MILFORD</div>
- <div>OXFORD UNIVERSITY PRESS</div>
- <div>LONDON EDINBURGH GLASGOW</div>
- <div>TORONTO MELBOURNE CAPETOWN BOMBAY</div>
- <div>1921</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c004' />
-</div>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_5'>5</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CONTENTS</h2>
-</div>
-
-<table class='table0' summary='CONTENTS'>
- <tr>
- <th class='c008'><span class='small'>CHAPTER</span></th>
- <th class='c009'>&nbsp;</th>
- <th class='c010'><span class='small'>PAGE</span></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>I.</td>
- <td class='c009'>THE BOY IN THE CORNER</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_9'>9</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>II.</td>
- <td class='c009'>THE GREAT GAME</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_20'>20</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>III.</td>
- <td class='c009'>COMING EVENTS</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_31'>31</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>IV.</td>
- <td class='c009'>A SLIGHT MISTAKE</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_40'>40</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>V.</td>
- <td class='c009'>BREAKERS AHEAD</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_54'>54</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>VI.</td>
- <td class='c009'>A RISING STAR</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_62'>62</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>VII.</td>
- <td class='c009'>A CABINET MEETING</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_71'>71</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>VIII.</td>
- <td class='c009'>THE THUMB-SCREW</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_82'>82</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>IX.</td>
- <td class='c009'>A MOLE-HILL AND A MOUNTAIN</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_94'>94</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>X.</td>
- <td class='c009'>THE WATCHERS</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_101'>101</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>XI.</td>
- <td class='c009'>THE HOLD</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_110'>110</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>XII.</td>
- <td class='c009'>CIRCUMSTANCES HAVE ARISEN</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_127'>127</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>XIII.</td>
- <td class='c009'>SOMETHING UP HIS SLEEVE</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_135'>135</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>XIV.</td>
- <td class='c009'>THE FIRST ROUND</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_142'>142</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>XV.</td>
- <td class='c009'>THE SAFETY VALVE</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_152'>152</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>XVI.</td>
- <td class='c009'>YESTERDAY’S CAPTAIN</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_165'>165</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>XVII.</td>
- <td class='c009'>SALVE</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_182'>182</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>XVIII.</td>
- <td class='c009'>THE UNCOUNTED COST</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_188'>188</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_6'>6</span>XIX.</td>
- <td class='c009'>THE CUP OF BITTERNESS</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_197'>197</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>XX.</td>
- <td class='c009'>THE LAST ROUND</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_218'>218</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>XXI.</td>
- <td class='c009'>SECRET SERVICE</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_230'>230</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>XXII.</td>
- <td class='c009'>HARD ROE</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_243'>243</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>XXIII.</td>
- <td class='c009'>THE DAY OF RECKONING</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_261'>261</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_7'>7</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS</h2>
-</div>
-
-<table class='table0' summary='LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS'>
- <tr><td class='c011' colspan='2'>“<span class='sc'>When he hit the boards he lay still</span>” (See page <a href='#Page_273'>273</a>) <em><a href='#Frontispiece'>Frontispiece in colour</a></em></td></tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <th class='c009'></th>
- <th class='c010'><span class='small'>FACING PAGE</span></th>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>“<span class='sc'>He began to trot up the field like a pup with a slipper</span>”</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_28'>28</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>“<span class='sc'>The head advanced upon them in growing anger</span>”</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_98'>98</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>“‘<span class='sc'>The match is scratched, sir,’ said he</span>”</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_148'>148</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>“‘<span class='sc'>I think you’ve seen that before?</span>’”</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_208'>208</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_9'>9</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER I<br /> <span class='large'>THE BOY IN THE CORNER</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>A wiry, grave-faced youngster sat in the corner of
-the railway carriage watching a stupid parent saying
-good-bye to a stupid boy.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He was glad that nobody had come to see him
-off, for he had now the satisfaction of knowing
-that his own father was a father more worth having
-than any other he had seen yet. Also he could look
-upon the pitiable scene now being enacted before
-him from the standpoint of one who at least could
-be trusted to get into the right carriage without
-leaping out by the other door to see if it were
-really labelled “Harley” on both sides. This fat
-boy had done that, and afterwards he had sat
-down very heavily on a packet of sandwiches and
-was unaware of it. The boy in the corner wondered
-if they would be sticking to him when he
-stood up. As for the parent of the fat boy, he stood
-outside looking nervously towards the engine, and
-his raincoat, which was unbuttoned, blew this way
-and that in the breeze; once it had somewhat
-foolishly knocked some buns off a push-cart. He
-wore a hat poised far forward over his nose, and
-he had flat feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Whilst the boy in the corner sat watching with
-thoughtful eyes, the man broke suddenly into a
-rapid clog dance and beckoned to his son. Above
-the rat-a-tat of his feet upon the platform could be
-heard his voice plaintively upraised:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Arthur! Arthur! <em>Come</em> here! Jump out as
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_10'>10</span>quickly as you possibly can. I have something to
-say to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Arthur took just one glad leap into the open,
-landing upon his father’s foot. Then, clapping his
-ear against his father’s lips, he listened with a coy
-interest to his urgent whispers, until he was suddenly
-gripped by the elbow and spun upon his heel.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Get in at once, my boy, get in at once!” his
-parent was commanding. “At once, I say. The
-train is about to go. Get in quickly&nbsp;... quickly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Arthur fell in head-first, and arrived limply half
-on the seat and half on the floor. Then he slowly
-clawed his way on to the cushions and subsided.
-But now once again there sounded that terrible
-parent’s staccato voice. The unhappy boy was
-hooked by the arm with an umbrella.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It is not going yet after all,” he was told.
-“Come out again. Come out for a moment. I have
-something to say to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The wiry boy in the corner began to feel sorry for
-Arthur: he was perspiring so very freely. However,
-there followed confidence after confidence until,
-finally and for the last time, the father threw his son
-bodily into the carriage like a sack of potatoes.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The blast of a whistle had reached his expectant
-ears.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Get in! Get in!” he was crying. “For goodness’
-sake do get in! What a foolish boy you are.
-You will certainly miss the train. Be sure to write.
-Good-bye&nbsp;... good-bye&nbsp;... good-bye!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Then the train was really moving out of the station
-at last. Numberless boys in Harley caps were
-scrambling into carriages, and as the little man with
-the goatee beard gave one final wave of his glove to
-his departing son, two young men cannoned into him
-from behind, and his hat flew violently forwards
-and outwards, causing him to make a somewhat
-ludicrous exit from the boy in the corner’s field of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_11'>11</span>view. Next the foremost of his assailants had
-sprung for the carriage door and they had tumbled in.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>One of the two seemed a little embarrassed at the
-diversion they had caused, and sat down modestly
-in a corner. The other wiped his forehead, and then
-turned and beheld Arthur with both interest and
-delight.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The portly Arthur was sitting stiffly upright and
-staring at his ticket with wide protuberant eyes, the
-while he trembled like unto one smitten with ague.
-He looked up at the boy in the corner and gaped.
-He tried to speak. Words failed him. At last a
-low moan escaped his lips.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“My ticket! My ticket! Father has taken it
-away with him and he—” he paused and collected
-himself for a bellow of despair—“he has given me
-his own return ticket to <em>Ealing</em>!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The boy in the corner looked at him as if one might
-have expected something like this would have
-occurred after all that palaver, and the brief silence
-that followed his sensational news was only broken
-by a peculiar grunt that would not be stifled. Then
-up spoke one of the late arrivals. Both were
-evidently boys of some seniority and wore bowler
-hats. The one who spoke now had a lean and
-humorous countenance lit by strangely bright eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Nick,” said he to his companion, “look out of
-the window. Do you see anyone coming?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The young gentleman addressed as Nick was beaming
-thoughtfully as if to himself, and he did not at
-once obey.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I will look myself,” said the other, rising impatiently
-and leaning far out. “Yes, I can see a
-cloud of dust. Right in the middle of it there is the
-figure of a man bounding along the road at such a
-break-neck speed that his feet are scarcely touching
-the ground at all. It appears,” he added, turning
-to Arthur, “to be your sportsmanlike father.” He
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_12'>12</span>coughed. “His chances of catching us are somewhat
-small, of course. The train is now going at full
-speed. Your father is certainly making a very fine
-effort indeed&nbsp;... his movements are not unlike
-those of a good-class cat&nbsp;... but he will, I fear, be
-outdistanced by the puff-puff. Your father——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The fat boy could stand this no longer. He
-pushed his head fiercely out of the window under
-the other’s arm.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Where?” he demanded. “Where’s my
-father?” He looked harder still. “Why,” said
-he, “we’re only just out of the station. There’s
-no cloud of dust at all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No,” confessed the other. “Now that I come
-to look with my other eye I must admit that I
-do not see it so clearly myself. Still there might
-have been. It is a pretty picture to conjure up—your
-father absolutely running himself to a standstill
-to get back his ticket to Ealing.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>After this there was silence for a little while.
-The bright-eyed youth resumed his seat and appeared
-to be thinking things over. He threw his
-bowler on to the rack and passed a hand thoughtfully
-over his hair.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last he leaned forward, resting his elbows upon
-his knees, and faced Arthur.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Then he inclined his head sideways towards his
-fair-haired comrade.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That robust-looking fellow over there is known
-as Terence Nicholson,” said he, weighing his words.
-“He has been three years in the Harley Cricket
-Eleven, and now he’s in the Rugger side, so be careful
-what you say. His brother’s called ‘Old Nick,’
-and he’s a master at school. Very likely you’ll see
-him walking along the footboards on his hands if
-you look outside. My own name,” he paused, in
-order to give added emphasis to the noble word, “is
-Rouse.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_13'>13</span>He did not care to introduce himself as the probable
-captain of Rugby football during the coming term,
-for Rouse was not conceited about the things that
-he <em>could</em> do. Oddly enough he was only conceited
-about the things that he could not.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“A beak called Mould,” he announced, “once
-told me when I was construing Latin that I had a
-very inventive brain.” He tapped his forehead
-significantly. “He was entirely correct. You see
-in me a man who thinks for exercise rather than for
-profit, and it will comfort you to know that I have
-already devised a way of escape for you in your
-astounding dilemma. I ask myself: ‘Now how is
-this poor misguided creature ever going to pass
-through the iron barriers of Harley with only a silly
-little ticket to Ealing in his hand?’ And the
-answer is this: ‘I will ask him to give that ticket
-to me.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The fat boy reached out a trembling hand and
-gave over his ticket somewhat fearfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse took it and solemnly tore it into a hundred
-pieces. The fat boy screamed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Oh, you’ve spoilt it!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Certainly,” admitted Rouse, “it is a trifle bent.
-But why? Because now nobody knows whether it
-is a ticket to Harley or the Federated Malay States.
-Will they, however, suppose that you would be such
-an ass as to buy a ticket to Ealing when you intended
-proceeding to Harley? I think not. You have to
-give up your ticket at the other end, and you’ll give
-it up, that’s all. It will be in pieces, but there’s no
-law against that. The warden at the gate will say:
-‘Hi, here you! What’s this?’ and you’ll say:
-‘That, sir, is my ticket,’ and you’ll pour it generously
-into his open hands. He’ll never know. He’ll
-think it’s a practical joke, scowl at you, and pass you
-through with the toe of his boot.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was an awed silence. Rouse was well
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_14'>14</span>satisfied with the effect of his words. Suddenly
-however there spoke up Terence Nicholson from his
-corner. It was the first time that he had been able
-to get a word in and he spoke modestly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes,” said he, “that’s all very well; only the
-ticket to Harley is green and his ticket to Ealing’s
-red. That’s all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There came a silence of several moments, whilst
-those present considered this point with new interest,
-and at last Terence shook his head regretfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There’s always something wrong with your
-schemes,” said he. “You don’t grow any older.
-You don’t improve a bit.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And thereupon there came a rush of air and a
-roar and the train had entered a tunnel. The
-light spluttered hopefully for a moment and then
-died a natural death. They were plunged into
-darkness.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last the melancholy voice of Rouse was again
-uplifted in a sonorous protest that came heavily
-through the darkness as if in pleading:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, you’re always very clever at picking holes,”
-said he. “In common with the rest of Harley’s
-populace you cherish that silly notion that except
-for a certain knack in playing footer I am one of the
-most useless and incapable creatures ever built. Let
-me hear you make a suggestion, my lad.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, if you ask me,” said Terence, “I should
-say, let him tell the truth.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse cleared his throat.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, I think you may be right. It’ll be difficult
-for anyone to believe <em>that</em> poor boy capable of practising
-deceit. In fact one may say that he looks
-strongly like a boy who could be depended upon to
-forget his ticket.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The train came suddenly into daylight again and
-Rouse stopped abruptly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The fat boy was weeping.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_15'>15</span>Rouse stared at him for a moment, then looked
-askance at Terence, and finally he turned a sternly
-prefectorial eye upon the boy in the corner who had
-hitherto somewhat escaped his notice. The boy
-looked back at him a little uncertainly with a half
-smile. He was not at all sure whether it was good
-form to laugh at a boy who was crying. Rouse
-gave him no hint. He just looked: and presently
-the other blinked at him apologetically. Actually
-Rouse was deciding, as he afterwards told Terence,
-what a peculiarly good-looking kid he was.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What’s your name?” said he at last.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Carr,” said the boy in the corner.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“And which house are you going to?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Mr Morley’s, I think.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Over that house,” said Rouse, “I weave my spell.
-Also Friend Nicholson there. We were in that house
-when an arch-idiot named Mould ruled over our
-form, and at one time I must confess we appeared
-to be sinking. Yet, as we came up for the third
-time, so to speak, he was removed, and we survived.
-You’ll find Morley all right.” He turned to Arthur
-a little awkwardly. “Don’t answer if you’d rather
-not,” said he courteously, “but to which house are
-you being admitted?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The fat boy did not raise his head. He simply
-continued to weep, and at last there broke from his
-lips these sad words: “I want my t-t-ticket.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse fumbled in his pocket and at last produced
-a small piece of chalk.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Here you are,” said he. “Draw yourself one
-on the wall.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>From that time onward the conversation was
-maintained solely by the expectant captain of Rugby
-football. Nobody else seemed to have anything
-to say, but he had a great deal. Terence Nicholson
-sat in his corner with the reminiscent smile of the
-man one may notice in the stalls of any theatre—the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_16'>16</span>man who has seen the show twice before but who
-is enjoying it all none the less for that.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie Carr listened with deep and genuine interest,
-but he said nothing. He was too hypnotised. His
-large eyes followed Rouse’s every movement and
-never wavered.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Arthur merely swayed backwards and forwards
-in his seat, and sometimes when the train stopped
-with a jerk he was jolted forward on to the knees
-of the boy in the corner, over whom he hung with
-sagging head; then when the train started again was
-bumped back so that he cracked his skull against the
-wall of the compartment, but he seemed not to care.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last they reached Harley.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>As soon as they had alighted the large figure of a
-man suddenly appeared from nowhere and loomed
-over them. The man was dressed exceedingly well
-and exceedingly comfortably in Harris tweeds. He
-wore a soft hat and a club tie, and his large feet
-were enclosed in large brogue shoes. Even his
-pipe was large. His hand reached out and rested
-upon Terence’s shoulder. Finally he looked at
-Rouse.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“As for you,” said he, “it’s no use you saying
-you’re not there, because I can see your ears flapping
-behind that grin.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The gentleman addressed endeavoured to keep a
-straight face, whilst from the near locality Arthur
-was to be heard lamenting his ill-fortune and crying
-aloud for advice.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For the last year or so Terence had been doing his
-best to overtake Toby in point of size, but he was
-still a trifle overshadowed by his brother’s large form,
-and he stood beside him modestly, as if pleased to
-claim a certain reflected glory. He could never see
-any reason for self-conceit in the fact that he had
-been three years in the Harley Cricket Eleven and
-one year in the First Fifteen. The only thing he was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_17'>17</span>really proud about was the fact that Toby was his
-brother.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There’s rather bad news,” said Toby at last.
-“I’m afraid you’ll be very sorry.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They looked at him inquiringly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The Grey Man has been very ill,” said he, puffing
-slowly at his pipe, “and he’s not coming back.
-We’ve got a new Head.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The boy who had sat in the corner was standing
-hesitantly behind them, and he was amazed to find
-Rouse struck dumb. For Rouse just stood and
-looked first at Toby and then at Terence, and it
-was a long time before he spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence asked quietly: “Who’s coming instead
-of him then?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And Toby answered: “He’s a man called Roe.
-That’s all I can tell you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And then the pair of them seemed to consider the
-news with a fresh gravity, until at last Rouse shook
-his head sadly and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I loved that man, you know.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coming from one who throughout the journey had
-seemed to be merely a rather superior sort of clown,
-this statement took Bobbie Carr by surprise. He
-stood there beside his bag, watching with wide eyes,
-waiting for more. But little more came. Rouse
-was a young man who could never make up his mind
-to grow up, and with the Grey Man he had never had
-to don any hypocritical cloak of stiff severity just
-because he was becoming one of the oldest boys at
-Harley, and he had got along very well indeed.
-Perhaps it was going to be different now. He
-picked up his bag and moved slowly away beside
-Terence, whilst Toby watched them go slowly and
-sadly along the platform towards the barrier, and
-as Bobbie followed after them he saw Rouse shake
-his head solemnly and heard him say:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s a bad business. A bad business. Except
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_18'>18</span>for Toby, he was about the only master who’ll ever
-understand me, Terence, my lad.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And when he knew them better Bobbie came to
-realise that it was only in moments of considerable
-gravity that Rouse ever called his friend by his
-proper Christian name.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At the barrier Rouse turned. He seemed suddenly
-to have remembered the fat boy. At last
-he observed him making his way flat-footedly and
-in extreme distress along the platform, and he
-beckoned.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Arthur increased his speed and came up alongside,
-breathing heavily and with his mouth open. Rouse
-looked at him gravely. All the heart seemed to
-have gone out of him. He drew the ticket-collector’s
-attention to the fat boy indifferently.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“This boy,” said he, “has come without his ticket.
-Will you chronicle the incident in your annals?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The collector looked at him resentfully. In four
-years Rouse had never yet passed his barrier without
-saying something to him which he could not for the
-life of him understand.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Will you,” continued Rouse, “record his history
-in your black book?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The man turned patiently to the fat boy.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You come without your ticket. How did you
-do that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“He found it easy,” observed Rouse in a hollow
-voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What’s your name?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Arthur trembled before the glare of the man in
-uniform, and stuttered out the simple answer:
-“Coppin.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What will he do?” he inquired of Rouse as
-soon as they were clear of the station.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“He will communicate with the Headmaster,”
-answered Rouse, “and you will never be allowed to
-travel by train again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_19'>19</span>And then he lapsed into silence. At last Terence
-turned to look at him, and Rouse glanced up and
-sighed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I shall miss the Grey Man,” said he. “The
-school won’t seem the same.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_20'>20</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER II<br /> <span class='large'>THE GREAT GAME</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>Rouse was walking slowly from the school towards
-the playing fields. He was clad in a blazer surmounted
-by a wide school muffler, wound several
-times round his neck, and upon his head he wore
-a velvet cap heavily embroidered with brocade.
-Rouse was at peace with all the world. The wonderful
-thing had happened at last: he was captain of
-Rugby football at Harley. That it would come had
-been a foregone conclusion amongst those who knew.
-Rouse himself had been a little doubtful. For one
-thing he was not yet in the Sixth, and though he had
-certainly been made a prefect in spite of this fact
-the previous term, he knew that he was commonly
-regarded as a boy who could see nothing but the
-silly side of things. He had been sorry about this
-because, in spite of his extravagant sense of humour
-and his consistent lightheartedness, he could be
-serious enough over things that really mattered, and
-to him Rugger was one of the things that really did.
-Only his closest friends were permitted to understand
-this side of his character, for he was sensitive about
-it, but he found that just as it pays one man to seem
-a fool so it sometimes paid him to maintain a reputation
-for irresponsibility. Toby and Terence knew
-him best, and the Grey Man had grown to understand
-him; extraordinarily well too. These had
-known that if he were elected captain of football he
-would make good. Moreover the school had wanted
-him to be elected. He was easily the most popular
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_21'>21</span>player in the whole of Harley, and besides, he was
-the most senior of the old colours, which was always
-the main consideration in electing the new captain.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Well, they had elected him. It had been quite an
-uproarious meeting, too; there had been no end of
-enthusiasm. One small clique had certainly put up
-another man whom they claimed was of equal
-seniority in the Fifteen, but on hearing his name
-proposed the gentleman in question had instantly
-and somewhat confusedly refused to stand, loudly
-disclaiming any desire to skipper a team which could
-claim the leadership of a man like Rouse; and amidst
-loud and approving cheers he had seized the hand of
-Rouse and wrung it with the utmost enthusiasm;
-after which his friends had been at some pains to
-explain to their neighbours that they had only
-mentioned his name to let him know that he had not
-been entirely forgotten.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>So Rouse had really achieved his great ambition....
-It was hard not to chuckle. He progressed
-steadily towards the practice Rugger ground, singing
-gently to himself and picturing the season they were
-going to have. Secretly he longed to organise some
-great rag which should celebrate this event, for
-hitherto his life had been largely made up of rags.
-He realised now, however, that he would have to
-steady down. He had to train a team and lead
-them on the field, and he had to help Toby Nicholson
-teach small boys Rugger. That would take all his
-time, and for such employment it was worth while
-foregoing rags.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Presently he came within sight of the football
-ground that was his destination. Already a crowd
-was spreading along the touch-lines. He fingered
-the switch in his hand with affection. This switch
-had seen very good service, for it had been handed
-on from captain to captain from time immemorial.
-You may have thought that Rouse was about to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_22'>22</span>play Rugby football. He was not. He was about
-to teach it. On the first day of each winter term at
-Harley (and also on other days throughout the
-season) two teams are selected to compete in a
-practice game, and they consist of small boys and
-idle boys and new boys. The excuse that some of
-these may not know Rugby football is of no account.
-They attend for instruction, and the remainder of
-the school line up with their waistcoats comfortably
-loosened in order that they may laugh the more
-heartily. The games master referees and the captain
-of football is armed with this switch, a cut from which
-is awarded, on the occasion of each scrum, to the
-last man into it, whilst whenever a three-quarter
-becomes possessed of the ball he is pursued up the
-field by this selfsame man, running rapidly and
-urging him with word and gesture and such occasional
-flicks of his switch as cause each boy, before the
-game is done, to feel himself possessed of a demon of
-speed and agility. There is also a cut for any boy
-who, in making a tackle, fails to go for his man at
-the knees. It may be noted that old Harleyans
-attribute the great success of the school at Rugby
-football very largely to the excellent effect produced
-by the captain’s switch in junior games; and one
-famous international has laid it down that in any
-big match in which he has broken through with the
-ball upon his chest he has invariably reached by
-instinct for that extra yard of speed which comes
-from the fear of a young man racing behind him
-with a switch, and has thanked his Alma Mater that
-he was taught to do so. Nor will you ever see an old
-Harleyan last into a scrum or tackling high. It is
-a good sign.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The crowd made way for Rouse admiringly, and a
-characteristic smile, which in a young boy would
-have looked more roguish than anything else, began
-to appear at the corners of his mouth. In a game
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_23'>23</span>like this Rouse was in his element. He looked
-thoughtfully round the players and finally glanced
-up and down the touch-lines as if in search of any
-who had evaded his clutch. There came a ripple of
-amusement. Some of those present recalled that
-on the occasion of the corresponding match last year
-those who laughed the most uproariously from the
-touch-line had been marked down by Toby Nicholson’s
-eagle eye during the game, and at half time had been
-called upon to perform themselves. It was possible
-that this would occur again, and throughout the
-world those who have once succumbed to any catch
-are the keenest layers of the trap for the next man.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last the whistle blew. Next moment Rouse
-had skipped nimbly into the midst of things, encouraging
-all with loud cries, and the idea of the
-switch in Rouse’s exuberant hands caused a great
-and lasting enthusiasm amongst the players that
-was exceedingly stirring. Forwards fought for a
-place in the front row of the scrum, and many
-a youth who thought himself likely to be considered
-late might be heard loudly declaiming the fact that
-he had already packed down once, but finding himself
-the fourth man in the front row had been compelled
-to retire.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last one line of three-quarters was fairly away
-with the ball, and Rouse went racing across from
-one to the other, whirling his arm to ensure that each
-man took his pass at top speed. Ultimately the
-wing received the ball, and being entirely new to the
-game clearly did not know what to do with it. For
-a moment he paused and looked round in sheer
-bewilderment. It was fatal. There came a rush of
-air, and Rouse was up alongside, driving him forward
-and shouting aloud definite instructions. A tall
-thin boy came towards them and made his tackle;
-in a mad moment he went high. Too late he realised
-his mistake. Out of the corner of his eyes he was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_24'>24</span>conscious of the switch, and his hands slid down to
-the runner’s knees and tightened their grip till both
-came to the ground and rolled over and over, whilst
-the ball flew forwards and was gathered by an excited
-youth in abnormally long knickerbockers of homemade
-design. Then, high above the laughter of the
-crowd, there sounded a great bellow, something akin
-to the cry of a thoroughly mad hyæna. At first it
-was difficult to locate. Rouse paused and his eyes
-passed swiftly down either touch-line. The laughter
-stopped, and he stepped out and cut lightly at a
-boy who had just received the ball in his hands and
-had not got away so smartly as he should. The
-game proceeded. Now and again that loud, extravagant
-laugh sounded across the field and caused
-others to turn in search of it. As a noise it was
-altogether novel. Evidently some poor boy was
-absolutely unable to control his merriment, and
-unaware of the fate that would follow him he gave
-it full rein. At last there could be no doubt who
-was doing it; the laugh became a magnet. Every
-head was turned towards it. Half time came, and
-Rouse spun on his heel and located it definitely. He
-walked across. On the touch-line he stretched out
-his hand and pointed out the unfortunate creature.
-It was the boy of such surprising fatness, the stupid-looking
-boy, and he stopped laughing abruptly.
-Toby Nicholson had moved up alongside Rouse.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Look here,” said he, “why is it <em>you</em> are not
-playing?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The fat boy shook his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I don’t play <em>that</em> game.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse thrust his hands into his pockets and
-nodded his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Ah,” said he, “many a man is walking down the
-Strand to-day with the linings of his pockets hanging
-out, many a lordly mansion has been crumbled into
-dust, many a stately avenue of elms laid low, many
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_25'>25</span>a boy will be knocking at the door of Dr Barnardo’s
-Home to-night&nbsp;... all because somebody hasn’t
-learned the lesson of Rugby football. Do you know
-that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Why, no,” said the fat boy quakingly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby had produced a small book.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Your name?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Coppin, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Go quickly to the changing-rooms and attire
-yourself for the fray. You will be just in time for
-the second half.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But I&nbsp;... I&nbsp;... I can’t play <em>this</em> game.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You will soon learn,” said Toby consolingly.
-“Time was I didn’t know how to play it.” He
-turned. “You see that boy over there in the long
-knickerbockers? That boy’s name is Henry Hope.
-That boy will <em>never</em> learn how to play Rugby football.
-He has every disadvantage. For one thing he is
-short-sighted. He cannot distinguish one jersey
-from another. He tackles his own side. It doesn’t
-matter. He plays the game just the same and he
-says that it does him good. You’ll find the same.”
-He turned to Rouse. “You’d better take this
-young sportsman to the changing-rooms and fit him
-out with togs.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse moved alertly to the fat boy’s side and
-piloted him out of the crowd and rapidly across the
-field towards the changing-rooms; and as he went
-he bubbled to himself delightedly. He turned at
-last and regarded the unhappy Arthur.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Arthur’s trousers were short and very tight. The
-sleeves of his coat reached midway between the elbow
-and the wrist, the buttons of his waistcoat were
-straining in the leash, and his neck bulged over
-the top of his collar. The pace was too much for
-him. He began to pant.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You’ll feel better with your clothes off,” said
-Rouse encouragingly. “Hold your breath for just
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_26'>26</span>a few minutes longer; you’ll be able to let off steam
-properly as soon as you’re unfastened&nbsp;... and you
-<em>will</em> look bonny in shorts.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He chuckled.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What is going to happen?” demanded Arthur.
-“What are they going to make me do?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“<em>Run</em>,” said Rouse hoarsely.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Shall I be thrown to the ground like those other
-boys?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You will be thrown to the dogs,” was the
-immediate answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Oh, but it’s such a <em>rough</em> game. I shall be hurt.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What? <em>You?</em> Never!” Rouse assured him.
-“Everybody who falls on you will think you’re an
-air cushion.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Further bursts of laughter reached them from
-across the open, and they turned. To the fat boy’s
-satisfaction other stragglers were being led in his
-own track. There was a tall thin boy, and a square
-boy with hair like hay, and an ordinary-looking boy
-and an extraordinary-looking boy. They had all
-been sorted out. He supposed they had all been
-laughing. Arthur turned back. His world was very
-drear. He was filled with acute foreboding. They
-had reached the changing-room. He was led in.
-Here, so far as those who were waiting on the touch-line
-were concerned, the curtain fell. At last it
-was lifted again. The sight was astounding. Arthur
-was being led back. Behind him came the other boys
-who had laughed so heartily, but they were unimportant.
-Arthur held the eye. His extraordinary
-fatness was now entirely disclosed. Wherever it
-was possible to bulge Arthur bulged. And his eyes
-were bulging most of all.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse held him by the arm. Evidently he had
-had some difficulty in fitting Arthur out, but he was
-apparently well pleased with the result.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby met them and spent a few moments in outlining
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_27'>27</span>the theory of the game for Arthur’s benefit.
-Arthur nodded his head dolefully. It was clear that
-he had not another laugh left in his system. Also he
-looked cold.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He was led on to the field. The other new-comers
-were sorted out and instructed to replace some of
-those who had had enough of it. Then the whistle
-blew. There came a thump of a boot meeting
-leather and the ball was sailing towards Arthur. For
-just one second Arthur regarded it stiffly, transfixed
-with horror, then he turned and ran rapidly in the
-other direction. There was a howl of derision.
-Arthur turned. There was no way of escape. The
-ball was bouncing after him. It was like a nightmare.
-From all sides of the field boys were rushing
-towards it. He gave one choking cry, threw up his
-hands and fell heavily on his face. Next moment a
-swarm of forwards had crowded round him and were
-packing down over his prostrate body. Somebody
-seized him by the leg and pulled him out of the way.
-He rose and looked round him with wild eyes. His
-hair was ruffled. There was mud upon his nose.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse came up and explained to him what he
-ought to have done. He looked at Rouse dazedly.
-Rouse inserted him bodily into the scrum, head down,
-and told him to push.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He fell on his face. Rouse picked him up, and he
-tottered and fell on his back. The game went on
-and left him there. Rouse shouted to him, and he
-rose and stood for a moment with boggling eyes and
-nodding head, thinking. Toby pointed into the
-distance and spoke cheering words.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Chase after it, man! Scoot! Catch ’em up!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He began to trot foolishly up the field, with Rouse
-behind him. And then suddenly the ball came
-sailing towards him again and dropped directly on
-to his chest. He clutched at it as if for support and
-Rouse let loose a loud shout of delight.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_28'>28</span>“NOW! You’re off. Nothing can stop you!”
-He whipped him gently into a gallop.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>As if suddenly imbued with the spirit of the game
-Arthur began to show determination. A boy flew
-at him. Arthur handed him off with violence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“<em>Let</em> me alone!” he cried, suddenly very wrath.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Another essayed to tackle him. Arthur struggled
-clear of his grasp but overbalanced and let go the
-ball.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Immediately another boy had sprung forward
-and gathered it.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Arthur shot after him. He suddenly understood.
-Everybody was against him. He had to get the
-ball and everybody was trying to steal it away. The
-sole idea of the game was that he should be allowed
-to run about the field holding the ball, and they were
-all cheating. They wouldn’t let him do it. He
-caught the thief by his jersey and tugged him back.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His fierce cries sounded across the field.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Give it to me! Give it to me! Give it to <em>me</em>!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He had nearly got it. Somebody pulled him back,
-and he struggled in his grasp.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Let me to the ball,” he besought, sobbing with
-bitterness. “Oh, <em>let</em> me to the ball.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>So they stood back and let him to the ball. Rouse
-had signed to them.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He had it at last.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He smiled gleefully. He begun to trot up the field
-like a pup with a slipper. He looked from side to
-side as if for applause, began to raise his knees
-higher and higher from the ground. Rouse ran
-joyously beside him, pointing out the distant goal-line
-as if it were a promised land and instructing
-him what to do.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He was delighted beyond measure. He did not
-know that everybody was standing about the field
-watching him go, and trying to throttle hysteric
-laughter. He thought that he was the hero of the
-hour. At last they were nearly there. It was a
-good thing because he was beginning to puff.</p>
-
-<div class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/i_028fp.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic001'>
-<p>“HE BEGAN TO TROT UP THE FIELD LIKE A PUP WITH A<br />SLIPPER.”</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_29'>29</span>“Put it on that line,” said Rouse. “Put it down
-there, then touch it down.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He had arrived. He bent obediently and did as
-he was bid.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There you are,” said Rouse happily. “You’ve
-scored a try.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Arthur turned and looked round and about.
-Everywhere boys were throwing caps into the air
-and cheering. It was a great moment. Toby had
-come up and seemed to be speaking to him, but in
-the wild noise of applause he could not distinguish a
-word. He grinned broadly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last the thunder of cheers died down.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That’s Rugger,” said Toby. “It’s a great
-game. Don’t you think so? You’ll play it all
-your life now. That’s your first game and you’ll
-never forget it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He never did. Nobody who learns Rugger at
-Harley ever does.</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>The boy who had sat in the corner had been learning
-Rugger that afternoon too, and as he walked
-slowly off the field a tall fellow, considerably older
-than he, came up and touched him on the arm.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What on earth are <em>you</em> doing here?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie Carr looked up, then slowly seemed to
-remember, and to the other it appeared that he turned
-a little pale. At first he made no answer. He just
-looked. Eventually he turned away.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The other still held his arm.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“D’you mean to say your father has sent you
-to a public school?” said he.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He was not a nice-looking fellow. He had a remarkably
-long and disproportionate nose. Also his
-lips had a sarcastic turn. His name was Coles.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“This is <em>good</em>,” said he, and gave a short laugh.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_30'>30</span>“I must write and tell the gov’nor about this. He’ll
-be awfully amused. What do you think the fellows
-here will say when they know what your father is?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie Carr looked straight up at him, but there
-was a queer look of anxiety on his face.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“They’re not going to know,” said he at last.
-“I’ve promised I wouldn’t say.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I should think so,” said Coles. “You won’t be
-very happy here when they find out he’s a——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>A figure came up suddenly from behind and moved
-between them. A large hand rested upon Bobbie’s
-shoulder.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, sonny,” said Rouse. “How did <em>you</em>
-enjoy it?”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_31'>31</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER III<br /> <span class='large'>COMING EVENTS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>The new Headmaster of Harley was a man of considerable
-importance and an overpowering belief in
-himself; for which reason he formed hasty opinions,
-and having once formed them believed them to be
-correct for ever afterwards. In appearance he was
-not unlike a bloodhound in spectacles, and his
-manner was appropriately grim.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The first case that came before his notice was
-that of Arthur, and he dealt with it in person.
-“Because,” said he, “at Wilton I had the reputation
-of knowing each boy individually, and I should
-like to know each boy here as soon as I possibly can.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The railway company had reported that Arthur
-had had the audacity to travel upon their line without
-a ticket, and Arthur was accordingly brought
-in and required to furnish his explanation of the
-outrage. This he did in the most heart-rending
-manner, with second-hand sort of tears spurting from
-his eyes all the time, and with such effect that, after
-listening to his pitiable tale, the new Head became
-convinced that he had been set upon in the train by
-a cowardly ruffian belonging to the school, and apparently
-even a prefect of it, who had wrenched his
-ticket from him by brute force and torn it to shreds
-before his very eyes. Arthur went so far as to give
-detailed information. The felon’s name was Rouse.
-He had introduced himself. And he was a friend
-of a boy called Nicholson, whose brother was a master
-at school.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_32'>32</span>The new Head sent him away with a comforting
-pat on the shoulder and settled himself down to
-consider a fitting punishment for the scoundrel who
-could do such a thing.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Now as luck would have it, that afternoon he was
-standing in majesty beside his window, looking out
-upon the kingdom he had come to govern, when his
-eye lighted upon a Rugby game in progress upon a
-distant football ground, and he suddenly came to
-an abrupt decision.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“At Wilton,” he told the bursar, “I had the
-reputation of only going out to watch games when I
-was least expected to do so.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He nodded his head pleasantly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He would take the boys of Harley completely by
-surprise. He moved swiftly to the door and disappeared.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>As a matter of fact it was, in the result, he himself
-who was taken by surprise, and he returned with
-a dour expression and sent for Mr Nicholson.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby appeared before him in due course.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was immediately clear to Toby that in Dr Roe
-he perceived a gentleman with a strong sense of
-dramatic effect, and he now stood by and prepared
-to watch what he imagined would be a very powerful
-piece of acting, indicating wrath.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head was, however, deep in thought, and
-whilst Toby waited he noticed several little things,
-the first of which was that the carpet did not match
-the colouring of the new Headmaster’s nose. He
-also noticed that Dr Roe’s handwriting sloped backwards,
-which he knew for a bad sign in any man.
-He then adjusted the hang of his trousers, blew his
-nose, wiped his eyes, and commenced to count the
-roses on one square yard of the wall-paper, first with
-one eye and then with the other. Finding that the
-result was the same in each case, and deducing therefrom
-that his sight was still good, he cleared his throat
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_33'>33</span>and approached the wall with a view to observing
-school life from a window.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>As soon as he had turned Dr Roe broke into speech,
-thus to Toby’s mind having him at a disadvantage
-from the start. When Toby distrusted a man he
-liked to look in his eye all the time.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The new Head rose slowly to his feet, lifted one
-hand until it was a suitable height from the table,
-clenched it and brought it down with a bang upon a
-large book. He then lifted his hand again, shook his
-finger at Toby as if in reproach, and began to speak
-rapidly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Only this morning,” said he, “I had a little boy
-before me who had undoubtedly come up against a
-bully. He was terrified. He came in here and cried....
-He had been set upon in the train and robbed of
-his ticket. At Wilton I had the reputation of being
-a lightning judge of character and an infallible one,
-and I can tell you at once that this boy was undoubtedly
-speaking the truth. In ten minutes’
-conversation I came to know him as well as he knew
-himself, and I shall watch over him henceforward
-with interest.” He paused. “I decided,” said he,
-“to delay punishment of the offender a short
-while and to get to know more about this bully
-whilst he still had no reason to suppose that his
-conduct was known to me. I may tell you that at
-Wilton I had the reputation of knowing how to
-wait.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>This seemed to Toby a very useful second string
-to any man’s bow. Dismissed from the post of
-Headmaster, Dr Roe would at least be able to find
-lucrative employment in a smart restaurant.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>However, he made no comment.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“This afternoon,” continued the Head, “I went
-out to watch the boys playing football. Certainly
-I did not arrive till after half time, but I may tell
-you that to my mind the game I then witnessed
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_34'>34</span>was mere tomfoolery—a burlesque, sir—deliberate
-clowning.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes, sir,” said Toby cheerfully. “It was the
-first game of the term. New-comers sides.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Then, perhaps, you will tell me,” said the new
-Head somewhat hotly, “the name of the presumably
-senior boy—a fellow in a tasselled cap anyway—whose
-whole object was to get in people’s way
-and interfere in the game as much as possible, and
-who did it, moreover, purely to vent his spite against
-the very boy who was before me this morning?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You mean Rouse,” said Toby. “He’s captain
-of foot——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head rose up and made a fiery gesture.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I knew it,” said he. “I knew it. They used to
-say at Wilton that my sense of instinct was uncanny—they
-used to say that I always guessed right. I
-guessed right this afternoon. As soon as I saw that
-little boy being pursued about the grass I knew it
-was Rouse.... I knew the little fellow had been
-speaking the truth. Rouse, Mr Nicholson, was the
-name of the fellow who tore up his ticket on the
-journey from London.” He paused sensationally.
-“It may be,” said he, “that you were engrossed
-with your duties as referee this afternoon. Possibly
-you did not notice that feature of the game which
-was most evident to me. Throughout the twenty
-minutes that I was there the fellow Rouse was on
-the little boy’s track without respite. I personally
-saw him viciously cane the lad on the field, and a
-worse example of flagrant bullying has seldom come
-before my notice.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby cleared his throat and began to explain.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I don’t care one atom about custom,” said the
-Head, when he had listened thirty seconds. “I may
-be new to this school but I am not an idiot. Public
-School customs are in constant abuse—take this very
-example. You teach Rugby football with a switch.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_35'>35</span>The first thing that I notice is that a senior boy,
-against whom evidence has already been laid, is
-deliberately using his switch to terrorise a little
-boy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Oh no,” said Toby, with a polite smile.
-“You’re——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head made another gesture.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Oh <em>yes</em>,” said he, with considerable force.
-“Surely I can use my own eyes!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby began again.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Don’t argue, Mr Nicholson,” said Dr Roe. “At
-Wilton I had the reputation of rarely showing my
-temper, but of showing it very thoroughly when it
-was roused. And it is roused now. Do you mean
-to tell me that this boy is actually captain of football?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes,” said Toby mildly; “and a very good
-captain too. He’s one of the most popular boys in
-the school.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head was somewhat taken aback.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, at all events,” said he, “I don’t remember
-noticing him in the Sixth Form.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was an awkward point. Toby moved slightly
-upon his feet. He was not going to confess that
-Rouse was one of the school’s pet dunces.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“He’s not in the Sixth Form yet,” said he.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head clapped his hands and sprang nimbly
-from one foot to the other.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Then,” said he, “how can he be <em>captain of
-football</em> if he’s not even a <em>prefect</em>?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“He is a prefect. The late Headmaster specially
-wished him to be. He knew that he would be
-captain of football this term, and he considered it
-would be a very good thing indeed for the boy’s
-character. Of course the captain of each sport here
-is a prefect <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">ex officio</span></i>, whether he’s in the Sixth or not,
-and the Head wished him to have a full term as a
-prefect before he became captain of Rugger.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_36'>36</span>The Head considered this point with a portentous
-frown, and at last he looked up at Toby and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I think you had better know at once that those
-are not my principles. To my mind the boy who
-leads the school team on to the field of play should
-be the boy who is captain of the school, and if by
-any chance he himself is not a very keen footballer,
-then the next senior boy should take his place. Boys
-have to be made to learn that being able to kick a
-football in a certain direction with a certain force is
-not everything in life. And they learn that best if
-they find that a boy is not allowed to be captain of
-football unless he is also one of the most senior boys
-in the Sixth Form.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He paused and sat down like one who is conscious
-of having performed a righteous duty. Toby began
-to go hot and cold all over.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Every school has its unwritten laws, sir,” he
-began. “It has always been the understanding here
-that each game is captained by the boy who is best
-or most senior at it, irrespective of his scholastic
-ability.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head grew visibly annoyed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I have already told you that I do not agree with
-that principle, Mr Nicholson,” said he; “and to-morrow
-I shall visit this boy’s form and question
-him on his general knowledge. It remains to be seen
-from the opinion I then form whether I consider
-him a suitable boy to remain a prefect under my
-headmastership, or to lead the school on the football
-field. I must say that from the judgment I formed
-of him this afternoon he is most unsuitable for those
-duties.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby essayed a protest.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But, sir,” said he, “this boy has been elected by
-the school.... He is their chosen captain.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Dr Roe rose in his majesty. Unfortunately he
-was a man of somewhat ordinary build, and as
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_37'>37</span>against Toby, therefore, he did not in this respect
-cut much ice. He lifted his hand above his head,
-and bringing it slowly horizontal, indicated Toby with
-a bunch of fingers.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Mr Nicholson,” said he, “whilst I am Headmaster
-of this school no boy is elected to any position
-without my authority. I have been a schoolmaster
-all my life, and at Wilton I had the reputation of
-making sometimes apparently ruthless decisions and
-of sticking to them through thick and thin. I do
-not crave popularity.... I have strong ideas and
-a strong will. If necessary the boys here will be
-made to understand that at once. It may save
-considerable heart burnings afterwards.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He paused and glared at Toby as if in challenge.
-Toby declined with thanks. It was clear that he
-would not improve matters by saying more at the
-moment. There was a brief silence. At last the
-new Head looked up.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There is another thing,” said he. “I like games
-to be taken seriously. Such frivolity as I saw this
-afternoon tends to have a very bad effect upon a
-boy. I hope you will bear that in mind in future
-games which you conduct.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby drew a deep breath.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I think you will understand better, sir,” said he,
-“if you will listen to me for a moment. The boy
-that you think was being terrorised had been laughing
-as loudly as any boy possibly could throughout
-the first half, whilst other boys with a better spirit
-were learning to play.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well,” said the Head crossly, “considering he
-was crying only this morning, why shouldn’t he laugh?
-I am very glad to know that his talk with me had
-so reassured him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It is a bad thing,” said Toby, “for boys who are
-learning a game to be laughed at from the touch-line
-by those who don’t care to try it themselves. Rugby
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_38'>38</span>football is compulsory at this school, and that fact
-has a very excellent effect. It was I who told him
-to come on and play. There was no bullying.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“My dear Nicholson,” said Dr Roe, “I have been
-a schoolmaster longer probably than you have been
-alive. Do you really think that I do not know a
-bully when I see one?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby endeavoured to retain his calm.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It is possible to be mistaken.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I am not mistaken,” snapped the other.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But you see, sir,” insisted Toby, “you haven’t
-even spoken to Rouse.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Because,” said Dr Roe, “I wish to learn all I
-possibly can about him before I do. I have spoken
-to the other lad, and I am satisfied that he is telling
-the truth. I have seen this fellow Rouse making
-himself a clown at a football match, and I have learnt
-from you that, although he has been five years at the
-school, he is not yet in the Sixth Form. It is clear
-that you have a good opinion of him yourself, but
-you are, after all, a young man, Nicholson.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What has that to do with it?” asked Toby
-smilingly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well&nbsp;... I understand,” said the other, “that
-this boy is the bosom chum of your own brother;
-and it is therefore not unlikely that he is a friend of
-your own....” He looked at Toby searchingly.
-“Under these circumstance, I cannot altogether
-expect that your good opinion of him is entirely unprejudiced.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Then,” said Toby, “why did you trouble to ask
-my opinion, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I sent for you,” said the Head, “because you are
-games master, and I want to tell you that I do not
-approve of such buffoonery as took place during the
-game this afternoon.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby’s natural inclination was to bow politely
-and ask leave to pack his bag. But it was at just
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_39'>39</span>such a time as this that his love for Harley grew most
-profound. So he kept silent, and he stood for a
-moment looking at the new Headmaster thoughtfully
-and as clearly in pity as he deemed polite.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Do you wish to see Rouse?” said he at last.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Certainly I shall see Rouse—but I shall not
-see him here. At Wilton I had the reputation of
-never doing the expected. I shall walk across to his
-house and speak to his house master. Then I shall
-visit him in his study. When you are older,
-Nicholson, you will know that it is in his own haunts,
-and when he is not expecting visitors, that you find
-animal or man as he really is.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby’s heart sank. He looked dismally into the
-future and he could see no sunshine at all. With a
-Headmaster like this there could be no hope. It
-was going to be a lean year.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Well, if it was a question of Harley’s principles
-going under to a man who merely sought to make a
-sensational entry into the school, he would have to
-fight. And in the immediate future he would have
-to fight for Rouse. So in his mind’s eye he made a
-few movements as of a sailor about to start a hornpipe
-and followed the Headmaster out of the room.
-Dr Roe turned.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That will be all, Mr Nicholson, thank you,” said
-he. “I will go alone.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_40'>40</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER IV<br /> <span class='large'>A SLIGHT MISTAKE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>The procession came down the corridor and stopped
-outside a small door. It was headed by a tall boy,
-as thin as a match-stick, and with a face so tiny that
-it seemed to be almost entirely hidden behind a pair
-of enormous spectacles which he wore tied round his
-ears with knotted elastic bands. Behind this boy
-came another of his own age, but less extraordinary
-in appearance, and behind them, in their turn,
-came Rouse and Terence Nicholson. The boy in
-spectacles rejoiced in the name of Henry Hope, and
-he claimed to have been the devoted admirer of
-Rouse and Terence longer than anybody else in the
-school. Certainly no other boy would have dared
-to go and roust the captain of Rugby football out of
-his sanctum merely in the hope that he would set
-right a small minor trouble of his own. It is true
-that the fact that Rouse happened to be the said
-captain made a certain difference. Rouse was everybody’s
-friend and particularly the friend of unhappy
-juniors. But what made the chief difference was
-the fact that one of the boys in trouble on this
-particular occasion was Henry Hope.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry drew his crony aside, and they stood for a
-moment looking at the two seniors in turn with
-eyes that shone with admiration, until at last Rouse
-spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes,” said he. “This is the one all right.
-No. 18, the list said. There can’t be any mistake.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_41'>41</span>“Are you sure that it said No. 18?” asked
-Terence modestly. “Seems rather odd.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“My good sir,” responded Rouse, “there is no
-doubt about it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He moved forward and opened the door. Terence
-came up alongside and they stood for a moment
-regarding the interior.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, it isn’t a bad one,” said Terence at last.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse regarded him with deep sorrow.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You <em>are</em> a sunny child.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Sunny?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse nodded his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You look on the bright side, the side that jolly
-well isn’t there. Myself, I cannot conceive how by
-any freak of fancy Henry could possibly have secured
-a worse hovel than this. It is the first time he’s
-ever had a study, and now he’s got one that they’ve
-forgotten about so long that it’s gone to seed.
-There’s moss growing on the very walls—<em>moss</em>, I tell
-you. Look at the fireplace. It’s a kind of ‘Spiders’
-Retreat.’ They say there’s no study for him, and
-then after three days they say there is, and they give
-him one—<em>this</em>—a kennel in the attic. There’s not
-a stick of furniture in it. True, there’s a picture
-postcard on the mantelpiece depicting some phase of
-life in a foreign clime—a man in a red fez picking
-hops, I think it is. You’ll probably find it’s addressed
-to some fellow who’s since died of old age.
-And it’s the only sign that there’s ever been any life
-in the place at all. I do not see even a modern nail
-anywhere in the wall to hang your hat on. There’s
-probably an official ghost attached to this study.
-The place is absolutely mouldy. The ceiling has
-caved in and the walls have warped, and the fellows
-who’ve had studies near here at odd times during the
-last forty years have been in on organised raids and
-pinched every blessed thing.” He paused at last
-for breath. “And you,” he said presently, “you—always
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_42'>42</span>the gentleman—you—such a one with your
-joking ways—you open the door and look inside,
-and then you throw back your head and intone the
-following words: ‘It isn’t a bad one.’</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, it’s better than not having a study at
-all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“<em>Indeed</em> it is,” admitted Rouse. “How nice it will
-be to sit in here on one’s bowler hat, drinking cold tea
-out of a glove.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“We’ll rake round for a table for him,” suggested
-Terence hopefully.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes, and the only way you’ll get one at this
-period will be by sucking the multiplication table
-off the back of an exercise-book. It’s three days
-since term started, my dear old bean.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence persisted.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ve got some photographs in my bag,” said he.
-“We’ll put them up.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Put ’em up? Easier to put them up than for
-poor old Henry to put up with them. He’ll get
-pretty weary sitting in here never more than eighteen
-inches away from his partner as it is. Is his only
-relaxation to be a turning of the head to gaze upon
-your likeness on the walls?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“They aren’t photographs of me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Whom, then, do they portray?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“One,” responded Terence, with every modesty,
-“portrays Phyllis Dare in evening dress.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Right,” said Rouse more kindly. “Put it up
-then. Have you any other delight you can stick
-on the wall for him?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Not in <em>my</em> pocket at this moment. But I’ll go
-and see Toby. He might be able to produce something.
-If not, perhaps he can hire a bit of furniture.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“A piano, perchance,” said the other. “There’s
-plenty of room.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Anyway,” said Terence, “I’ll go and see him.
-Probably he can suggest something.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_43'>43</span>“Very well, my child; and if you see anybody
-who seems to be at a loose end at all whilst you’re
-gone, ask him to come back and have a really comfortable
-sit-down with Henry and a nice cup of hot
-tea.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence moved away obediently, and when he had
-gone Rouse took one final look at the study, tossed
-his head and then, coming to a sudden decision, bade
-Henry stay there with his friend and wait; then he
-walked rapidly away down the corridor in search of
-the house porter, an individual for whose resource he
-had considerable admiration, partly because he could
-put lighted matches into his mouth and clench his
-teeth without putting out the light.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The house porter, who had been at the school only
-a little over twelve months, was one of those gentlemen
-that are described in police court reports as
-“of military appearance,” which means to say that
-his hair was dressed in that fashion known as a cowlick,
-and that his moustache was waxed. On hot
-days, however, this wax used to melt, giving his face
-a somewhat mournful and untidy appearance. His
-name was Compton, and at the moment when Rouse
-burst in upon him he was sitting on a stool in his
-private den, his knees hunched up under his chin
-and his eyes fixed rigidly upon the letterpress of a
-paper-covered novel which he was clutching earnestly
-in his fists. He did not at once look up, and when
-eventually he sensed the presence of an intruder
-he seemed a trifle annoyed. Nevertheless, Rouse
-greeted him with a variety of graceful gestures before
-he eventually said his say.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Acting upon information received,” he explained,
-“Mr Nicholson and I have just prised open the door
-of the study allotted to a little boy called Hope,
-with a view to inspecting its desirability as a residence;
-and all we have found inside is the portrait
-of a man in a red fez picking hops.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_44'>44</span>He paused and coughed deprecatingly behind his
-hand as if loath to complain. Compton looked at
-him dazedly. Clearly he had not yet thoroughly
-extricated himself from that romantic world in which
-men live perpetually in evening dress and speak
-glibly of their college days. He rose and laid down
-his novel with a sigh.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The incident has somewhat unnerved my friend
-Nicholson,” said Rouse apologetically, “also the
-boy Hope, and I was quite unable to persuade either
-of them to come and consult with you. I myself
-thought that you, if you could, would aid the lad in
-his dire extremity. You might even be able to tell
-him where he could find something to sit on—anything
-would do so long as it hasn’t too many
-rusty nails in it.” He reached out and indicated
-Compton’s stool suggestively. “That, for example,”
-said he, “would suit excellently. We have the
-whole evening before us, and it would be very enjoyable
-indeed for him to have a good sit-down after
-his game of football.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Compton turned and looked first at his stool and
-then at Rouse.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What is it you want, sir?” he inquired somewhat
-uncertainly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s a study,” said Rouse. “There’s no furniture
-in the place at all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Study?” repeated the patient fellow. “But
-ain’t there a table and a couple of chairs in it?
-Surely——” He began to fondle his chin. “Why,
-every study has a table and a couple of chairs.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I expect this one did have a long time ago,” said
-Rouse, “but if so they must have died in infancy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“They may have been stole.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse considered this point with care.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Of course,” said he at last, “it’s only a hole in
-the attic that I’m talking about. It may not be
-on your list of studies at all. To the naked eye
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_45'>45</span>it looks more like a family vault in some cheap
-cemetery.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Compton produced a pipe, filled it, and struck a
-match; then he made his confession.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, I can give you a table and a couple of
-chairs. As a matter o’ fac’ I’ve got some spare, and
-I’ve been wondering for a long time which study they
-belongs to. Over and over again I’ve reckoned up
-all the studies, on the fingers of my ’ands, and then
-all the tables and chairs, and they never come right.
-There was always a set over.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse’s face cleared instantly. He held out his
-hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I warmly congratulate you, Compton,” said he.
-“Let me pilot you to the place forthwith. You had
-better bring some sandwiches and a bottle of beer
-with you, as it’s rather a distance and you might be
-glad of some light refreshment half way.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He paused as they were about to leave and cast
-one last look round the little room.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Compton,” said he, “would it be too much to ask
-whether you could lend Master Hope your little stove
-for the afternoon? To-morrow everything will be
-in full swing and he will be serving a cut from the
-joint with two vegetables from his own fireplace
-practically without cessation all day. But we must
-give the organisation time to settle down. We should
-not like you to have to hump along a sack of coal
-to-day, for example. But we should very much
-like to have a cup of tea with Hope in his sanctum,
-and as a matter of fact a few friends are visiting
-him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Compton cast a glance over his shoulder.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ll give him a bit of coal,” said he. “If it’s a
-little place in the attic he’s going into he’ll want a
-bit of a fire in there to dry the place up and vent’late
-it a bit.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It would, I am sure, be enough,” said Rouse,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_46'>46</span>“if you could only give him a bit of red carpet to
-warm his cold feet on.”</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>When at last they all met again, the expression on
-the face of each made an interesting study. Henry
-Hope was characteristically grave, and he stood with
-his crony watching Rouse with the eyes of a faithful
-dog. Terence was last to return, and he wore the
-expression of one who has some secret joy, whilst
-Rouse himself, who had been working exceedingly
-hard, looked hot and untidy. Nevertheless, his eyes
-were shining with the light of intense self-satisfaction.
-It was clear that he was itching to deliver himself of
-a few well-chosen words such as might indicate to his
-listeners the peculiar ingenuity of those things which
-he had achieved. In matters that concerned Henry
-Rouse was not a prefect at all; he was just an old
-friend. Henry Hope had more than once saved
-Rouse’s skin, and in spite of his great place in the
-school Rouse did not forget these little things. He
-welcomed Terence with an excited gesture, and then
-clapped a hand on his shoulder and peered tensely
-into his face.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You’ve hardly changed at all,” said he. “The
-same old crooked eyes, the same solitary tooth projecting
-over your underlip, the same old passion socks!
-It seems scarcely any time since you went a-way-ee,
-and yet&nbsp;... what do you notice in me? A
-suspicion of grey in the hair?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“A suspicion of egg on the mouth, if anything.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse was a trifle taken aback.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What’s the matter anyway?” asked Terence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You’ve been gone such a deuce of a long time.
-That’s the matter. And never so much as a line to
-your own folk to let them know how you were getting
-on. Even now you’ve brought nothing.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes, I have brought along a friend.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“A friend?” repeated the other scornfully.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_47'>47</span>“What’s he going to sit on, pray?” He waited a
-moment, then reached out and tapped Terence upon
-the chest. “You see in me,” he opined, “one whose
-ingenuity is unsurpassed throughout the length and
-breadth of four continents, and it is very fortunate
-indeed for you that your friend Rouse is such a highbrow.
-Whilst you have been away I have set the
-whole thing right. Compton and I have just this
-moment completed the work. What was a short
-time ago a kind of expanded egg-box is now a comfortably
-furnished apartment. True, Henry will
-have to crawl in on his hands and knees to avoid
-braining himself on the ceiling, but what of that?
-It merely prevents surprise visits from beaks. And
-the main idea is to secure comfort when once he’s in.
-This I have done. Henry Hope did not appeal in
-vain. Compton has provided him with a complete
-suite of furniture—to wit, half a brace of table
-and a brace of chairs. The walls are now placarded
-with photographs of people found drowned—cuttings
-from old <cite>Daily Mirrors</cite>. We have propped up the
-ceiling with a baulk of timber and we have kindled
-a fire. We have put the fellow in the red fez who
-was picking hops right out of his misery, and we
-have drained off some of the pools of water that you
-noticed on the floor and put pieces of sacking in their
-place. As soon as he likes he can move in.” He
-paused as if for congratulation.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There’s one thing I’d like to say,” observed his
-friend, “only one thing, and I think you ought to
-be told at once.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That place,” said Terence severely, “is not his
-study at all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse peered at him like a man who has received a
-severe punch below the belt.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You were so insistent about it that I imagined
-for once you knew what you were talking about.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_48'>48</span>But no. Whenever you do anything which at first
-sight seems clever there’s always a catch in it somewhere.
-As a matter of fact, Henry’s study is No. 8,
-and it’s on the first floor. It’s the one Masham and
-Loates had last term, and it’s as cosy as any place
-in the house.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Here,” said Rouse, passing a hand through his
-hair. “Look here, what do you mean? That list
-said No. 18, and No. 17, which is along there, is the
-last number. Isn’t this the only place like a study
-that’s anywhere near it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The list,” retorted Terence firmly, “said No. 8.
-It was you that told Henry it was No. 18.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was a silence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last Rouse made a passionate gesture.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You mean to say, then,” said he, “that all my
-foresight and resource, all my ingenuity, all my
-travail, are without value of any kind? Do all my
-plans leave you cold? Are you suggesting that all
-the timber that I have scouted out should now merely
-be sold to defray expenses?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He stopped and eyed the others wrathfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You meant well,” confessed Terence—“you
-always do—but if I were you I should say no more
-about it. Compton may be rather annoyed when he
-finds all his trouble was due to a howling bloomer.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He beckoned gravely, turned, and began to move
-down the corridor followed by his train.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last Rouse spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Tell me,” said he, “who is your friend—the
-friend you so very kindly brought? I should
-like to kick somebody, and it might as well be
-him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s the kid called Carr,” said Terence over his
-shoulder. “He seems rather a decent kid, so I told
-him to come along and be introduced to Henry and
-eat some cake in his new study. He waits within.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Waits within?” repeated Rouse. “If he takes
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_49'>49</span>my advice he’ll wait without. It’ll get him used to
-the idea that he’ll have to go without.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“As a matter of fact he’s minding the kettle.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Kettle, indeed? Is there going to be a dish of
-tea then?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes, of course there is. I’ve been getting it
-ready.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You’ve fixed up a sort of christening breakfast,
-have you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He nodded his head thoughtfully. It occurred to
-him that in his quiet way Terence generally did fix
-up things.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He grunted.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“H’m,” said he. “Most ingenious of you. I’m
-sure Henry Hope is indeed lucky in his friends.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence smiled modestly and opened the door of
-No. 8, whereupon Rouse walked in and looked round
-with a contemptuous sniff.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“This,” said he, “looks like a prison cell. It’ll
-make Henry feel absolutely homesick.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Homesick?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Certainly. That little den upstairs was a veritable
-home from home.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Why, dash it all, man, you said it was——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Never mind what I said,” retorted Rouse.
-“I’d grown to love that place.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence burst out laughing.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last Rouse smiled.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, well, I suppose he may as well abide here
-as abide there. The great thing was to ensure that
-Henry was not being wronged in any way. Everything
-is now to the good, thanks to myself. Hullo,
-Carr, how are you? Hold out your fist, and that
-tall, well-set-up young fellow with the opera-glasses
-stuck on his face will slap a piece of cake into it.
-That is Henry Hope. Shake him heartily by the
-hand. He is one of the phenomena of Harley.
-People come miles to see what he carries behind those
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_50'>50</span>spectacles of his. You will grow to love Henry....
-Who are you going to fag for?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The little boy looked up.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I don’t know yet,” said he. “There was some
-mix-up over the studies and things.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I can tell you,” put in Terence. “I saw the list
-half-an-hour ago. You’re going to fag for Coles.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At first the effect that this news had upon Bobbie
-Carr passed unnoticed. The others were too busy
-dissecting cake to wonder why he made no answer
-at all. But at last Terence looked up and saw that
-he was sitting stiffly on his chair and staring at him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Is that right?” said he at last, and his voice
-sounded very small.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That’s right,” said Terence. “Yes. Do you
-know Coles?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a moment he did not answer. Wild thoughts
-were scurrying across his mind. He was suddenly
-very afraid. He did not want them to know that
-he knew Coles at all, and yet——</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Rather bad luck,” said Rouse, talking with his
-mouth full. “Coles isn’t a man I’d care to fag
-for.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Anyway,” said Terence, turning and speaking
-under his breath, “it’ll show what he’s made of.
-We’ll see how he tackles it. If we find Coles is giving
-him too thick a time we’ll get him swopped with
-somebody else.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes,” said Rouse, “and also hit Coles sharply in
-the eye, a practice I delight in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He turned.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>A knock had come upon the door, and it was swinging
-with stately dignity upon its hinges. In turn
-each boy rose to his feet and looked towards it
-suspiciously. Slowly, and at last, Toby Nicholson
-appeared upon the threshold. He looked round the
-assembled company with an air of relief. Next he
-saw Bobbie Carr, and wondered why he was sitting
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_51'>51</span>so oddly still and looking so scared. Then his
-wandering eyes discovered Rouse and settled upon
-him gravely. Lastly he moved forward.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Have you seen the new Head? He hasn’t been
-in here, has he?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence shook his head, but Rouse took a pace
-forward and slapped his thigh several times with the
-palm of his hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Now that you remind me of it, sir,” said he
-delightedly, “I certainly have seen him—and in
-this house.” He turned to Terence. “In the stress
-of events,” said he, “I quite forgot to tell you. It
-was whilst I was carrying the table upstairs for Henry,
-and my only regret now is that I was not at the time
-balancing it upon my chin. What happened was
-this: Compton was following behind with his chairs,
-and to cheer him upon his way we were singing a sort
-of part-song together. In reality he was mumbling
-a ditty and I was singing seconds in a loud clear
-voice that was fairly making the rafters ring. I had
-the table in front of my face and naturally I couldn’t
-see where I was going, but just as I got to the landing
-the door of Mr Morley’s room opened and a man
-came out like a shot from a gun—just as if somebody’s
-boot was behind him. Intent upon my task
-I went blithely on, and I hit that man immediately
-in the waistcoat good and hard with the leg of the
-table. If he was coming to tell me about my singing
-it must have hurt his sense of pride very considerably,
-also his sense of pain.” Rouse paused. “I thought—you
-see,” he explained, “I couldn’t see him properly—and
-I thought—it was the man who comes
-to wind up the clocks. So I didn’t apologise. He
-could see where he was going and I couldn’t. I
-thought, ‘Let him apologise. It’s up to him to
-speak first. Why didn’t he look where he was
-going?’ As a matter of fact he was leaning weakly
-against the wall, with one hand against his waistcoat
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_52'>52</span>and the other against his forehead, watching me
-stagger by. I took absolutely no notice at all. In
-point of fact I went by whistling. When I had gone
-right past Compton slipped up beside me and said:
-‘I say, sir, that man you ’it—that man was the new
-Headmaster. ’E’s lookin’ still, sir.’ I turned round
-to see. It was quite true. His eyes were like balls
-of fire.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence smiled thoughtfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“He must have felt rather annoyed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“If I hit him as hard as I think I did,” said Rouse,
-“he must have felt like a deceased relative.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby moved forward, then he sat down wretchedly
-on the edge of the table.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Look here, shipmate,” said he, “do you mean to
-say that he found you singing a part-song with the
-house porter, and that thereupon you hit him in the
-ribs with the leg of a table?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The honest truth,” admitted Rouse cheerfully,
-and passed a moistened finger solemnly across his
-throat. “I must have looked like a sweep too&nbsp;...
-hair all tousled&nbsp;... thick, rich soil all over my
-hands.... I’d been digging about in Compton’s
-store, you see, raking out furniture and things for
-our Henry’s study.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby looked at him forlornly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, the new Headmaster,” said he, “came over
-here entirely to see how you lived when nobody was
-looking, and if that’s how he found things you’ve
-just about put the lid on it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse looked pained.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Why, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Because,” said Toby, coming up beside him and
-speaking quietly, “he’s decided you’re not a suitable
-chap to be captain of Rugby football.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The words had the instantaneous effect that Toby
-knew they would have. Rouse the clown became
-abruptly a grown man. He tightened in every
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_53'>53</span>muscle until at last he seemed rigid. Then he
-looked Toby in the eyes with quick sincerity.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What do you mean, sir?” he said. “What does
-he——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby laid a hand upon his shoulder.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I met him outside just now,” said he. “I knew
-something was wrong. He was white with rage.
-He could hardly speak. But he says you’re to have
-the push—that’s all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was absolute silence. With lovable tact,
-Henry Hope had taken the two boys with him out
-of the room as soon as he saw that Toby had something
-private to say. Terence stood against the
-mantelpiece and stared first at one and then at the
-other, and Rouse just stood before Toby and looked
-and looked and looked till he could see nothing at all
-but a foolish house of cards that had only come into
-being in the morning, and that now, at the end of the
-day, lay in a tumbled litter before his eyes.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_54'>54</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER V<br /> <span class='large'>BREAKERS AHEAD</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>The first significance of it all steadied Rouse in precisely
-one second, but for the reality of it to make
-its real impression needed time, and in the silence
-that followed the truth began to tell upon him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>In the whole history of Harley a Rugger captain
-elected by the school had never been turned down
-by the Headmaster. It would be a lasting disgrace.
-In some way that he did not yet understand he had
-let down the school. Moreover Rouse had an ideal,
-and the ideal was not only to be a great fullback,
-but to be, in the immediate future, a captain
-worthy to lead the team that Harley was going
-to have this year. To be told that he was not
-fit to captain any kind of team at all was no less
-surprising than having a bottle broken over his
-head. If it were true, then he might just as well be
-expelled.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He found himself wondering whether, if this came
-to pass, fellows would think he were just such
-another as Slade, who had been captain of cricket
-when he himself was a junior and whom the Grey
-Man had sacked. At least Slade had had a chance.
-To be judged in three days by a man who had never
-seen him before in his life did not give him a dog’s
-chance. It seemed pretty incredible that any fellow
-could be condemned like that, but that the fellow
-in question should be himself was very nearly unthinkable.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>To Toby it was not unthinkable. If he had judged
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_55'>55</span>Dr Roe aright the new Head was a man whose first
-opinion was his last, and who, rather than have to
-confess himself in the wrong, would stick to a bad
-judgment against all argument, upholding it through
-thick and thin to the end. It was clear that he believed
-in impressing those under him with swift and
-irrevocable decisions, thereby instilling into them
-discipline of a kind that made those who had to
-be judged by him afraid to take their chance, and
-which consequently kept them on good behaviour.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was another reason, too, why he would be
-a very difficult man to quarrel with. He was new to
-the school, and he was the type of man who would
-always be able to defeat those who really loved
-Harley by making the whole school and the school’s
-good reputation suffer for the misdeeds of any one
-individual. Something of this foreboding must have
-shown in Toby’s face, and Rouse saw it. At last
-he spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What is it that’s gone wrong, sir?” said he.
-“Does he really think I’d be a dud as a captain—or
-is it that he just takes me for a general waster?
-What is it makes him think it, any way? Surely
-it’s not just because I bumped into him with a table?...
-I would have apologised, as a matter of fact,
-only as I say I thought it was the man who comes
-to wind up the clocks, and he’s such a disagreeable
-old bogey that I didn’t trouble.... He ought to
-have looked where he was going. A man’s got no
-right to shoot out of the wall just as you’re going by
-with furniture.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It isn’t that at all,” said Toby. “That’s only
-an additional proof, to his mind, that what he thinks
-of you is right. There’s some yarn about a ticket
-in the train. <em>You</em> didn’t tear up a new boy’s ticket,
-did you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse considered a moment.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Ticket?” said he at last. “Why, yes, I tore
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_56'>56</span>up <em>one</em>. What about it? It wasn’t the right
-one.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He began to explain.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Anyway,” said Toby, “it seems that it was the
-same fellow who laughed such a lot at the footer
-game—the fat boy we pulled out to play. And
-the Head’s idea is that throughout that game
-he was terrified of you because you’re a proper
-bully.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But that’s all rot,” said Terence sharply.
-“Why, that fellow can weep like an ornamental
-fountain. He nearly broke his heart in the first
-place because his pater went off with the wrong
-ticket, and then Rouse had the notion that the best
-thing to do was to tear up the one to Ealing that
-he’d been left with so that the people this end
-wouldn’t know what station it was for. Of course
-it went wrong. Rouse’s ideas always do. The
-ticket was a different colour from the one for Harley.
-But he only did it to help the little ass. Rouse had
-better go to the Head and tell him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ll go and tell him myself,” said Toby, “as
-soon as I’ve got hold of the details. The trouble is
-that Rouse has been extraordinarily prominent
-during a space of twenty-four hours and the new
-Head is a man who makes up his mind at top speed.
-But it isn’t only that. Rouse’s manner doesn’t
-appeal to him either. He wants the captain of
-Rugger to be one of the senior boys of the school,
-and he rather suspects that the reason Rouse isn’t
-in the Sixth yet is that he’s a real bad lad. Nor
-does he like football conducted by a fellow whose
-right line is comic opera. There’s another thing.
-He’s coming round to visit Rouse in form to-morrow
-with the idea of finding out how much he really
-knows, and,” he added, turning to Rouse, “I recommend
-you to sit up and swot to-night till your
-eyes stand out from your head like railway buffers,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_57'>57</span>because it’s just possible that if you can tell him all
-he wants to know he’ll be persuaded to move you
-into the Sixth, which would do away with one of his
-grumbles anyway.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse looked up wretchedly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That’s hopeless, sir. I’ll work with a wet towel
-round my nut all the term, and I’ll honestly try to
-swell out my forehead and push in amongst the highbrows
-and old Terence here, but to expect me to be
-able to do it in one night is out of all reason.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He stopped and began to look grimly out of the
-window. At last he pulled himself together with a
-jerk and moved towards Terence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Does this really mean I’m not going to be captain
-of Rugger after all? Do you think it means that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>If his face had been cruelly disfigured he could
-not have been more obviously hard hit. He knew
-as well as any man that when this news became
-public property he would have to pretend not to
-care—especially before the Rugger Committee. It
-would be no use behaving like a baby about it. But
-at the moment he was alone with those who knew
-him best, and so he was not ashamed to show the
-innermost recesses of his soul, and it would to an
-onlooker have seemed impossible to recognise in him
-the exuberant humorist of an hour ago.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You come along to the study,” said Terence,
-taking his arm. “Come on, Toby. We’ll go and
-thrash this thing out. If he’s not going to let our
-best Rugger man be captain of the fifteen he’ll have
-a good-sized crowd heaving bricks at his study
-window in about a couple of hours, and I shall be
-amongst the number, with my coat off.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They moved out of the study and went slowly
-and soberly along the corridor, arm-in-arm, towards
-Terence’s own room. And, behind them, with hands
-in his pockets and a troubled brow, came the man
-who was typical of Harley’s best. In the little
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_58'>58</span>room, which was cosy with an arm-chair and curtains,
-they sat down and faced each other across the
-table.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby came in and stood by the fireplace.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Presently Terence leaned forward and indicated
-Rouse affectionately with his forefinger.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s bound to be all right. If he says that any
-particular man is not to be captain of footer——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“He <em>has</em> said it,” interrupted Toby. “The <em>IF</em> has
-ceased to count. He stopped me outside the house
-and said it as definitely as any man could. He said:
-‘I refuse to sanction the school team being led by a
-boy like that. You will arrange immediately for a
-new election, and you will give all those concerned
-clearly to understand that the boy who is chosen is
-to be a senior prefect of the Sixth Form.’ It was no
-use arguing. I’d nothing to go on except the same
-arguments as I’d used already. Now that I know
-I’ll go round and have it out with him, but if you
-ask me for the honest truth—and you’re both fellows
-who can stand it—I don’t believe for a moment
-that he’ll alter his mind. He’s come here with what
-he believes to be a reputation, and he’s not going
-to start by admitting he’s made a fool of himself.
-Besides, he’s Headmaster. If he and I were on equal
-footing I’d go there with the fixed idea of not coming
-away again till he’d given in; but he’s the Head,
-and if I let myself say too much I shall be politely
-told to push off and get a job taking tickets at a
-peep-show, which at the moment I don’t intend to
-do. Now that this has cropped up I mean to see
-it through to the finish. There are breakers ahead,
-and if we don’t look out the school footer’s going
-to suffer pretty severely. A lean year takes a long
-time to wipe out. It means not only getting licked
-every week; it means that the school colts aren’t
-being properly brought up, and that means other
-lean years to come.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_59'>59</span>“Couldn’t we write to the Grey Man?” suggested
-Terence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The Grey Man’s ill. And he hasn’t got any say
-in it now, anyway. This man’s Headmaster now.
-All the Grey Man could do would be to give Rouse
-a thundering good character, and this fellow would
-simply light his pipe with it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse jumped up with sudden passion and threw
-out his arms.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I can’t believe it. I can’t take it in. I’ve lived
-for this one thing all the while I’ve been at school.
-To be captain of Rugger at Harley has seemed the
-greatest thing a fellow like me could wish for. I’m
-not clever. I’ve got brains that slop about in my
-head like sodden tea-leaves. The only thing I can
-do is play football. Not only that though. There’s
-some sort of third-rate talent in me that’s a gift for
-organisation, I think. As soon as I knew I was
-going to be skipper I began to plan footer for every
-kind of fellow in the school. While I’ve been talking
-of other things, all the time I’m fooling about, I’m
-really thinking out house Rugger, and games for
-colts, and the kind of training I’ll give the First
-Fifteen. I’m brim full of it. This man doesn’t
-understand. We must give him time.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence watched him sympathetically.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s all right. The school won’t let him do a
-thing like that. There’ll be a rebellion.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That’s just it,” put in Toby thoughtfully.
-“It’s something of that sort I’m afraid of. If it
-comes to a fight, what’s going to happen to school
-footer? We play Greyminster on Saturday week.
-The team’s got to be chosen and practised. If we
-haven’t a captain what’s to be done? Is the match
-to be scratched—and if so, how many others will go
-the same way? Is it simply going to be an empty
-season right through the term?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You needn’t worry about that,” answered Rouse,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_60'>60</span>with sudden steadiness. “If it comes to it, I’ll
-chuck in. Smythe can be captain. He’s the same
-year as I am and he’s secretary as it is.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Smythe is bottom of the Sixth,” answered
-Terence. “He can’t even add up.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“All right, then, there’s you,” retorted Rouse.
-“You’ve got plenty of brains. You’re a prefect.
-We’ll make you captain.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence turned on him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“If you think I’m going to take on a job that
-they think is too good for <em>you</em>” he snapped, “you’re
-a bigger ass than I take you for. What on earth are
-you talking about?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby turned at last to Rouse.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I don’t often compliment you,” he observed.
-“At one time I used to cuff your head whenever I
-could reach it, but I’ll tell you now that even you
-yourself don’t quite realise what they think of you
-here. You’re a little tin god. The team will follow
-you as they’d follow no other fellow I know. They
-don’t want anyone else, and it’s my idea they won’t
-have anyone else. The captain of footer has to
-be elected. That’s constitutional. They’ve elected
-<em>you</em>. And if the Head doesn’t approve it’s quite
-possible for the school to try passive resistance.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“How?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What I think is,” said Toby, “that he can search
-right through the whole school and he won’t find
-another fellow anywhere who’ll take it on—not
-under these circumstances.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Then he’ll have to give in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“He’ll never give in&nbsp;... he’s the type that never
-knows where to draw the line&nbsp;... and he thinks he’s
-strong. He’ll make himself a dictator. He’ll find
-some unsuspecting dolt and order him to be captain.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Then there’ll be a rebellion,” said Terence again.
-“The school won’t stand it. They absolutely idolise
-Rouse.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_61'>61</span>Toby spread his hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Think it over,” said he. “Reason it out. I’m
-going. If he comes to ask you comic questions in
-form to-morrow morning just keep your head and
-don’t give anything away. I shan’t see him again
-to-night. He’s in a bad temper. I’ll wait till after
-morning school to-morrow. Then I’ll join issue with
-him after he’s visited your form. And above all,”
-he added finally, “don’t be downhearted. This
-turn of events is as bad as it possibly could be, but
-you aren’t alone. You’re no end of a dunce, Rouse,
-but you’ve got the school behind you, and there’s
-comfort in that.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They watched him go, and when they were
-left alone Rouse turned to Terence and smiled
-whimsically.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Nick, old bird,” said he, “I feel as sick and
-sorry as a lame dog—but there’s something in me
-that won’t lie down. It keeps on shoving up from
-under my spirits like bubbly under a cork. And if
-that old buffer comes and asks me in the morning
-how many beans make five, it’s a hundred to one I
-shall make the stupid response: ‘The answer is
-a lemon.’ I just shan’t be able to help myself.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_62'>62</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER VI<br /> <span class='large'>A RISING STAR</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>In the days of his early youth Henry Hope had
-appeared to those about him to be an old, old man
-dressed in an Eton suit. His large rimmed spectacles
-had lent him the air of a scholastic genius, and he
-was, by habit, pitifully pedantic. In addition he
-was dignified, and self-reliant to a fault, and he had
-no ability of any kind at games. But at least his
-heart was in the right place. More than once his
-meditative resource had helped Terence and Rouse
-out of a sad scrape, and accordingly he was their
-beloved friend.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>In the course of the last few years he had been
-growing up—lengthways, that is to say—and Henry
-Hope had changed a little from the Henry Hope of
-old. In the atmosphere of Harley he had grown rather
-less of a hermit and rather more of a boy. He had
-opened out. He was still totally devoid of a sense
-of humour, and he still used grave words both in
-season and out, but he had become, in one sense at
-least, human. He was a devotee of the cinema.
-Also he had decided what he was going to be. He
-was going to be an actor in film plays. He knew
-one such actor already, and it seemed to him that
-this would provide him with an effective introduction
-into the right clique when the time came. Toby
-Nicholson was the actor. At one period of his life
-Toby had turned an honest penny by risking his life
-before the camera on selected days, and though this
-was, for obvious reasons, not the line of business in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_63'>63</span>which Henry proposed to make his mark, it was
-at all events good to feel that he was not totally
-unacquainted with the way things were done.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry, as a matter of fact, was going to be one of
-those men to whom the ideal way of getting into a
-room is by way of the skylight, and the ideal way of
-getting out is through the window (though not, of
-course, by being pushed through).</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was conceivable that on occasion Henry might
-consent to act the part of a detective. Generally
-speaking, however, he would be the man who delays
-the play all the way through by persistently getting
-into predicaments through sheer stupidity merely
-for the sake of showing how to get out of them again.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He would be a man of rapid movement; he would
-look always to right and left before moving to his
-front; he would look all round a room before
-observing a prostrate body at his feet; he would invariably
-get his eye caught on a keyhole before entering
-a room. He would point out the way to a friend
-less keen of vision than he before walking down a
-long straight road; and at times he would be seen
-swaying against a wall with half-closed eyes whilst
-those who had stolen his all made their escape in
-their own time through an old-world garden, stopping
-to pick flowers as they went.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Above all there would be one dramatic performance
-which would constitute his star part. It would
-consist in a series of scenes turned rapidly upon the
-reel, each displaying a long wide road, and down
-these ways Henry would be featured running as
-never man ran before. His arms would be going
-like pistons. He would have lost his hat. (This,
-however, he would find again in time to doff it as
-indicating that somebody was dead.) Ever and
-again he would appear to be exhausted. To the lay
-mind it would seem impossible for any living man
-to maintain such a consistent speed down all those
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_64'>64</span>different roads. Nevertheless Henry would do it.
-He would do it on different days, of course, but that
-would not be realised; and he would, moreover, be
-running to save a soul. This would be known to the
-audience, who would cheer his attractive likeness
-every time it appeared at the far end of another road.
-He conceived that the energy with which he would
-run would immediately lift him into the front rank
-of famous players. He had once had a nightmare
-in which he had slipped up and fallen on the back of
-his neck whilst at the top of his speed, thus leading
-the audience to suppose that his performance was a
-comic one&nbsp;... and once he had dreamt that owing
-to a slight stitch he had not been able to run up to
-form and had arrived twenty-five minutes too late
-to effect the rescue, for which he had been kicked
-by the man who had been turning the film all the
-time in expectation of his arrival; but he had never
-mentioned these incidents to anyone at all.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He practised a good deal, and it may almost be
-said that throughout the period covered by this tale
-he lived under the perpetual hallucination that all
-his movements were recorded by a camera for reproduction
-before a gaping audience.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He was under this impression when he shepherded
-Bobbie Carr and his own close friend, Hallowell, out
-of the new study. He made the movement a masterpiece
-of play without words, and when they were
-safely out of earshot in the corridor he drew himself
-up with a touch of characteristic dignity and spoke
-his only sentence. He did not believe in speaking
-any more than was really necessary at these times—no
-more, in fact, than it would be necessary for
-a film to speak, and always in the same crisp manner
-in which the film habitually does speak.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His voice was deep down in his boots.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Something amiss,” said he. Then he was done.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>As a matter of fact even this was not essential.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_65'>65</span>If, after all his painstaking by-play, those present
-had still not tumbled to the fact that something was
-amiss, nothing would have ever made them understand.
-In reality they had both understood long
-ago and were now only hanging about in case there
-was any more of Henry’s performance to come,
-which, by going, they would miss.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry, however, had finished for the moment, so
-Bobbie Carr sighed and turned away.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’d better go and find Coles,” said he.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Hallowell looked at him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s a pity you’ve got to fag for Coles. Still,
-it may not be for long. How old are you—about
-fifteen, aren’t you? You’ll soon be done with
-fagging.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was silence for a moment. Carr could still
-not make up his mind whether to admit that he knew
-quite a lot about Coles already, and whilst he waited,
-half turning away, Henry drew near. He had had
-a rough term of fagging himself when he had first
-entered Harley, and he guessed what Carr must feel
-like with so many expressions of bad will towards
-Coles coming to his notice in such a short space of
-time. He reached out a hand and tapped the
-boy kindly on the shoulder, then he peered at him
-with an old-fashioned sincerity over the tops of
-his glasses and spoke in a slow and sepulchral
-tone.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“He’s in the First Fifteen,” said he. “But with
-us he cuts no ice.” He paused and nodded his head
-impressively. “Say, kid,” he added, “we’re wise
-to that guy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Such words if spoken in church by a venerable
-bishop would, one supposes, sound odd. Spoken
-by Henry they sounded more than odd. They
-sounded rotten. Trying to speak American slang
-was about the most inept thing Henry did. The
-result was not only incongruous, it went absolutely
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_66'>66</span>flat. Without having heard him it would be impossible
-to imagine how dull those crisp words really
-sounded. He did not even speak them through his
-nose. It was awful.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Nevertheless Bobbie Carr was comforted. There
-was something in Henry that inspired trust. There
-always had been. And in that moment Bobbie Carr
-decided that he liked him very much.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ll come along with you,” said Henry. “I
-know something about Coles and I can put you up
-to some of his habits. It may be a help to you. He
-may not be in just now, and if he doesn’t want you
-we can go and have another look at our new study
-before it’s too late.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ll clear off then,” said Hallowell. “I’ve not
-done my prep. properly yet. See you later.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He offered them a cheery gesture of farewell, to
-which Henry, for his part, responded by looking at
-him gravely over the tops of his spectacles as if he
-were some form of peculiar insect.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Then he set off with Bobbie Carr, and as he went
-he spoke in a deep, gruff voice of Coles and the kind
-of things he did.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Any time you find yourself up against him,”
-said he, “you come and tell me. Don’t you go
-doing half the things he’ll want you to. He goes in
-for betting, and he smokes and drinks and borrows
-money. He’ll want you to fall in with his ideas and
-help him out of holes. Don’t you do it. I notice
-Coles a good deal. I see without being seen. That’s
-rather a gift I have got. And if I find that you’re
-afraid to refuse the things he asks you to do I shall
-be disappointed in you, and then perhaps when you
-really want my help one day I shan’t be inclined to
-give it. You come to me. I can’t punch his head
-myself but I’m friendly with some who can. In fact
-one of my best chums here is the captain of Rugby
-football.” He wound up on a note of distinct
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_67'>67</span>self-congratulation. “Here,” he added, “this is his
-place. You knock on his door and go in. Explain
-who you are and see if he wants to speak to you.
-I’ll wait out here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie went to the door and knocked. He was
-a lithe youngster, and even Henry could not help
-noticing the easy grace of his movements. For a
-moment he stood there listening. There was no
-answer. He knocked again.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Go in,” said Henry solemnly. “He isn’t there.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie opened the door and looked inside. It was
-perfectly true. The room was empty. Henry
-moved from his position against the wall and came
-up behind him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“While there’s nobody here, then,” said he, “I’ll
-show you where he keeps his things. Maddock used
-to have this study and I was Maddock’s fag. The
-teapot’s in that cupboard there. This is where he
-puts anything he’s got to eat, and I expect his footer
-kit’s in that box.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The door was suddenly kicked sideways and a
-heavy step sounded behind him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Now then,” said Coles. “What are you doing
-in my study? What do you mean by crawling in
-here? Are you looking for something to pinch?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry turned and glared at him with concentrated
-fury. Coles took him by the collar.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You get out,” said he.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Then he lifted a leg and planted a boot so severely
-behind Henry that he shot foolishly forward and
-cannoned into the door. He turned and seemed
-about to speak. Coles gave him no opportunity at
-all. He lifted his foot again, and this time the force
-of its drive sent Henry clean out of the room with one
-bounce and dropped him against the wall on the far
-side of the corridor. Coles was one of the best dropkicks
-in the school. Then he slammed the door and
-turned upon Carr.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_68'>68</span>And the thing that troubled Henry most was not
-the pain or the suddenness of those blows behind
-him, but the particularly stupid way in which he
-had made his exit from the stage.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles stared at Carr for a few moments thoughtfully,
-then he moved to his chair and, sitting down,
-planted his feet upon the table.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well?” said he. “I suppose you’ve come to
-report?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I thought I’d see if you wanted anything.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There is something I don’t want,” said Coles,
-“and that’s your friends. I take a pride in my fag.
-I never expect to have to call for you twice, and when
-I do call for you I don’t want all the riff-raff of the
-school trotting in behind you like the tail of a crocodile.
-If you’re palling up with that fellow Hope you’d
-better drop him. He makes me feel ill. Whenever
-I see that fellow I want to stamp him into the carpet,
-and if I see you about together it’ll make me angry
-with you, and then you won’t be happy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Carr said nothing at all. He just looked at him
-straightly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Do you know,” asked Coles, “why you’ve been
-made my fag?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No,” said Bobbie.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s because I asked for you. And do you know
-why I asked for you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s because I’m said to be rather a difficult man
-to fag for. Young fellows like you get a bit tired of
-me. I want a good deal done and I expect my fag
-to be absolutely trustworthy. If I tell you a thing
-in confidence and I find you split, I simply hit you on
-the top of the head with a book, and your head sings
-for twenty-four hours. I’ve an idea, though, that I
-shan’t need to hit you much. That’s why I managed
-to get you allotted to me. I think you’ll quite like
-to fag for me—you’ll know that if ever you get to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_69'>69</span>know a secret of mine I’ve got a secret of yours, and
-that’ll keep you quiet, won’t it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“How do you mean?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, you’re ashamed of your father, aren’t you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Ashamed of him?” said Bobbie hotly. “No,
-I’m not.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But you say that you don’t want anyone here
-to know how he makes his living.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I promised I wouldn’t say, that’s all. There’s
-a reason.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Precisely,” answered Coles. “And I’m the only
-one that knows.” He made an expressive gesture.
-“You see what I mean?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I suppose you mean you’ll tell.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I mean that that would be less trouble than
-hitting you on the head with a book and considerably
-more effective.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie’s face was expressionless.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That threat,” said Coles frankly, “starts from
-to-day. Now we understand one another.” He
-looked at the boy fixedly. “You can go,” said he.
-“You come in and see me to-morrow in the luncheon
-hour.”</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well,” said Henry, when Bobbie bumped into
-him standing proudly round a corner of the corridor,
-“what did he say?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Nothing much. I’ve got to go and see him again
-to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry appeared to be deep in thought. At last
-he lifted his head and looked at Bobbie pertly over
-the tops of his spectacles.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Did you notice him try to kick me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie’s behaviour was straightway that of a
-perfect gentleman. He glanced at Henry politely.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes,” he answered. “He didn’t get you, did
-he?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_70'>70</span>An immediate change came over Henry. His lips
-slowly parted in ecstasy. He spoke no word. He
-looked at the new boy instead with the grateful light
-of intense relief shining from his eyes, and from that
-moment their friendship was finally cemented.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_71'>71</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER VII<br /> <span class='large'>A CABINET MEETING</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>There had not even been a rumour what was wrong.
-The few who knew had kept their counsel absolutely.
-For this reason the Rugger meeting came as a mild
-shock to those gentlemen of high place in the school
-whose privilege it was to attend it. They were
-the same counsellors who formed the house committees,
-and for certain purposes they were on
-special occasions called together to debate some important
-matter. Their chief duty this term was, of
-course, the formal election of the school captain of
-football, and this had only just been carried out.
-Ordinarily after this their services were not required.
-Many of them expected to win their own colours,
-and it was obviously undesirable for them to sit on
-the small executive committee that would judge the
-merits of rivals. Matters pertaining to the First
-Fifteen, to honours generally, and to the organisation
-of training throughout the school rested, therefore,
-with a trio composed of the captain, the honorary
-secretary and the games master, and of these the
-captain himself was virtually dictator. That was
-the custom of the school.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>House committees were formed on a different
-basis. Here one found merely the senior boys in
-each house, though as a matter of course many of
-these were also leading lights in school sport. They
-met together as a school committee on almost anything
-that needed to be discussed: in summer to
-talk cricket, in winter to plan the broad lines of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_72'>72</span>the season’s football, and sometimes to debate such
-matters as the Christmas concert or the big cross-country
-run. To be called together for no apparent
-reason so soon after they had met came, therefore,
-as a surprise to them, and they filed into the big room
-and sat them down in silent dignity. They did not
-nudge each other or make play with their eyebrows
-to denote their wonder. They had mostly come
-to the age when it seems a great thing to pretend
-one knows something which the next man does
-not know, and only a man like Toby Nicholson,
-who knew the type peculiarly well, would have
-read their casual bearing aright. Their seeming
-indifference, the way some whistled softly to
-themselves, the general lack of any evidence of
-curiosity, denoted an undercurrent that meant
-sensation.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>When they were ready Toby rose. He was not at
-all in love with his task. He was, if anything, a
-little nervous. He could not tell for a few moments
-how the school were going to take it.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The day before yesterday,” said he, “you met
-to elect the captain of football. We have had to call
-you together again to-day to elect another one. I
-am sorry to say that the Headmaster does not
-approve of Rouse as your choice.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was no buzz. No one sprang to his feet.
-The silence was deadly. It was as clear as day that
-it was going to take them a few minutes to believe
-it.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby gave them those few minutes, and when he
-judged that it had thoroughly got home on them he
-spoke again.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The Headmaster wished me to tell you,” he said,
-“that the captain of football must be a senior in the
-Sixth Form.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He did not say more. There was really no need
-to tell them that he must also be a boy who wore the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_73'>73</span>cloak of dignity—that one proviso limited their
-choice sufficiently.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“His particular wish is that, if practicable, the
-captain of football should be the captain of the
-school,” said Toby. Then he made a gesture of
-finality and sat down.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There came now a slight shuffling of feet. The
-counsellors were turning one to the other; there
-was hoarse whispering, occasional sharp sounds of
-absolute amazement.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last the captain of the school rose in his seat.
-He did not play football at all. He made up verses
-that didn’t rhyme and secured good prizes for them.
-Nevertheless he was a good fellow, and it was clear
-that the news that he might be expected to lead the
-Fifteen on to the field in cap and gown had had a
-pronounced effect upon him. He was really quite
-shaken up.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But does the Headmaster know the practice at
-this school, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Oh yes,” said Toby. “He knows what it always
-has been ever since I can remember. I’ve done all
-that a man could do to persuade him to respect our
-unwritten laws. The Headmaster, however, is a
-man of very strong views. He is determined on a
-new method.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, I’m blowed,” said the captain of the
-school, and sat down with a jerk.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Next moment Rouse had half risen from his chair,
-and, in the awkward manner of a boy whose lifelong
-nightmare has always been that he might one
-day be called upon for a speech, turned towards the
-assembly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s quite true,” said he a little huskily. “I’ve
-been rather prominent in doing the very things the
-new Head hates most ever since he came, it seems.
-Mr Nicholson’s done his best to keep me—but
-it’s no use. I’m terribly sorry. It seems a sort of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_74'>74</span>disgrace to the school. They’ll get to hear about
-this at other places—Rainhurst and Wilton—and
-they’ll guess I’m a general rotter and wonder why I
-haven’t been sacked. I——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He stopped and seemed to be searching for the
-right words. Few of those present had ever heard
-Rouse speak in such grave tones before, and it did
-more than anything else to bring home the truth to
-them. There was a sympathetic silence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There’s nothing else to be said. I resign, of
-course. Pointon doesn’t play football. It’s useless
-to propose him. Perhaps, though, once the Head
-gets rid of me he may listen to reason more. I think
-that if you elect a fellow who is at least in the Sixth
-you might get his approval. So I propose Smythe.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He slowly subsided into his chair. There came a
-growing murmur of angry distress. Suddenly people
-noticed that in the far corner of the room Smythe
-was already upon his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There’s no need to waste time considering that at
-all,” he said, with considerable vexation. “At the
-other meeting some misguided ass got up on his hind
-legs and proposed me. I said then that whilst
-Rouse was at the school there could be no other
-skipper worth considering at all, and you all cheered.
-I say that again now. If Rouse isn’t good enough
-for this job you can put me down as not playing
-Rugger at all, let alone being captain of it. I was
-the first to congratulate Rouse the other day, and
-I’m the first now to propose that we refuse to accept
-his resignation.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His lips had spoken the words that had been on
-the tip of every other fellow’s tongue. None other
-could have so aptly expressed their feelings.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was a chorus of vehement approval. In the
-fierce clapping and the clatter of feet on the floor
-Rouse had a quick insight into the depth of their
-inexplicable affection for him. He was honestly
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_75'>75</span>astounded. He was also considerably upset. He
-could not face saying any more. He just sat where
-he was and pretended to be taking no notice, but his
-acting was not very good. For one thing, his face
-was brick-red.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last Toby rose stolidly to his feet. He began
-to hate his position more and more. He was very
-human and he was heart and soul with them in their
-feelings. It was the hardest thing of all to make
-of himself counsel for the defence, and the long and
-the short of it was that he could not do it. If he
-managed to get through this meeting without a vote
-of detestation being passed upon Dr Roe it would to
-his mind be a notable achievement. He was conscious
-that as a master he had a certain disciplinary
-responsibility, but he was very unhappy about it.
-There was too much of the old boy in Toby.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He looked round them sadly. At last he spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s a very bad business,” said he. “I think
-as you do—that Rouse couldn’t be bettered for
-this job.... The only other point to consider is
-how the school will be affected if you refuse to accept
-his resignation. The Head will not give in to you.
-If it comes to a fight he has every advantage. It may
-mean that you ruin our fixture list for the season....
-It will certainly draw attention to an incident
-that we might otherwise keep fairly quiet so as to
-prevent the wrong construction being put upon it.
-If we’re to have a good season it’s essential to get
-started at once. The team for next Saturday ought
-to be chosen to-day so as to start practice. If you
-decide against the Head you may cause delay that
-we shall never be able to make up.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, we’re not going to give up Rouse, sir,”
-cried someone in sheer indignation.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby turned to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That isn’t the point,” he said. “I’m absolutely
-with you. I believe that without Rouse to lead the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_76'>76</span>Fifteen we shan’t have a real good season. But we
-mustn’t make it too hard for the man who sooner or
-later may have to take it on. I’ve talked to the
-Head till I couldn’t talk any more. It made no
-shadow of difference at all. The Head will never
-give in. His mind’s made up, and although it’s true
-that we oughtn’t to give up Rouse, I shouldn’t be
-doing my duty if I didn’t make you see both sides
-of the picture. It’s for you to decide; I’m only just
-telling you how matters stand in case you forget.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He sat down wretchedly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Next moment Rouse turned to them again. He
-did not get up. There was something too urgent
-about the atmosphere for much formality.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s quite right,” said he. “You mustn’t muck
-up the season. I’ve resigned. That’s all there is
-to it. Go on. Don’t be boobs. I propose Nicholson.
-The Head can’t refuse him. He’s one of the
-top six in the school.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>All heads turned slowly to regard Terence as if
-half in doubt and half in hope. Terence stiffened
-like a man electrocuted and shot to his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No!” he shouted. “It’s all rot! Rouse has
-got to be captain. He was made for it. It’s no use
-going on proposing other people. We’ve elected
-Rouse.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was an appreciative silence, then an animated
-discussion, and amidst it a young man rose from his
-seat and lifted his hand for silence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There’s only one other old colour who’s in the
-Sixth,” said he. “Coles. So I’ll propose him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He sat down as if he had done a piece of useful
-work by thoroughly clearing the decks for real debate.
-What followed, therefore, came as a very
-painful surprise to him. Others were merely disgusted.
-He was honestly hurt. To suppose that
-he had spoken seriously was the most insulting
-thought anyone could have had of him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_77'>77</span>Coles had arisen and could be seen looking earnestly
-upon them. His voice was unmistakably clear
-though he spoke quietly, and he made one modest
-gesture with his hand. He had not so much as
-waited to see the result of the proposal, had not
-given anyone even a chance to second it.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“If it’s for the good of the school,” said he, “of
-course I’ll do my best.... It’s just as you like.
-Whatever seems right to you fellows....” There
-was a cutting silence; not so much as a movement
-helped him. He remained standing. He
-looked round hopefully. “Whatever Mr Nicholson
-thinks best,” said he. “If you propose me—I’ll
-certainly——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last somebody spoke. It was difficult to
-identify the gentleman, but from the murmur of
-approval that followed it was clear that he voiced
-the opinion of all those present.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The voice said: “Sit down, you ass.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>With a sudden flush of acute self-consciousness
-Coles disappeared from view.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Then there rose up one other spokesman.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was the captain of the school. He brought
-a touch of dignity into the atmosphere that was not
-unwelcome.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, I’ve listened to what’s been said,” he told
-them, “and it hasn’t taken me long to form my
-opinion. I’m no footer man—but I’ve got the
-interests of the school as much at heart as any of
-you. And I know Rouse. I’m no fighting man
-either. I like peace and quiet. Arguments I can’t
-bear. But I’m afraid a fight and an argument will
-have to come. The soundest proposal made has
-been Smythe’s. He says we refuse to accept Rouse’s
-resignation, and I think you’d like the Head to know
-that as captain of the school I second that.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was a pleasant and concerted cheer. He sat
-down with a slight flush. Then hand-clapping broke
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_78'>78</span>out. It grew loud and continuous. Next they began
-to shout. Some got on to their feet and waved in
-Rouse’s direction excitedly. The shouting grew
-into a thunderous ovation. Here and there earnest
-students like the captain of the school found themselves
-jumping foolishly on to forms and falling off
-again in the hopes of getting a really good view
-of Rouse. It grew louder and more emphatic. The
-very walls were trembling with enthusiasm. Rouse
-stood up and tried to stop them. They went on.
-It may be that they rather hoped the new Head would
-hear them and ask what it was all about. Toby
-made no effort to exercise control. As a matter of
-fact he was smiling. It seemed to him just as well
-to let them have it out. Eventually it began to die
-down a little. Fellows were forcing their way
-towards Rouse and thumping him on the back.
-Others were reaching for his hand. And above all
-they were still shouting his name delightedly aloud
-and making gestures of eternal allegiance to their
-chosen.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>In the end it was Smythe who got a hearing first.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It may be as well,” said he, “to decide on the
-form in which this decision ought to be communicated
-to the Head. What about a deputation?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The usual way,” said Toby cheerfully, “would
-be for me to go along and tell him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They looked at one another. The point was worth
-considering.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There are some matters,” said Toby, “that
-might be better discussed in my absence, of course.”
-He paused. “If I were to go along and see the
-Head now you fellows might be talking it over
-between you, and then if a deputation should be
-necessary you’d know whom to select to form it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He waited a moment. There was the loud sound
-that indicated a crowd’s approval.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, sir,” said the captain of the school, rising
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_79'>79</span>yet again, “that seems the best thing to do.
-Would you mind describing to the Headmaster the
-exact manner in which the proposal to refuse his
-resignation has been carried, and why it is so strongly
-supported? I think he ought to know that.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I think so myself,” said Toby. “I shall certainly
-tell him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He moved slowly down the room. There was a
-pleasant smile upon his face. It was as if a prophecy
-of his had come true.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The counsellors rose as he passed down their
-midst, and seeing how pleasantly he smiled they
-slowly answered, and one by one they smiled back
-at him as he went upon his errand.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The moment he had really gone they turned as
-one man to Rouse.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But why is it?” they demanded. “What’s
-gone wrong? He’s only just come here. How on
-earth does he know who’s the best captain?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s that idiotic little fat boy,” said Terence.
-“He’s the cause of all the trouble. He went and
-laid evidence against Rouse as a bully and the Head
-believes him, and then he came over to see how
-Rouse behaved in his natural haunts and Rouse
-was singing a part-song with the house porter. He
-smote the Head with the leg of a table, too—just to
-emphasise the fact.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What fat boy?” demanded Pointon. “Why
-haven’t they got hold of the fat boy then? Why
-don’t they bump him? Let’s go and fetch the fat
-boy and make him go to the Head and withdraw
-what he said.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s no use,” said Terence. “Toby went and
-tackled him himself and asked him whether he knew
-what he’d done. And eventually he said that he’d
-go to the Head and try to make it all right. So he
-did, the fool; and when the Head saw Toby again he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_80'>80</span>said the little hero had been to him and asked that
-Rouse should not be punished in any way, because
-he was afraid that if he were fellows would blame
-<em>him</em> and call him a sneak. So the Head said it was
-clear that somebody had been getting at him, and
-demanded that Toby should find out who it was and
-bring him up before him. Toby said that the only
-chap who’d got at him was he himself, and explained
-the true story of what had happened; and he also
-said that another new kid called Carr was a witness,
-and that I was too. But the Head wouldn’t believe
-it. He said there was too much hanky-panky going
-on. He said that at Wilton he had the reputation of
-being an infallible judge of character and that he
-knew as well as he knew his own name that Rouse
-had been bullying the kid. As a matter of fact that
-was only one point. He was looking at the new-comers’
-footer, and he says Rouse made a dead set
-for the same boy&nbsp;... and then, of course, he came
-across to the house to see what Rouse did when he
-thought nobody was looking, and that’s how he
-found him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He made an expressive gesture and was silent.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Look here,” said Pointon, “be more explanatory.
-<em>What</em> was the bullying? What have witnesses got
-to do with it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence explained.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But, surely,” said Pointon, “when the Head
-knows the truth he can’t refuse to believe it....
-That’s all bosh.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What Toby says,” pointed out Terence, “is that
-what we’ve got up against us now isn’t a charge
-against Rouse that’s got to be disproved at all. It’s
-the Head’s own character. The Head is a man
-who’ll never admit himself in the wrong. Even if
-there’s nothing else behind it, that’s enough. He’s
-taken a definite line and now he won’t budge from it
-for fear of his reputation. He’s an idea we may try
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_81'>81</span>to make him alter his mind and he’s determined he
-won’t. Whatever evidence we could bring up now
-wouldn’t make any difference at all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Pointon grew annoyed. He was a studious boy
-with rather definite opinions of his own and a particularly
-strong sense of justice.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That’s preposterous,” said he. “No man’s got
-a right to do a thing like that. He’s not a dictator.
-We’ve always elected our own captains at games....
-This is all rot. Do you mean to say he’s going
-to make Rouse suffer like this and ruin the school’s
-footer season just because he hasn’t the decency to
-admit himself in the wrong?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That’s Toby’s idea,” said Terence, “and Toby
-isn’t often wrong over a thing like this. He’s done
-a lot of arguing with the Head too&nbsp;... and none
-of us have really spoken to him at all in private.
-Toby’s probably right.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“In that case,” said Pointon, “we <em>shall</em> require a
-deputation and we’d better decide now who it shall
-be.”</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>It was twenty-five minutes before Toby came back,
-and they saw at once that his countenance was grave.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s no use at all,” said he. “The Head’s firm.
-He says that unless you have elected a new captain
-by six o’clock to-night, he will elect one for you, and
-it may not be one that you expect.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Did you ask him to receive a deputation, sir?”
-said Smythe.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby looked at him fixedly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No. It was clear that if I did he would refuse.
-So I decided that if there were going to be a deputation
-at all it had better be an impromptu one. And
-I think I’ll leave that to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Looking at him, they understood: Toby was a
-master.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_82'>82</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER VIII<br /> <span class='large'>THE THUMB-SCREW</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>Coles returned to his study in a very bad temper.
-There had been one precious minute during the meeting
-when he had found himself suddenly thinking:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“My word! Supposing they should elect me!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Never before had he seriously considered himself
-captain of Rugby football; but now that he did so
-he found the sensation peculiarly delightful. In
-these fleeting moments he imagined himself the
-most important man in the school, a veritable maker
-of laws. He pictured the favours he would be able
-to win from other fellows by withholding or bestowing
-colours. He would be respected in the town.
-He would be able to get things on tick. He might
-even be awarded a money prize by his proud father.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>All these possibilities had flashed before his mind’s
-eye whilst other names were being suggested. Then
-that well-meaning but misguided individual had
-risen really and truly to propose his own and the
-chance was altogether too much for him. He had
-jumped to his feet.... There remained now nothing
-but the memory of being called an ass.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>After all, he was the best drop-kick in the school.
-He could not for the life of him see why it should be
-so very absurd to suppose him captain. It is, of
-course, at such times as this that the close observer
-may discern the subtle difference between one who is
-instinctively a gentleman and one who is not. Coles
-was not a young man of good taste and that’s all
-there is to it.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_83'>83</span>At all events he was very angry, and the first butt
-upon whom he could vent his feelings happened to
-be Bobbie Carr, who was waiting obediently outside
-his study. Coles pounced upon him eagerly. To
-Bobbie his nose looked longer than ever, and more
-beak-like; his prominent cheek-bones, too, were
-touched with the hectic flush of indignation.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He pointed at Bobbie fiercely.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What are you doing here? Why are you
-hanging about outside my study? When I want
-you I call for you. Nothing will annoy me so much
-as to see you when I don’t want you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You told me to come,” said Bobbie mildly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles, who had turned, spun round upon him
-instantly, his whole countenance darkening like the
-sky before a storm.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You’d argue, would you? I told you to come,
-did I? Well, now I tell you to <em>go</em>, so <em>GO!</em>”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He made a threatening gesture towards Bobbie,
-but as Bobbie did not flinch he emitted a sound of
-utter passion and went noisily into his study, slamming
-the door behind him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Once inside, he threw himself into a chair and
-began to brood. And, brooding, he came to a sudden
-decision.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles had certain friends, and it was his custom
-to entertain these friends during the early part of
-each term. Afterwards they, in their turn, entertained
-him. But he liked to be the first to issue an
-invitation. For one thing, this enabled him to cut
-a dash whilst he still had a fair amount of money;
-and having duly impressed the said friends with the
-way in which he believed in doing things, he was then
-able to enjoy their hospitality on a similarly lavish
-scale during times when he himself was rather hard
-up, entirely free of cost.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>These entertainments were not feeds as feeds are
-generally understood. That is to say, expense and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_84'>84</span>provender were never pooled. The inclusion of
-parcels from home was rather scorned if anything.
-It would have implied that the host was unable to
-provide a really sumptuous repast out of his own
-pocket, and had had to resort to a means of entertaining
-which is available to every junior. To Coles
-and his friends this would never have done. You
-will gather that Coles and his friends were snobs
-and you will be correct. But there was something
-else. They were, in addition, fools. None of these
-repasts was complete without one special item.
-There is no use hiding the fact. The item was drink.
-Under these circumstances it is surprising, of course,
-that Coles should have succeeded in getting into the
-First Fifteen the previous year. Coles was, however,
-passably clever. Very few in the school knew
-that he was addicted to this particular form of vice,
-and he took care that very few should. He posed
-as a connoisseur of whisky only to those friends who
-shared it with him. To all appearances he trained
-conscientiously, and he was sufficiently skilful to
-avoid giving any outward signs that he was not
-always fit. In addition, he indulged in drink only
-after matches, so that on Saturdays he was usually
-fit enough to pass muster. Indeed, whenever he had
-felt at all off colour he had found it easy enough to
-plead a cold.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The idea came to him now that he would vent his
-feelings in entertaining his friends to a really good
-evening. It should take place in his study, and he
-would drown his bitterness in fiery spirits flowing
-from a teapot. He did not like whisky, but it was
-supposed to be a good comforter once you had got
-it down, and besides, it was great to be able to
-take the stuff slightly stronger than the next
-man.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He came to this decision suddenly, and he reflected
-only for a few moments. He could scarcely have
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_85'>85</span>chosen a better night for the party. The deputation
-would be visiting the Head that evening and he
-expected that the school would retire to bed in something
-of an uproar. There might be a house demonstration
-in favour of Rouse. It was, moreover, very
-unlikely that there would be a Rugby match under
-present circumstances for a full week. Everything
-was to the good. He began to cheer up. At last
-he went to the door, opened it, and let out a piercing
-cry.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was no answer at all. The corridor was
-absolutely silent.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was only a very few minutes since he had sent
-Carr away, and to find now that when he really
-wanted him he had entirely disappeared was more
-than Coles could bear. He choked back a sob of
-despair and tried again. This time he shouted, if
-possible, more loudly and more angrily. Still there
-was silence. He muttered: “Where is he?” in a
-sort of stage whisper full of threatening significance,
-almost as if he believed Carr might be hiding a few
-yards away and, hearing him, would come out. He
-was really very like a spoilt child. It is said that
-walls have ears. If so, one must pity the wall
-which received the full blast of Coles’ next cry.
-Coles meant to attract attention or burst, and to do
-one or the other he richly deserved. As it happens,
-he attracted the attention of Rouse, who appeared
-round the corner with an expression of extreme
-annoyance.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Are you ill?” said he. “Do you want
-help?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I want my fag,” snapped Coles. “He was here
-only a minute ago, the jackass.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The chances are that your first shout knocked
-him flat on his face,” said Rouse, “and he’s lying
-round the corner in a fit. It nearly had that effect
-on me. I thought you’d been taken queer. If it’s
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_86'>86</span>only your fag you want would you mind stopping
-that unholy row, or else only make it at stated times,
-so that a fellow could know it was coming and be
-ready for it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles began to go pink and white by turns. He was
-very nearly losing all control of himself. He badly
-wanted to hit somebody in the eye, and the only consideration
-that kept him from doing so at once was
-uncertainty as to whether it would be altogether a
-good thing to start on Rouse.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Had he known what had actually happened he
-might, however, have even risked this.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse had met Carr down the corridor on his way
-back from the meeting and had stopped for a minute
-to speak to him, bent on displaying good spirits at
-all costs in case the boy might already have heard
-what had happened. In the middle of his conversation
-Coles’ first shout had reached their ears, and
-Bobbie Carr had moved as if to go in answer to it.
-Before he had time to start, however, the second cry
-had come, and Rouse had turned in the direction
-from which it came almost angrily.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What’s he making that row for?” said he.
-“Don’t go. That fellow ought to learn how to treat
-a fag before he has one. You push off. I’ll tell him
-I sent you on an errand. I’ll go and tick him off.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie Carr seemed a little uncertain.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’d better answer him,” said he at last.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At that moment the third shout reached their ears.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Listen to that,” said Rouse. “He’s off his
-head. If you go to him now the first thing he’ll do
-will be to catch you a whack across the face, and then
-I shall have to come in and intervene. It’s hardly
-fair to Coles. You go. I’ll go along and see if I can
-calm him down by means of the honeyed word.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Eventually Bobbie saw that Rouse meant it and
-moved slowly away, though, if Rouse’s forecast were
-true, it seemed to him a little like funking.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_87'>87</span>Rouse looked at Coles now with cool forbearance.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“As a matter of fact,” said he, “I met Carr a
-short while back, and as he’d got nothing to do I sent
-him on a little errand. You would have shouted
-like that all night and he wouldn’t have heard you.
-See how silly you make yourself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles made an idiotic gesture.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Sent him on an errand?” said he. “But
-Carr’s my fag!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, well,” said Rouse, “if you have anything
-you really want doing permit me to do it for you.
-I notice you want your neck washing.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles stepped forward, and leaned towards Rouse
-until his face was barely an inch away from his.
-Then he spoke through clenched teeth.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I don’t want any of that,” said he. “Understand,
-I don’t want it. Whether you’re captain of
-footer or not, I don’t want any of that.” He paused.
-“Otherwise you and I will come to blows. You’ve
-always thought it funny to pull my leg. It’s time
-it stopped.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At the time he presumably forgot that he had
-never failed to avail himself of any chance that had
-presented itself to him of insulting or annoying Rouse;
-nor that on two of the more recent occasions upon
-which Henry Hope had assisted Terence and Rouse
-out of a hole it had been he himself who had been
-instrumental in getting them into it.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You rather ask for it,” said Rouse gently. “If
-you could only see how perfectly childish you look
-in these tempers of yours you’d realise that a chap
-does you a good turn by trying to cure you. One
-of these days you’ll do something in a passion of
-fury that you’ll be sorry for.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles slowly withdrew his face. He then drew back
-a step and indicated Rouse with a warning finger.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Take care what you say,” said he darkly. “You
-be very careful.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_88'>88</span>Rouse sighed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Before I go,” said he, “there’s one other thing.
-I’m going to see Morley to-day with a view to asking
-if I can have Carr for my fag and give you my own.
-Ludlow would be rather more suited to your temperament
-than Carr. Ludlow’s had a bit of experience.
-He’ll know what’s what—if you understand
-me—and Carr won’t. You can hardly
-have got used to Carr yet, so <em>you</em> won’t mind, of
-course.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He stopped and looked at the other inquiringly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes, I do mind,” said Coles. “I object very
-strongly. I particularly asked for Carr.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Why did you do that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Because,” said Coles, “if you want to know—Carr’s
-a personal friend of mine. I know his family.
-That’s why.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He stood a moment watching the effect of this
-news and then turned abruptly, shot into his study,
-and flung the door to behind him with a resounding
-crash.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Exit Coles by door left centre,” whispered Rouse,
-and turning thoughtfully, made off at a dignified pace
-down the corridor.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Back in his chair, Coles began to reflect anew. He
-was just a little puzzled as to why Rouse should
-want to take Carr away, but not very. Carr had
-evidently chummed up with Henry Hope, and Henry
-was a sworn ally of the firm of Rouse and Nicholson.
-So far it was easy to trace the course of events. It
-was merely the working of a clique.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>But he was not at all sure whether Carr knew of the
-suggestion yet. If so, he was a bigger fool than he
-had taken him for. He must know that if he went
-over to the enemy Coles would give away his secret
-without a second thought. Surely he could not be
-prepared for that.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He considered the matter carefully from all standpoints.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_89'>89</span>At last he decided to interrogate Carr
-himself. This reminded him that Carr had yet to
-be found. He began to grow angry again at once.
-Carr had got to be found. He was going to hold a
-party and Carr had to go down to the town and fetch
-the necessary goods. Also Carr had to be instructed
-in his behaviour when on guard that evening.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Supposing, though, that Carr <em>did</em> want to go and
-fag for Rouse?</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>If he surrendered his only hold over him in a fit
-of spite he might regret it afterwards. No. He
-must keep Carr’s secret as long as possible. Only by
-having that always over his head would Carr be
-taught true obedience. The secret was a valuable
-possession. He must prevent Carr from going over
-to Rouse by some other means. The secret ought
-only to be a last resort.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He dipped again into the recesses of his imaginative
-mind. There must be some other way. All he had
-to do was to find it.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last he went out like the man in a fairy tale to
-seek his fortune, and his success was appropriately
-rapid. Evidently, in spite of having been called an
-ass at a Rugger meeting, this was his lucky day.
-Out on the gravel path behind the school he came
-upon a small group. The group was composed of
-Henry and Carr and the fat boy whose name was
-Coppin. He stood aside for a moment unnoticed
-and watched what was happening. Henry was
-striking a favourite pose, that of the plain-clothes
-man interrogating a suspect. He had a stiff finger
-pressed against the fat boy’s waistcoat, and his eyes
-were turned up so as to look over the tops of his
-spectacles at the unhappy Coppin. His height was
-unimposing because he had adopted a crouch in
-order to place full emphasis behind the forefinger
-with which he was pinning the fat boy down. Bobbie
-Carr had the appearance of an interested spectator
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_90'>90</span>more than anything else, but he was talking at
-the time that Coles came upon them, and it was
-clear that he was accusing the fat boy of some
-misdemeanour.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>From the fat boy’s expression too it was clear that
-he was fairly and squarely cornered. Coles tumbled
-to the position of affairs with praiseworthy rapidity.
-He could identify the fat boy at once from Terence’s
-description at the meeting, and it seemed clear to
-Coles that the other two were accusing him of sneaking,
-or perhaps even of laying false evidence against
-Rouse. The fat boy’s countenance would have
-given away his guilt if nothing else had.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles waited a minute or two in consideration of
-affairs and then came to a quick decision. There
-was very little time left before afternoon school.
-He must act quickly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His voice rang out, and Henry jumped hurriedly
-sideways as if in remembrance of recent happenings.
-Carr came over to him obediently.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Here,” said Coles, “I’ve been trying to find you
-for a deuce of a long time. Now that I’ve found you
-try and be intelligent and don’t waste time making
-me say things twice.... I’m in no end of a hurry.
-Rouse is going to ask for you as his fag. Did <em>you</em>
-get him to do that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No,” said Carr.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You didn’t? That’s just as well for you.
-Because you won’t get the better of me that way.
-Very well, then. Understand that if you’re given
-the opportunity, you don’t want to change. D’you
-get me? If they ask you whom you want to fag for,
-it’s me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He paused. Bobbie was looking at him dubiously.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Why?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Why?” repeated Coles. “Because I tell you so.
-You know why you’d better do as I tell you, don’t
-you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_91'>91</span>Bobbie did not answer. He appeared to be considering
-the point.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There’s another thing,” observed Coles, as if to
-help him decide. “You may know that Rouse is
-fighting tooth and nail to retain the captaincy of
-football. There’s a deputation going to the Head
-this evening. It’s touch and go what happens.
-Any slight evidence against Rouse or Rouse’s clique
-will make all the difference. Well, you know what
-I’ve just seen, don’t you? I’ve seen you and
-Henry Hope threatening that little kid who’s
-supposed to have caused all the trouble by splitting
-on Rouse. You know what that means. You’re
-friendly with Rouse and so is Hope. Supposing
-I go to the Head now and tell him what I’ve seen,
-which way do you think his decision will go? He’s
-dead nuts on bullying. That’s the only thing that’s
-caused Rouse’s downfall. You see what I mean....
-Trying to get at the kid whom Rouse has been bullying,
-trying to frighten him into saying Rouse never
-bullied him at all. You get me, don’t you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie looked at him in amazement.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Why—why, you wouldn’t do a thing like that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles laughed shortly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Wouldn’t I? That’s all you know about it.
-You haven’t summed <em>me</em> up very well.” He shook
-his head. “No,” said he, “I don’t stick at a little
-thing like that. Now, which shall it be? Quick!
-I told you I was in a hurry.... Will you let Rouse
-in over the captaincy or stick to me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie did not take long to consider. He was
-new to Public School life and there was clearly no
-time to consult Henry.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“If it’s a question of that, I’ll stick to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles smiled pleasantly. “Right,” said he. “Well,
-don’t forget it. And don’t turn round to-morrow
-and say you won’t. Because now you’ve promised
-there’s plenty of ways of keeping you to your word.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_92'>92</span>This was unnecessary. If Bobbie Carr once
-promised, nothing else was necessary to keep him
-to his word. But perhaps Coles may be excused
-for not appreciating such a point of view as that.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Now,” said he, with a sigh of relief, “I’m
-arranging a little party to-night to celebrate the
-new term. It won’t be after lights out or anything
-of that sort, but it’ll be rather a swagger affair, and
-I want you to go down and fetch me up some fodder.
-I shall give you a note—rather a special note—for
-a little private house just out of the town, and
-you’ll call there for a parcel. It’ll be done up in a
-cardboard box and you’ll be jolly careful—as careful
-as you know how—not to drop it, or anything like
-that. D’you see?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie slowly nodded his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“On no account are you to tell anyone else about
-this,” continued Coles. “And you’re to go alone.
-I’m showing a good deal of trust in you in sending
-you at all. I usually get these things myself for
-safety, but to-night there’s the deputation on and
-I haven’t had time even to send out the invitations
-yet, so I’ll have to trust to you. You’d better
-remember how you stand with me and play the
-game. Tell nobody and go alone. On no account
-do you tell that Henry Hope of yours. D’you
-understand that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Again Bobbie nodded his head, though this time
-it was clearly with some foreboding of the difficulties
-ahead.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You mustn’t even let him guess you’re going
-out for me at all, otherwise he’ll follow you and act
-the spy. He’s good at that. You must take the
-most absolute care. Otherwise you know what’ll
-happen. I shall report what I’ve just seen and the
-whole school will know about your father.” He
-reached out a hand and drove home these points
-with a severe clap on Bobbie’s shoulder. “Now
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_93'>93</span>you can go,” said he; “and come to me immediately
-after school this afternoon and I’ll give you the note
-and the address you’re to go to.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He turned with a portentous frown and walked
-away considerably more satisfied than he had been
-at any time during the day.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>To all intents and purposes Henry had vanished.
-In reality he had not, and at last Bobbie discerned
-him standing gravely beside a clump of ivy against
-the wall.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He did not beckon to Bobbie.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He just looked at him and the movement of his
-lips seemed to say, “Come,” just as it does when
-people look like that on the film.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie came slowly and somewhat unhappily.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“In your interests,” said Henry, when he had
-eventually reached his side, “I watched all. It
-wasn’t eavesdropping, because I couldn’t hear a
-word. But I could see Coles’ face and once I saw
-yours. I won’t ask you to tell me anything at all.
-Coles has sworn you to secrecy, I’ll bet. I could
-almost see him doing it. So don’t tell me anything
-you’d rather not. Just rest assured that you aren’t
-in such a hole as you think. I’m on your side.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There’s another thing,” he added, as if on an
-afterthought, “that you may not know, and that
-Coles may not know—but I happen to have heard
-from a reliable source that Rouse is going to ask
-for you to be his fag. As a matter of fact, it was
-Terence—Nicholson, that is—who told me. That
-ought to cheer you up!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He looked at Bobbie happily. Bobbie’s expression
-never changed. For a moment Henry looked
-decidedly disappointed. But at last a look of
-understanding suddenly came into his eye. And
-as he looked down at Bobbie darkly, his face grew
-suddenly very old indeed, very old and very wise.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_94'>94</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER IX<br /> <span class='large'>A MOLE-HILL AND A MOUNTAIN</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>The new Head had dined well and in due course had
-retired to that wide room of heavy curtains and
-stained-glass windows wherein the Grey Man had
-always seemed so admirable a Head. Dr Roe
-did not seem at all in keeping with that place of
-peaceful dignity. This had been one of the things
-that had troubled Toby most. He was too loud
-of speech, too free of gesture, and he had not the
-upright presence which had been so memorable
-a part of the man whose hair and eyes and clothing
-had been grey.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The new Head had retired to his study that
-evening much as a dog retires to his kennel with a
-bone. He had taken papers and a long cigar and
-had sat down heavily in the great arm-chair beside
-the fireplace; then, leaning back, he had rested his
-head against a blue plush cushion, with a sigh of deep
-content. Now his eyes passed slowly round the
-room, taking in previously unnoticed features, and
-at last came back to the fire, where they fixed a
-sleepy gaze upon some vision in the glowing coals.
-It was a small fire, for summer had scarcely passed,
-but Dr Roe was a lover of fires and he had ordered
-this especially. He poked it with his boot and upset
-a few cinders into the grate. Finally, he considered
-the papers he had brought with him for perusal.
-They seemed but faintly interesting, and eventually
-the memory of his dinner proved too much: slowly
-his eyes closed. Within a few moments the new
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_95'>95</span>Headmaster of Harley was dozing in his chair with
-nodding head and mouth agape.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Now whilst he dozed he had a dream. It was the
-usual silly sort of dream and he found himself cast
-for the part of king. He was only the king of one
-of those insignificant little states whose troubles
-form the plot of many a comic opera, but that is
-better than not being a king at all, and at all events
-he was surprisingly well loved. In his dream the
-whole populace were acclaiming him. He was
-being bombarded with flowers. His courtiers
-(amongst whom might be noticed the school bursar
-looking very natty in red velvet) stood smilingly
-around him, bowing and waving to the swaying
-crowd gathered before his window. He himself
-was behaving in a kingly but somewhat distant
-manner, and once when an ornamental basket of
-hollyhocks had caught him a crashing blow between
-the eyes he had shown annoyance. It seemed
-clear in this dream, however, that sooner or later
-he would have to make a speech, and as he considered
-himself by no means a bad speaker he did
-not keep the crowd waiting any longer than was
-proper.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>That part of his dream in which he rose to his feet
-with a handful of red robe clutched at his hip was
-extremely lifelike.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He was standing on a balcony looking down upon
-his people, and he was only faintly conscious in his
-dream that this balcony was the window-sill of his
-present study.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At first the crowd could not restrain their delight
-at all. Whether this was because they had at last
-got something good at which to aim their missiles,
-or whether they were honestly glad to see him looking
-so well, we cannot judge, but it was a long time
-before he could obtain a hearing. They simply
-cheered and cheered and cheered. One man even
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_96'>96</span>threw his hat into the air and delayed proceedings
-for a long time by stubbornly trying to find it
-again. Eventually the Head’s reception grew to
-such a pitch that something had to be done about it.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>So he woke up.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He did so with a jerk, and found himself staring
-at the school porter, who in his turn was staring
-back at him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was an extraordinary noise in progress;
-well, perhaps hardly a noise—the subdued shuffle
-of feet—the sound of a vast crowd endeavouring
-to move quietly. At first the Head took this to
-be some part of his dream which had not entirely
-vanished, but it continued, and at last he dropped
-his eyes thoughtfully, looked up again at the porter
-and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Hammond, <em>what</em> is that noise?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Hammond, who had loved the Grey Man himself,
-had received strict instructions that he was on no
-account to answer any question of this kind in such
-words as: “It’s the boys, sir.” The boys he
-understood would be trying their best to pretend
-they weren’t there. Hammond did <em>his</em> best to
-induce the Head to believe it.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“<em>What</em> noise, sir?” said he.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Headmaster gazed at him dubiously, and at
-last decided for reasons of his own not to press the
-point; he was under a strong impression that a
-good part of his dream was obstinately refusing to
-fade away, and he was conscious of a keen desire to
-move across to the curtains and draw them aside.
-He was prepared to bet with himself that the crowd
-he had seen in his dreams was not so mythical as
-he had at first supposed. The porter, however,
-gave him no time to secure proof. He had a one-line
-part in the evening’s drama and he spoke it
-with pride.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His voice was loud and clear, even a little pompous:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_97'>97</span>“The captain of the school, sir, wishes to speak
-to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head peered at him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Who?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“<em>The captain of the school</em>, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What does he want?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Hammond was respectfully patient.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“He wants to see you, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“To see me? Who? Who does?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Dr Roe, you see, was still paying only partial
-attention.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>This time Hammond made no answer at all. He
-merely stared at the Head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Dr Roe tumbled to it suddenly. He had still
-been wondering what was really happening outside
-his window, but the sight of the school porter’s
-pitiful stare brought him to his senses abruptly.
-He waved a hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, well,” said he, “show him in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Hammond went like a rat from a cage.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Next moment the door opened again and Pointon
-appeared, a tall, studious young man considerably
-impressed with the importance of the occasion.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He was not alone. As he entered, the Head saw
-a string of young men behind him, and he rose to his
-feet in surprise.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What is this?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Pointon spoke in a calm voice. If anything the
-Head was the more excited of the two.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Some prefects of the school ask to be allowed
-to speak to you, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What is it about?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The deputation moved into the room, looked round
-almost instinctively for the Grey Man, and then
-brought their eyes to bear, as one man, upon the
-Head who had taken his place.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“About Rouse, sir,” said Pointon. “They wish
-me as their spokesman to tell you that Rouse is the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_98'>98</span>only fellow they wish to elect as captain of football,
-and they ask you to——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head advanced upon them in growing
-anger.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Then it is quite useless,” he replied. “You
-would have done better not to have come. My mind
-is irrevocably made up. I come from Wilton, and
-at that school they knew me before I left to be a
-man of iron determination. By trying to dissuade
-me you will only make me more resolute. I have
-made my decision and communicated it to the school.
-I expect you to abide by that decision without a
-murmur. To come here like this is a sign of weakness
-amongst those whom I expected to set the
-school an example, and it is very displeasing to
-me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Will you hear us, sir?” said Smythe. “There
-are some things which we think you can’t realise.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Dr Roe turned upon him irritably.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No,” said he, “I will not hear you. I have
-heard more than enough of this matter. You are
-one and all making a mountain out of a mole-hill.
-It is preposterous to suggest that there is only one
-boy in a great Public School like this who is agreeable
-to you as captain of football. If you had only eyes
-to see, you would understand for yourselves what I
-saw in twenty-four hours and was in time to prevent.
-Rouse is the one boy here who is least suited of any
-of you for the post. You cannot see that for yourselves
-and it is my duty to guide you; it is my
-intention to do my duty with a will of iron. They
-knew me at Wilton, and before very long you will
-know me here.” He paused. They were sullenly
-quiet. “Well,” he said, “are you prepared to
-elect a captain?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a moment there was absolute silence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Pointon turned and looked round his deputation
-as if for support. At last Terence Nicholson spoke.</p>
-
-<div class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/i_098fp.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic001'>
-<p>“THE HEAD ADVANCED UPON THEM IN GROWING ANGER.”</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_99'>99</span>“No, sir,” said he; “we are not. You won’t
-hear us and you don’t understand.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He drew back and fixed Terence with a wrathful
-glare.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Mr Nicholson has said everything you could
-say over and over again. There is no scope left
-for argument at all. I understand that you refuse
-to obey me. If so, you leave the election of a captain
-entirely in my hands. You refuse to elect your
-own?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Once again there was silence. And this time the
-silence was significant.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>After Toby’s experience they had not expected
-a fair hearing; the belief that Dr Roe was going to
-fight them was now a certainty.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head turned and moved suddenly towards
-the window. His curiosity as to what was really
-happening outside would no longer be denied. He
-reached the curtain with outstretched hand and
-tugged it aside.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And then in the gathering dusk of late evening he
-saw what he had to combat. This little upheaval
-of school life had once seemed to him merely a
-mole-hill. But he had spoken truly: they had made
-of it a mountain. As far as the eye could reach
-there stretched a sea of faces showing above the clear
-white of schoolboys’ collars, very silent and very
-still, waiting as if for a signal from within. He
-stared out upon the scene for thirty seconds and at
-last he turned. Even in this wide room the silence
-was tense. Not one of the deputation seemed to be
-really drawing breath. The new Head faced them
-sternly, his grim visage more than ever like the face
-of a bloodhound, his spectacles set firmly upon the
-broad bridge of his nose.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What does that mean?” he said at last. “Why
-are all those boys out there? What do they want?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence stepped forward boldly. There was the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_100'>100</span>joy of battle in his eyes. “They want Rouse, sir,”
-said he. “Every mother’s son amongst them—and
-they are waiting for your answer.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head’s eyes hardened till they shone like
-steel.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Very well,” said he. “Then you may make
-it known at once.” He paused and looked at each
-boy in turn, and at last he told them in slow emphatic
-words how he had planned his answer.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_101'>101</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER X<br /> <span class='large'>THE WATCHERS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>Bobbie Carr leaned wearily against the wall with
-hands thrust deep in his pockets and an expression
-of the most complete dejection.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Except for those deplorable young men who
-were celebrating their return to school behind the
-closed doors of Coles’ study, he believed that he
-was absolutely alone in the whole of Morley’s.
-Everybody else had gone. In twos and threes and
-fours they had all passed down the corridor, talking
-in eager whispers and making emphatic gestures of
-resolve. To-night the school were meeting to lodge
-one last gigantic protest against the ways of the new
-Headmaster in a demonstration that would have
-weight of numbers solidly behind it and a mighty
-voice with which to speak.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And he was left alone in a passage. It was really
-awful. His futile office was to stand about outside
-that hated study and guard it against intruders.
-What intruders? There was nobody whatever left
-in the whole house to intrude. All he had to do was
-to kick his heels about and pretend to be waiting
-idiotically for a friend.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>All the while the precious minutes were passing.
-Soon the whole school would be gathered outside
-the Head’s window and he, who had really conceived
-as great an admiration for Rouse as any other boy
-in the school, would not be there. Others would
-notice his absence and comment upon it; there would
-be a general and a perfectly just vote that he be kicked.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_102'>102</span>It was worse than awful. It was pitiful.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Quite unexpectedly Henry came down the passage,
-stopped at Coles’ study and reached for the doorknob.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie sprang forward in one excited leap.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Stop! Hey! Where are you going?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry’s attitude was admirable. His hand never
-reached the door. In point of fact it was never
-intended to. His arm fell stiffly to his side.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Then he looked for a spot suitable for quiet conversation
-away from the door. It was important
-that if Coles were in that study he should not know
-that he, Henry Hope, was outside.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last he took Bobbie by the arm and moved
-down the passage in the manner of a novice on
-roller skates, until they were safely out of earshot,
-when he stopped and placed his hands upon his
-hips.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You may not know it,” he began, “but I have
-been three times to the corner of this passage, only
-to find you each time propping up the wall.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie gazed at him dully and could offer no
-reasonable reply.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Say,” demanded Henry, “what’s Coles&nbsp;...
-doing&nbsp;... in that room?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“How do you know Coles is in there?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry snapped his finger.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s all right,” he said. “I’ll tell you how things
-are. I believe Coles is up against Rouse. I believe
-he thinks he’s got a chance of being captain himself.
-That’s what everybody’s saying, anyway. Now
-Rouse asked for you as his fag and it seems you’ve
-told Morley that you’d rather stay with Coles. And
-what I want to know is, why?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie was silent.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There’s only one thing to it. Somehow or other
-Coles has got a strangle-hold on you.... There’s
-a mystery in this. Coles told Rouse that he knew
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_103'>103</span>your family and for that reason he particularly
-wanted you as <em>his fag</em>. I know Coles is sick with
-Rouse; of course, he’s blind jealous. He’s sick
-that he wasn’t asked to form one of the deputation
-to-night too.... But there’s more in it than that.
-Somehow Coles has got you in his grip. I’m going
-to find out why, and the only way to do that is to
-get a hold on Coles. So—what’s Coles doing in
-that study?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“How do you know he’s in there?” demanded
-Bobbie.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry made a gesture of extreme pride.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Most of this I’ve told you I know because Rouse
-knows—and Rouse told <em>me</em>, and, by Gemini! he told
-the right man. But how did I know Coles was in
-<em>there</em>? Well, it’s as plain to me as if it were written
-up on a placard outside the door. Coles is nowhere
-in the school, and you’ve stuck here for the last
-hour. To prove it I came up as though I were going
-into the room and you wouldn’t let me&nbsp;... and
-I say&nbsp;... does this mean he’s not going to help in
-the hullabaloo at all?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I don’t know,” said Bobbie wretchedly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry considered the matter for a moment. At
-last he turned and seized the other by the wrist.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Very well,” said he, “I’m going to fetch Coles
-out of it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“<em>Fetch him out?</em>”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Certainly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“How?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“By going in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But that won’t fetch him out—unless you
-mean he’ll chase you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“<em>Chase me?</em>” Henry’s dignity appeared to be
-somewhat offended. “Chase <em>me</em>?” he repeated.
-“Of course not. I mean to go in and tell him Pointon’s
-waiting for him at the Head’s room. By the
-time he gets there the other chaps will be inside and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_104'>104</span>when Coles says afterwards: ‘Did you want me?’
-Pointon will say: ‘Of course I did. I want every
-fellow in the school.’ He won’t dare to make a
-shindy. It’ll look pretty bad if he’s noticed to be
-the only one absent out of Rouse’s house.... And
-then,” he added, “as soon as Coles has gone <em>you</em> can
-go. Do you get me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie cheered up. He glanced at Henry admiringly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Do you mean it?” said he. “But how will
-you get in?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That’s easy. You’ll just go and knock at the
-door, and when he shouts out you’ll say there’s a
-chap come with a message from Pointon.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie considered this plan with sparkling eyes.
-The greyness of the immediate future began to fade
-swiftly away.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Go on,” said Henry. “It’s all right. If there’s
-any difficulty afterwards I’ll see Terence and he’ll
-square it. I’m speaking the truth anyway. Pointon
-does want him. He wants everybody. He said so.
-I’m just going to remind Coles about it, that’s all,
-only I shall put it a bit differently, of course.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Supposing he kicks you,” submitted Bobbie.
-“It might hurt.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>This time Henry looked really annoyed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Don’t be so stupid,” said he. “You go and
-knock at the door.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie needed no second bidding. He moved
-forward and knocked loudly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Hullo!” cried Coles. “What is it? Who’s
-there?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was distinct vexation in his voice. For one
-moment Henry quailed. There was no doubt
-whatever that Coles was the best drop-kick in the
-school.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Next moment Bobbie had explained. There was
-a dramatic pause. Henry trembled with excitement.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_105'>105</span>At last he heard movement inside the study
-and Coles’ voice saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“All right, send him in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The moment had come. Henry set his teeth, and
-with one hand at his coat-tails surreptitiously ready
-to protect himself and every nerve alert, he walked
-stiffly to the door and went in.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>As he stood there facing Coles and Coles’ cronies
-he remembered the day when he had been a fag
-himself. Everything was so oddly similar. He
-could just imagine Slade in Coles’ chair and Black
-standing watchfully beside him. Things had not
-changed very much. History seemed likely to repeat
-itself. He did not know that his eyes looked
-wide and terror-stricken with the strain of nervous
-tension. He was not really afraid. Nobody likes
-being kicked, of course, but with Henry it was the
-dread uncertainty of not knowing whether he was
-going to be or not that was so upsetting.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles rose to his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Pointon wants <em>me</em>?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Is that all he said&nbsp;... he just wanted me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry’s brain was alert.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“People noticed you weren’t there, I think. And
-it seems he wanted everyone. So he wants you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles suddenly advanced upon him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Get out!” he bellowed. “Get out, you frightful
-garden slug!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry turned and made for the door. He did not
-really care at the moment whether there was any
-answer to the message or not. All he wanted was
-to get out without running. He strove with all his
-might to do it. He felt the hot breath of the ogre
-behind him. Every nerve was urging him to jump.
-He would not. He saw the knob of the door with
-wide protuberant eyes, his head craned forward, his
-hand outstretched to grasp it. He was almost
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_106'>106</span>through&nbsp;... then it was too late. He heard the
-swish of its coming, half turned, his hand flew to
-save him. It was hardly swift enough. The great
-boot thudded against its target and he shot forward
-in a stupid bunch and out into the passage. With
-the frenzy of utter despair he straightened himself in
-the very nick of time and assumed his natural gait.
-The pain didn’t matter. It was nothing. His only
-aim was to save his dignity, and by the skin of his
-teeth he did it. The door slammed to behind him,
-and he never so much as jumped.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He moved up the passage and peered at Bobbie
-over the tops of his spectacles.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ve told him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was just a suspicion of a sob in his voice.
-Bobbie made no comment. He looked at Henry
-Hope admiringly. And at last he said:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Oh, <em>WELL DONE</em>.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I won’t stay,” said Henry. “You follow on. I
-expect they’ll be out in a minute. I—I won’t
-stay.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>With scarcely a pause he went stiffly on his way.
-Bobbie looked after him. And though he may or
-may not have guessed, he never at all events knew
-how shockingly it had hurt.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He stood for a while, waiting uncertainly, and at
-last the door opened again and Coles and his friends
-came out. They were talking quietly to one another,
-and Coles turned to him as they passed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Here, you can cut. But jolly well be back
-here as soon as this show’s over. D’you understand
-that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie nodded excitedly and darted away. Henry
-had kept his word. He’d be there to cheer Rouse
-after all.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Thus, then, the last who were in Morley’s passed
-out to join the silent watchers who stretched in a
-vast half-circle before the stained-glass windows that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_107'>107</span>hid the deputation and the Head, and the house
-grew strangely still. There was no creak upon
-the stairs, no voice in any room. Every boy had
-gone.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Yet not quite all.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>In an upstairs study one remained. He stood at
-the window looking out into the dark, his shoulders
-squarely set and his heart throbbing with forlorn
-hope. Every man jack in the school had been a
-brick to him. It might be that they could win the
-day by strength of numbers. If so he believed that
-they would never have a more ardent captain in any
-year to come than he would be for them this term.
-But deep in his heart he was desperately afraid. The
-school were strong, but he had an instinctive fear
-that they would not be strong enough to win. So
-he stood waiting, a silent watcher, for the answer
-that would come.</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>A group of masters were standing quietly on the
-flight of wide stone steps; at windows and doors
-porters and servants of the school, their faces round
-with wonder, had gradually appeared; but the
-wide, stiff phalanx that showed the real strength
-of Harley’s purpose had never moved. Six hundred
-boys were waiting in silent dignity for an answer from
-the Head, and when he had drawn aside the heavy
-curtains and had gazed upon them, no single boy
-had seemed to move a muscle of his face, not even a
-solitary cough had snapped the magic of their studied
-silence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>So they had waited, and at last their answer was
-on the way. Under the archway the old oak door
-swung slowly on its hinges. Then Pointon came.
-He moved with a hesitant step, waiting for those
-behind him, and though the watchers had hoped that
-he would give them some kind of cue he made no
-sign, only at last, with Smythe and Terence at his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_108'>108</span>elbow, and the deputation at his heels, he moved
-towards the crowd.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Every face turned tensely towards him, pale and
-uplifted in the dusk, and seeming to sway this way
-and that as if for a better view of his real expression.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And now a stillness that was even more telling than
-the utter quiet of their waiting settled upon the
-crowd whilst Pointon climbed on to the parapet and
-looked out over them grimly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was no need to lift his hand. Without one
-gesture his quietly steady voice broke that ominous
-hush, and spoke his message.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“We have been to the Head and we’ve told him
-that the only fellow we mean to have as captain is
-Rouse. The Head won’t listen to us. We’ve tried
-to make him understand that nobody else will stand
-for election or take on the job, and that whilst
-Rouse is here nobody else would ever be elected.
-Rouse was made for the job. Even I, who can’t
-play footer, can comprehend a simple fact like that.
-But the Head can’t. He won’t budge from his first
-decision. And now that he’s seen you all out here
-he’s sent us to tell you what his answer is.” He
-paused to look round them soberly, and still there
-was no move. “His answer is this. He has a son.
-His son is at Wilton. He says that if we will not
-elect a captain he will elect one for us, so he’s writing
-to-night to Wilton and his son is going to leave and
-come here. When he arrives he—the Head’s own
-son—will be appointed captain of footer, and I’m
-to tell you that the first thing he will do will be to
-teach us how to obey.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He stopped and stood for a moment staring out
-upon them dully. Then he moved and they understood
-that he was done.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For an incalculable space of time the school stood
-rooted to the spot, incredulous, stiff, mute with stupefaction.
-Then in one psychological second the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_109'>109</span>whole vast crowd had shifted into sudden movement
-and was spreading, fan-like, forward and outwards.
-There came a swelling roar of indignation. The
-deputation was suddenly swallowed up, and as they
-disappeared the crowd began to find voice, elbowing
-this way and that, in a fever of desperation, whilst
-over their heads there broke the storm-cloud of
-rebellion.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_110'>110</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER XI<br /> <span class='large'>THE HOLD</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>For just one minute Rouse had stood at his window
-staring like one transfixed into the night, his head
-a little to one side as if in hopes of catching the gist
-of Pointon’s words. This had been hopeless. The
-distance was too great and the breeze was blowing
-away from Morley’s. In the growing dusk it had
-even been difficult to distinguish the crowd of
-waiting boys outside the Head’s room sufficiently
-clearly to gather from the sight how things were
-going.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>One sign alone gave him his cue. It was the
-silence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He had hoped forlornly for an outburst of fanatical
-cheering. That would have meant that the day was
-won, that his selection stood, that the coming year,
-in spite of these troublous opening days, would not,
-after all, be lean. No sound whatever came. The
-hush was ominous. For just that minute he stood,
-a lonely figure, at his open study window. Then
-the answer reached him in a way that was unmistakable.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The night was suddenly broken by a roar of clashing
-voices, a riotous outburst of fierce cries, then the
-whole assembly was in sudden movement. He
-strained his eyes for a clear sight of what was happening,
-tried all he knew to catch the sense of all the
-clamour. No set phrase reached him. All he could
-properly distinguish here and there in the turmoil
-was the sound of his own name shouted again and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_111'>111</span>again as if in passionate loyalty by many voices that
-he could not recognise.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>But it was evidence enough. The last resort of
-discipline had failed. The school had been irremediably
-snubbed. And, as he waited, there came
-to him an almost dreaded thought. The school
-would still not take it. He read this as the message
-of that chaotic shouting. They were coming for
-him. The Head had dragged him from his high
-estate and the school would not lie down that night
-until they had hoisted him up again, if only to see
-him enthroned upon their shoulders as a little tin
-god, idolised and ten times as strongly established
-as their captain now than ever before, whatever the
-Head might have to say.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It came to Rouse as a fear.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He imagined himself hatefully in the limelight, a
-puffed-up and imaginary hero without just cause.
-He had some inkling now as to the temper of the
-school and he knew what it would mean.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He listened again. They were certainly coming
-towards him. Above the lasting din he could still
-hear his own name shouted ever and again. He
-looked round his study nervously, suddenly spotted
-the lofty cupboard, darted into it and shut the door
-gingerly behind him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Two minutes later the clatter of a great stampede
-was breaking the peace of Morley’s. He crouched in
-his hiding-place and scarcely dared to breathe. Soon
-the forerunners were pounding up the stairs and
-along the passage shouting his name in turn as they
-came, with a desperate affection that would not be
-denied.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The door of his study flew open and he heard them
-tumble in one after the other, and finally cry the
-news back to those behind.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“He isn’t here. He’s gone!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>This meant no ending to the uproar. He heard
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_112'>112</span>the message passed to those on the road outside, in
-high-pitched voices that clamoured for ideas as to
-where he could be hiding. Then those below, realising
-that they would now be foremost in the search,
-turned excitedly, scrunching the gravel underfoot,
-and made off towards the school again. But those
-who were in the house intended first to make a proper
-job of it, while they were here, and he heard them
-running like a pack of hounds into the common room,
-and down to the dining-hall below, whilst all the time
-they shouted for him pleadingly, hoping against vain
-hope that he would answer and produce himself at
-last.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Then, in the end, they seemed resolved that he
-was nowhere there, and off they set in a stern chase
-after the body of the hunt, racing across the open
-spaces towards the school again.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He heard the placid tones of Mr Morley feebly remonstrating,
-then threatening angrily, and towards
-the end entreating with them, but he was brushed
-aside by mere strength of numbers and left in the
-hall of his house shouting mildly after them to show
-their common-sense and keep the peace.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>All this Rouse could hear and understand, and
-when the house seemed quiet again he very cautiously
-opened the cupboard door and stretched
-himself. Next moment he received the surprise of
-his life. The light was suddenly switched on and
-revealed him. At the same time Terence Nicholson
-spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Come out,” said he. “Come along out, there’s
-a good fellow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a fleeting space Rouse was absolutely nonplussed
-and he could only stare. Then he recovered
-himself with a miraculous effort, brushed his clothes
-with his hand and stepped daintily out of the cupboard.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Absolutely <em>NO</em> deception,” he observed. “Any
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_113'>113</span>gentleman in the audience is fully at liberty to come
-up and examine both the lady <em>and</em> the box.” He
-paused. “Nobody? I thank you, ladies and
-gentlemen, for your very kind attention.” He
-bowed, paused again, rendered the National Anthem
-as a cornet solo, cried: “Pass out quickly, please!”
-and finally stepped up to Terence, who was regarding
-him with an affectionate pity and faced him
-defiantly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Now, how did you know I was in that cupboard?”
-said he. “And how on earth did you come
-into this room without my hearing you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Elementary,” said Terence, “my jolly old Dr
-Watson. I came in with the mob. When they ran
-out again I stayed here and slipped behind the door.
-Nobody missed me, and as soon as they’d cleared off
-I simply waited for you to come out. You see, old
-boy, there’s always something wrong with your
-schemes. The light from the passage, for example,
-shone directly upon the cupboard door, and it lit up
-with strange distinctness a tuft of your coat which
-was protruding through the slit between the door
-and the cupboard.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse regarded his coat critically.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“A nice piece of material, too,” said he. “Try
-the feel of it, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence smiled grimly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“As soon as I saw you were <em>apparently</em> not here,
-though, <em>I</em> of course looked towards that cupboard
-first.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Thinking,” said Rouse gently, “to reach yourself
-a piece of pie so soon as the place was clear. I’m
-inclined to think, young Nicholson, that you were
-as surprised as I was.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence made an abrupt gesture.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The Head’s given his answer.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What is it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence told him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_114'>114</span>“The name of the new Rugger captain,” said he,
-“is Roe.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse looked him through and through, the while
-his expression slowly changed from one of puzzled
-misunderstanding to one of set resignation.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He asked no questions. He just thought it out
-for himself whilst Terence watched him. It was no
-use saying: “What do you mean?” The words
-were an explanation in themselves. At last, however,
-he spoke. His face was a little drawn and his eyes
-shone with an almost feverish light, but his voice
-was natural.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Roe?” said he brightly. “Not <em>young</em> Roe,
-the son of <em>old</em> Roe?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence nodded.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Soft Roe, I expect,” continued Rouse, “the
-son of hard Roe.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There came a brief silence. Terence was clearly
-disinclined for mere frivolity. He sat down at the
-table and supported his chin with both hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse gazed at him fondly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What an awful shame it is that all this trouble
-is about <em>me</em>. If only you’d been the one, what a
-difference it would have made now. So far as
-Rugger is concerned I do certainly believe I could
-have made a real success of things, but instead of
-that you see what’s happening. Within twenty-four
-hours I shall be looked to to lead a revolution.
-And,” he added forcefully, “if you can imagine for
-one moment the buffoon I should look strutting at
-the head of a mutinous procession in a red nightcap,
-beating the air with a piece of old iron, you can see
-at once how impossible it’s going to be. I tell you
-frankly, Nick, I shall be no good at it at all....”
-He paused. “If only it had been <em>you</em> all the
-fuss was about, nobody could have preached rebellion
-from the top of an egg-box with greater
-vehemence than I. No paid agitator could ever
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_115'>115</span>be a more successful firebrand. I should have
-thoroughly had my heart in the thing. As it is, I’m
-merely going to feel an unutterable fool from start
-to finish. I’ve taken to blushing already—and
-any advertisement will tell you what an awkward
-habit that is.” He sighed. “Besides,” he added,
-“what line are we going to adopt? Do you suppose
-the fellow wants to come here? If he’s anything
-of a man at all he’ll be fed up to the teeth at leaving
-Wilton to come here like this. Supposing he refuses
-to take it on. What then?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The Head didn’t speak as though there was any
-chance of him refusing to take it on,” said Terence.
-“He seems to have him pretty securely under his
-thumb.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse shook his head gloomily.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’d far rather keep out of this. I’m beginning
-to feel unpleasantly like a man trying to get elected
-for Parliament. Every time I say anything decent
-to a chap I wonder whether he thinks I’m only saying
-it so as to get his vote. I’ve a very strong desire to
-slide away quietly and hide under a leaf.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I know,” said Terence; “it isn’t for you to
-head a revolution. But if they need someone to
-show ’em the way they haven’t got far to look.
-If they want a leader—there’s me. I know
-you better than anyone else.... I’m captain of
-cricket, too, and I know what’s wanted in the fellow
-that skippers the school. That’s why I know what
-they’ve missed in losing you. And this madman—who
-is he?—a stranger to the school—a miserable
-outcast—whose first week’s work has been to
-trample down all the school traditions and snub six
-hundred fellows with a snap of his fingers. He’ll
-have to give in. Now that I come to think of it,
-I shouldn’t be surprised if Toby fights on our side
-himself. All I can say is that if he does the new
-Head’s well beaten from the start.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_116'>116</span>“Let’s go out for a stroll,” said Rouse. “No one
-will go to bed yet awhile, and that horde of savages
-will be coming back after me in a minute. We will
-escape into the night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They moved out of the study and down the corridor
-slowly and in silence. There was still an uncanny
-quiet about the house. Their footsteps echoed from
-end to end of the passage.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Seems queer, doesn’t it?” said Terence. “Like
-being at school in holiday time.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>But on the floor below they heard voices. They
-were not distinct but they were undoubtedly excited.
-It seemed that three or four people must be debating
-some dark point behind the closed door of a study.
-Then turning a corner they came unexpectedly upon
-the figure of Bobbie Carr, his back against the wall,
-his thoughts evidently far away. His eyes were fixed
-absent-mindedly on the study door, and at first he
-did not hear footsteps. Looking up suddenly and
-noticing who came, he shot into an attitude of alertness
-and watched them uncertainly. They stopped
-and smiled at him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Were you responsible for any of that hullabaloo
-outside?” demanded Rouse. “Was that you
-calling out my name about ten minutes ago?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I did cheer a bit,” admitted Bobbie. “Everyone’s
-looking for you. They want to chair you round
-the school. They’re thinking of burning an effigy
-of the Head too. Only they can’t find anything
-suitable to burn.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence slowly nodded his head. Next moment
-he had turned sharply. The sound of those high-pitched
-voices had broken out anew. There was
-no doubt now whence they came. They came from
-Coles’ study, and one of the most prominent amongst
-them was the voice of Coles. He was addressing his
-friends as “Gentlemen!” with a peculiar frequency;
-also his voice had a froggy croak.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_117'>117</span>Rouse turned his head and looked queerly at the
-door, glanced once at Terence and finally bent a
-questioning eye on Bobbie.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Are you&nbsp;... waiting for Coles?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie looked at them, in turn, in evident distress,
-and made no answer. So they waited a moment,
-looked once again towards the door, and then proceeded
-thoughtfully upon their way.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Outside Morley’s they turned behind the house
-and strolled slowly under the trees. Here was a
-point of vantage from which they could dimly see
-the school; the still turbulent ranks of rebels arm-in-arm
-were goose-stepping proudly up and down
-before the Head’s room, waiting as if for news that
-Rouse had been unearthed, and all at once Terence
-found himself distracted by an unexpected turn of
-events. It was the sound of cautious footsteps on
-the gravel, and when he saw who was passing he
-laid a hand upon Rouse’s arm and silently drew him
-round. Then, with a finger upon his lips, he pointed
-with the other hand towards the wall of Morley’s.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was none other than Henry Hope, and he was
-making his way laboriously alongside the wall.
-Now and again he looked up at the windows and
-paused as if guided by the increasing sounds of revelry
-that came from the only occupied study in all the
-building.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Neither of the two who watched him as he moved
-was quite clear what he was about, but the sight
-was exceedingly diverting, and a slow and puzzled
-smile came into Rouse’s countenance.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s Coles he’s after,” whispered Terence, after
-careful observation. “What’s he going to do?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Heave a brick at his window, perchance,” said
-Rouse, hoarse with delight. “He’s got an idea that
-Coles has some mysterious kind of hold over that
-kid Carr, and he says the way to find out what it is
-is to get a hold on Coles. He’s starting by getting a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_118'>118</span>hold on the drain-pipe, you see. I hope he won’t
-let go. I shouldn’t at all like to see our Henry a
-mere splash of vermilion on the gravel path. Fancy
-having to clean up Henry with a spade....”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His voice trailed away into silence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Slowly, and with considerable difficulty, Henry
-laboured up the pipe. Once he paused and seemed
-to be grunting out a prayer for the strength with
-which to continue. He looked down dizzily, then up
-again, and finally, after a battle with his nerves, continued
-the perilous ascent. At last he came opposite
-Coles’ window. He reached out a hand like that of
-some family ghost, clutched the window-ledge, and
-drew himself up to a moderately secure position.
-The moment had clearly come for the dénouement.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry was the master-detective in his element.
-He pulled his cap furtively over one eye. Then he
-raised his hand and rapped three times upon the
-window-pane. There came a sharp silence in the
-room, and afterwards a sudden scuffle over chairs.
-Evidently Henry was to be rewarded. Somebody
-could be heard coming to the window. Henry gritted
-his teeth. He was going to see inside that room.
-He was going to get a hold on Coles. He became
-absolutely tense with expectation. Assuredly Coles
-would never dare to push him off the pipe. Coles
-was not prepared to commit a horrid murder. Also
-his rear was safe from attack. Coles could not kick
-him. The only possibility was that Coles might run
-out of the house and throw pebbles. He was going
-to risk this. He would have seen inside the room
-anyway.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>When at last the blind was slowly lifted, those
-within sustained a terrible shock. Henry had thrust
-his face against the window so that his nose was
-flatly upturned, hideous and blue, against the glass.
-The row of faces that confronted him, the faces of
-Coles’ cronies, all slowly backed terror-stricken before
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_119'>119</span>the alarming apparition, till only the face of Coles
-was left, livid with fury and flushed with spirits
-flowing from a teapot. He slowly pushed up the
-window, then his face came forward telescopically
-on the end of a long neck until his beak-like nose
-was almost touching Henry’s cheeks.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You cur,” said Coles, between his clenched teeth.
-“What—what on earth are you doing here?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry quailed. Coles was too terrible for words.
-Nevertheless he peered over the tops of his spectacles
-resolutely into the study, and at last, still trying to
-be brave, he spoke in a deep voice:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I wanted to see inside your study. Thank you
-very much, I’ve seen all I want to see.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles lifted his fist to strike, but realising the danger
-of a blow he suddenly altered his mind and adopted
-a novel form of revenge that had never come into
-Henry’s reckoning.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He called his friends forward.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You see this,” said he, “a kid here spying—the
-kid Hope! I want you to remember this.” He
-turned to Henry. “You know what happened to
-Peeping Tom, don’t you? He tried to spy and he
-was sent blind—blind, I tell you. We shall try
-the effect of that upon you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He slowly stretched out his hands till they reached
-Henry’s face, and Henry was powerless to resist.
-With considerable delight he slowly unhooked Henry’s
-glasses from his ears and withdrew them from Henry’s
-face. He held them in his fingers with an air of
-fastidious disgust, looking at them and at Henry,
-and in the end he whirled his arm like a lasso-king
-and let them go. They flew into the night, and he
-heard them break on the gravel path into a hundred
-pieces. Then he shook his fist in Henry’s face.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Now,” said he, “see whatever you like, and when
-you’re tired slide down—and look out for the bump
-at the bottom.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_120'>120</span>He withdrew his head with a wrathful jerk, pulled
-down the blind again, and after a moment Henry
-heard his voice coming from within again.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Now, gentlemen,” it was saying, “I think I’ll
-just go downstairs and meet him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a moment Henry hung impotently where he
-was, a veritable monkey on a stick. He looked
-downwards. He could see nothing. The night was
-dark, and without his glasses he could scarcely distinguish
-the fingers upon his hand. He felt for a
-grip. At last in utter misery and despair he began
-to slip awkwardly down the pipe, and even as he
-went he heard Coles come out of the house and shout
-to him:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You may as well hurry up. The longer you
-stay there the worse it will be for you when you get
-to the bottom.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry looked down again. He could still distinguish
-nothing. He could only feel his way. As his
-feet touched the ground Coles would leap upon him
-out of the night. He would never see him coming.
-He would be unable to protect himself in any way.
-Above all, he would have to stagger to bed afterwards
-without his glasses. He would not even be
-able to find the frames. Only the really short-sighted
-can understand what misery was his just
-then.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He went down stiffly, hand over hand, trying to
-keep his lips from trembling. At last he felt the
-gravel under his feet, released his hold of the drain-pipe
-and stood upright. From out the darkness
-Coles spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Now,” said he, “you can make ready for the
-biggest hiding you ever had.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry backed against the wall and tried to make
-out Coles’ expression by screwing up his eyes till
-only little bead points of watery blue were showing.
-It was no good. Coles was merely a vast blur
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_121'>121</span>blotting out all hope. He felt a large hand upon his
-collar.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Now,” said Coles.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And then, dramatically, there came from under
-the trees a sharp command.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Let him alone!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry shot to his full height, galvanised into
-hysterical delight. Glasses or no glasses, he knew
-that for the voice of Rouse.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He was saved.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles spun on his heel. Two forms were bearing
-down upon him out of the gloom, and he prepared
-for battle. He felt brave and bold, if a trifle uncertain
-upon his feet. He shot his cuffs and stretched
-out both hands ready to grasp these intruders in
-a bear-like hug. His face was flushed and excited,
-his temper was nearing boiling point. After a
-struggle he found his voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Who is that?” he demanded. “Who’s that?
-Come out and face me here! Come out from under
-those trees, you creepy, crawly spies. Come out
-into the open!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They came slowly towards him. As they drew
-near to Coles he recognised them suddenly, and his
-voice cracked in a scream of anger.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“W—what! <em>YOU!</em> Was it <em>you</em> sent this
-beastly little creature shinning up that drain-pipe?
-He’s spying for <em>you</em>, is he? Well, of all the
-rotten, low-down swine! D—d—d’you mean to
-say——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The only thing I mean to say,” said Rouse, “is
-that I perceive you to be tight.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles bounded forward.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His words were not coherent. He only babbled.
-And when he could babble no more he struck
-out.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“<em>That’s</em> not where I am,” said Rouse. “You
-want to aim <em>here</em>.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_122'>122</span>Coles turned dazedly, swinging both fists.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a while they watched him with keen interest.
-Finally, as he spun round for the fifth time, Terence
-reached out and pushed him over.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s the cold air doing it,” said Rouse, peering at
-him distastefully. “I should advise you to go in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Next moment Coles had scrambled to his feet
-again and was staring up at his window and shouting
-for assistance.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Hi! Hi! Come down here. There’s a gang of
-them and they’re setting about me!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry turned wretchedly to Rouse.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“My glasses,” said he. “Did you see them fall?
-D’you know where they are? I should very much
-like the frames. I’ll have to find the frames.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse made a few light passes over his hand, drew
-his cap from his head and held it over his outstretched
-hand. At last he slowly raised it by the tassel.
-The frames lay in his open palm.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There they are, sir,” said he. “The same that
-you saw this gentleman throw into the audience....
-Am I right, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He turned sharply. There had come a sudden
-clatter of feet upon the stairs of Morley’s and a handful
-of strangely excited young men were tumbling
-pell-mell out of the door. Nobody had noticed Coles.
-He appeared to have been merely waiting for aid.
-Yet at the sound of approaching friends he took
-courage again. He fixed Rouse with a watery eye,
-then he leaped viciously upon him from behind.
-His feet were intertwined with Rouse’s legs. There
-was a short sharp struggle. Next moment Rouse
-was free and had turned, judged his distance, and
-struck accurately and with full force. The blow
-took Coles on the cheek-bone and was altogether too
-much for him. He threw up his hands, spun sideways
-and fell on his back. And as he lay he moaned
-softly to himself:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_123'>123</span>“<em>Come on</em>, oh, come on, you chaps! They’re all
-setting about me&nbsp;... all of them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The chaps answered with a shout of allegiance and
-sprang upon his assailants. There were four of
-them, and the first ran into Terence’s straight left
-and recoiled with his hands to his face. The next
-seized Rouse in his arms and, loudly shouting, endeavoured
-to secure a ju-jitsu hold upon his neck.
-Rouse braced himself, wrenched away an arm and hit
-downwards with all his strength at the other’s chin.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The move was eminently successful, but it was too
-late. The last members of the party had come up,
-and one had sprung on to his back and was bearing
-him down. The other had almost got him by the
-ankles when Terence came down on top of him with
-the full weight of his body, and he met the gravel
-with his face.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Then, loud above the scuffling and the angry cries of
-those upon the ground, there sounded a deep-pitched
-angry bay. It was the sound of Henry in distress.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Oh! Oh! I can’t <em>see</em>! I can’t see a <em>thing</em>!
-Who shall I hit? Where are they? What shall I
-do? <em>I can’t</em> see.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, have a look at the ground then,” shouted
-an angry young man, and with a violent push from
-the rear sent him headlong on to his face, where he
-lay stiffly still and only bellowed the louder.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Who shall I hit, Terence, who shall I hit?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The end came as abruptly as the start. They were
-suddenly all upon their feet and staring at each other.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What on earth are you playing at?” demanded
-somebody. “What’s it all about anyway?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s about <em>them</em>,” cried Coles, walking forward
-like a somnambulist. “They’re spies.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He lifted a hand and pointed at them stiffly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse made a gesture of appeal.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“If you fellows aren’t as bad as he is, take him in.
-He doesn’t look at all nice.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_124'>124</span>He saw them looking at one another almost
-sheepishly, some even dazedly, then one of them
-heaved a sigh and reached out a courteous and helping
-hand towards Coles. The others gathered round.
-There was a slow and stately forward move....
-Up the steps they went with their sorry leader, and
-out of sight into the house. Thus Rouse and Terence
-were left alone, each with a friendly hand upon Henry’s
-shoulder, as out of the darkness there came a small
-and shadowy form, and the weary voice of Bobbie
-Carr was wafted towards them upon the breeze.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Can I do anything to help?” he was saying.
-“What is it? Can I do anything to help?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse beckoned to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes,” said he, “you can. You can take Brighteyes
-to bed. He can’t see very plainly where he’s
-going.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie came up to Henry and looked at him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What’s the matter, Hope?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s my glasses,” said Henry. “All I’ve got
-left is the frames.” He sighed lugubriously. “It
-doesn’t matter,” said he. “I’ve got a hold on Coles
-anyway, and it may be very useful.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was his farewell. Without another word he
-suffered himself to be led away into the house.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was after the two who still remained had
-wandered on, skirting the school in order to save
-Rouse from his friends, that they met Toby. He was
-standing outside Seymour’s, smoking a pipe and
-talking to the house master. He came up to them
-and strolled side by side along the roadway until at
-last Terence said:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It means rebellion, and if they want me to, I’m
-going to lead it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a while Toby spoke no word. Only the smoke
-curled quietly upwards from his pipe.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Eventually he answered:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes, of course. I don’t see how you can do
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_125'>125</span>anything else. There isn’t much doubt that by a
-step like this the Head has put himself outside the
-pale. The only thing is what line you ought to
-take.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Why, a rebellion,” said Terence again.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“If by a rebellion you mean making a cock-shy
-of the school, old son, I’m not sure that we shan’t be
-doing ourselves more harm than good. It doesn’t
-take much imagination to see what that will lead to.
-Sport—work—reputation—everything busted—and
-over the chaos of it all the villain sitting with a
-cheerful smile, whilst you take note what you’ve
-done for yourselves. We want to keep our dignity.
-We want to carry on so that any outsider who hears
-of this and can weigh both sides will have no doubt
-who was in the right. And, particularly, we want
-to fight as the Grey Man would have us fight.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The changed expression on Terence’s face showed
-that he considered himself rebuked by one of the
-few men from whom he could take a rebuke in kindly
-spirit.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What do you think we ought to do about it,
-then?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Listen,” said Toby, “and if an Old Boy may be
-allowed his say I will tell you.”</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>It was two minutes later when Rouse looked up
-with a start. Whilst he had been listening to that
-philosophical counsel Toby had shrewdly been
-guiding his footsteps towards the school. They
-had turned a corner, and now all three stopped
-short. They were on top of a vast, impatient
-throng.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Go to them,” said Toby. “They’ve had their
-night out and when they’ve had you a bit p’r’aps
-they’ll go to bed without smashing anything. And
-if I were you I should tell them what you’re going
-to do. Let them into the secret. They’ll feel more
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_126'>126</span>satisfied then.” He gave Rouse a final pat on the
-back, then slipped away.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a brief space Rouse stood stock-still. Then
-through a break in the dark veil of the skies the moon
-flashed her bull’s-eye upon him and he stood revealed—just
-as Terence had discovered him making his exit
-from the cupboard.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There came a loud, delighted bellow from the
-nearest group and it was too late for escape. Rouse
-darted frantically to a flank, but he was held by a
-high wall and he turned and waited for them helplessly.
-From every possible direction his beloved
-followers bore down. They closed in and would not
-be denied. There came a scuffle in the dark, then
-he was lifted up and at last he could be seen in his
-rightful place, perched upon the shoulders of those
-nearest to him and clutching a tuft of hair in each
-hand for support.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>A stately concourse formed up on either side and
-slowly surged forward, taking new shape as they
-ranged themselves formally outside the stained-glass
-windows and broke into song.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They had hoped that the Head would presently
-appear. No sound that he could even hear their
-chanting of allegiance was forthcoming.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Finally it occurred to them that he might not be
-there and the next best thing was clearly a grand
-procession round the school.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The bearers turned unsteadily about and moved
-away.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>As they went, to the crashing music of the Harley
-song, watching them go stood Terence, still where
-Rouse had left him, with a smile of satisfaction about
-his lips.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There also watched the new Headmaster, who,
-unknown to any, had been peering crossly at them
-with one straining eye through a chink in the heavy
-curtains.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_127'>127</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER XII<br /> <span class='large'>CIRCUMSTANCES HAVE ARISEN</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>Christopher Woolf Roe was painfully surprised.
-He had arrived at Harley by a train previously
-notified to his father in bold and legible handwriting
-and not a soul had met him. He had not exactly
-expected an ornamental awning over the station exit,
-but he had presumed that somebody of standing in
-the school would have been waiting upon the platform
-keenly peering into the carriages as the train came
-in; somebody who would escort him to the school
-and introduce him to its leading lights, who would
-converse with him amiably as they went along the
-highroad, congratulating him repeatedly upon his
-delightful father.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There had, as a matter of fact, been a suggestion
-made that he should be received by a comb-and-paper
-band comprised of school prefects who would
-march funereally in front of him all the way from
-the station to the school, but word from Terence
-Nicholson had gone forth that this would not be in
-keeping with school dignity.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Hence he had come unwelcomed and unsung.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Arrived at the school, he had sought out his father.
-His father had been out. This had put the finishing
-touch to his complete depression. So far, all he
-knew was that, according to his father’s letter,
-circumstances had arisen which made it advisable
-that he should come to Harley. Another letter to
-the new Head of Wilton had intimated, possibly in
-more detail, that he should do so as soon as possible,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_128'>128</span>and this had turned out to be in three days’ time.
-But as to the real why and wherefore, and as to
-what the circumstances were he was still completely
-in the dark.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He sought for aid.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The school porter fetched the bursar, who told him
-that he would be in Seymour’s house, and who coldly
-pointed out the way to him with a pencil. Here
-another porter had shown him to a vacant study.
-On the way there he had, of course, passed any
-number of boys. Not one solitary soul amongst
-them, from the oldest to the youngest, had paid the
-slightest attention to him. He might have been
-invisible.</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>Two hours later he had seen his father and he
-understood.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The secretary,” Dr Roe had told him, “is a
-boy called Smythe.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He sought Smythe out.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Smythe was sitting in his study hidden behind a
-book, and his first impression when, having said
-“Come in,” he peered over the top of his volume to
-see who came, was that a stray pig was nosing into
-the room, and he rose with a sweeping gesture intending
-to drive it out. But as seconds passed he was
-held spellbound. Behind the snout, which was all
-he had first seen, and to either side of it, appeared
-two little pig-like eyes. He also perceived two
-pouting lips. Finally, when the head came properly
-into view around the door, Smythe became alarmed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“<em>Come in!</em>” he commanded angrily. “Come in,
-man!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The visitor entered slowly, with short steps, and
-when he was approximately in the centre of the
-room he halted.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’m Roe,” he observed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Smythe withstood the shock with the greatest
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_129'>129</span>gallantry. All the same, he did not extend his hand
-in a warm welcome. He just looked.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I understand,” observed the other, “that I am
-to be captain of football here, and that <em>you</em> are
-secretary.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He had pointed at Smythe accusingly and now
-he beamed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Smythe hastened to correct him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“A few days ago I <em>was</em>,” said he; “but I have
-just completed my duties, and now I have resigned.
-So far as I know there is <em>no</em> footer secretary in this
-school at present.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No secretary! But why not?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Because,” said Smythe logically enough, “there
-is no football.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But surely——” said the other. “Why&nbsp;...
-I’m <em>captain</em> of football.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I believe you are,” responded Smythe; “but
-my last duty was to scratch the whole of our fixtures
-for the season.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Roe was visibly shaken.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Of course,” added Smythe presently, “it’s a
-rotten position for you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No, no,” replied the new boy. “<em>I</em> don’t mind
-a bit. We must arrange some more fixtures now
-that <em>I’ve</em> come.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a moment Smythe stared at him. Then he
-turned, reached for his book, sat down and commenced
-to read.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I must make some notices out,” said Roe.
-“You must introduce me to the team.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He waited hopefully for an answer. Smythe
-merely turned over a page.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Of course,” continued Roe, “when I first heard
-about this I was only told that circumstances had
-arisen which made it desirable that I should leave
-Wilton.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Smythe looked up.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_130'>130</span>“Well, I can tell you now,” said he, “that the
-circumstances which have arisen make it very
-desirable that you should go back to Wilton as
-speedily as you came.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You mean to say, then, that there isn’t going
-to be any football at all?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There will be house games only—under the
-control of the games master—a matter of arrangement
-between the captains of the houses. There
-will be no football which will require the services
-of a school captain—no school matches. And
-I have resigned.” He paused. “I commend that
-example to you,” he observed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Next moment he was deep in his book again.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Roe looked miserably round the study.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Why did he fetch me from Wilton then?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Goodness only knows! It may be that he
-wanted you to see the country.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But,” said Roe, “this is all rot. I’ve got
-definite instructions from my father. He told me
-distinctly that I——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You go back to him,” said Smythe, “and make
-sure that you heard him correctly. Tell him what
-you’ve found out. And if I were you I should ask
-him whether you can’t go back.” He moved across
-the room and opened the door. “This is the way
-out,” said he.</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>That evening Smythe recounted this incident
-to Rouse.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I also have seen the man,” was the answer.
-“I made a point of it. I went up to him and I
-said: ‘Bless me, I seem to know your face. Yet
-you haven’t been at this school so long, surely?’
-He said: ‘I came to-day. My name is Roe.’ I
-pounced upon him. ‘Roe!’ said I. ‘Go on! Not,’
-I said, ‘<em>young</em> Roe, the son of old Roe? Why,
-I know your father as well as anything. Your
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_131'>131</span>father and I are the best of friends. Many a time
-have I discussed your future with him in his private
-sanctum over a bowl of tea. “The boy,” we
-have always said, breaking a muffin between us—“the
-boy, now, what will he become?”’ He
-said: ‘I’ve become captain of football,’ but he
-didn’t seem very pleased about it. So I patted him
-kindly on the shoulder. ‘Ah,’ said I, ‘come now.
-Not captain of football—surely.... Why, this
-school doesn’t <em>play</em> football.’ ‘What does it play,
-then?’ said he. ‘Spillikins,’ said I. ‘I expect
-you’re captain of that.’”</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>In accordance with his instructions, Roe reported
-to his father next morning and explained things as
-well as he could.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The most decent fellow I’ve met so far,” said he,
-“is a chap called Coles. He’s in the First Fifteen,
-he tells me, and he does seem to have the best interests
-of the school at heart. He told me a good deal of
-what’s in the wind, too. The fellows were pretty
-near an open rebellion at one time, but it seems that
-Mr Nicholson, the games master, spoke to the chief
-boys in each house at a meeting, and he’s persuaded
-them that the reputation of the school comes first,
-and now it seems they’re going to try what they
-call passive resistance. Smythe, who you told me
-was secretary to the team, has resigned, and his last
-act was to scratch the school fixtures for the season.
-The only football they’re going to play is inter-house
-friendlies. The games master persuaded them that
-as long as they kept up practice for the younger
-chaps the school wouldn’t suffer so much. So the
-whole school are standing on their dignity, and Coles
-says that the next move’s with us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He stopped. So far he had spoken in a sing-song
-voice that was significant of blind obedience to his
-father; he seemed to have told the Head not so
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_132'>132</span>much what he as schoolboy thought, as just what
-he believed his father would most like to hear.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Dr Roe clasped his hands and leaned forward over
-the table.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Certainly the next move is with us. And for
-this reason. There can be no question of warfare
-between boys and their Headmaster. They must
-be made to yield to discipline. They may not like
-my views, but those views, right or wrong, whichever
-they be, will be forced upon them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His son ventured to speak again.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“This boy Coles is almost the only chap who has
-spoken to me decently, and he says that, although
-at the moment the school is solid for Rouse, he
-believes that in about a fortnight’s time they will
-begin to grow tired of being without school rugger
-and that their present enthusiasm will wane. He
-says that that will be my chance. If I can step into
-the breach <em>then</em> I shall probably get a few boys to
-join me in starting a First Fifteen again—just
-a few at first—but by degrees more and more
-will turn and side with me. He says that if I play
-my cards well we shall have a proper school team
-again by half-term, and that only Rouse and his
-closest friends will be missing from it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head fixed him with a penetrating glance.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That is this boy’s honest belief?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Roe nodded his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s mine too,” said the Head cleverly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There’s one other thing,” continued the son.
-“Smythe, as I tell you, has resigned. There’s no
-school secretary. I shall have to have one because
-I shan’t know the chaps. Coles pointed that out.
-He said I should need someone to tell me whom to
-give colours to and all that. He says that at present
-it might be unwise for <em>his</em> name to be mentioned, but
-that as soon as things have settled down a bit and
-the fellows have got used to the idea that I’ve come,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_133'>133</span>and that I mean to stop, they may decide to make
-the best of it, and then he——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head made a sudden noise of keen satisfaction.
-He nodded his head briskly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Quite,” said he, “quite. I take his point.
-You think now that he—he is already a member
-of the school team, you say?—he is a capable
-footballer?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Oh yes, he is one of the most senior players
-here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You think he would be willing to become the
-secretary?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The boy blinked his pig-like eyes and smiled.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It would make the fellow who has resigned look
-so silly, wouldn’t it, if he found we got another one
-in his place so easily? Smythe was really very
-impertinent to me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head pursed his lips.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I will see this boy,” he announced. “Ask him
-to come and speak to me to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Roe nodded. At last he leaned forward dutifully.
-He shifted awkwardly upon his seat.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ve talked it over with Coles&nbsp;... and we
-rather hope you might be able to move him to my
-house.... And if you can do it&nbsp;... as if it were
-compulsory&nbsp;... so that fellows wouldn’t know he’d
-asked for it&nbsp;... he thinks that then he and I might
-get a decent team together in Seymour’s.... He
-has some very good friends in that house&nbsp;... and if
-we could get up a little excitement by challenging
-Morley’s, who at present have the best Fifteen, to
-a friendly&nbsp;... and beat them&nbsp;... Coles thinks it
-might turn the tide in our favour.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head smiled shrewdly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was silence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“How did you find out all this?” said he. “How
-did you meet Coles?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Roe dipped into the recesses of his memory.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_134'>134</span>“Why, he came up to me&nbsp;... and held out his
-hand&nbsp;... and then he said: ‘Circumstances have
-arisen which make you very welcome. Come and
-have a chat in my study.’ That’s how it was.”</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>The following day Roe appeared in school with
-the colours tie of the Harley First Fifteen knotted
-around his neck, and the result was immediately
-evident. Rouse and Smythe, the only two in the
-school who were entitled to wear that tie without
-the formality of winning it back for the coming
-season, were forthwith to be noted wearing the neat
-black tie of Harley’s mourning.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_135'>135</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER XIII<br /> <span class='large'>SOMETHING UP HIS SLEEVE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>One week later that bubbling effervescence which
-had been the outward and visible sign of the school’s
-unrest had very largely subsided.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Harleyans were once more going in dignity about
-their ways.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At morning prayers those who knew best the
-temper of the school looked out over the sea of
-faces, all of which seemed calmly set as if in
-resignation.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was true that there had been a couple of friendly
-matches between houses, but real enthusiasm was
-lacking. There was over all that hard fact that
-however well a fellow played he could not win his
-colours. There were not going to be any colours.
-This hit the rising and ambitious youngsters badly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Roe himself had kept discreetly quiet.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head had made no further mention of the
-matter, except to cause it to be known that his own
-son was Harley’s official Rugger captain.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And through this time of fasting, watching the
-lean year that had been his dread as it came upon
-the school and gripped it, Rouse bore himself
-blithely, true to himself, his sorrow hidden under a
-mask of gaiety that only deceived the few.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>One day Bobbie Carr received a letter, and the
-next day he went forth into the open country and,
-striking the footpath that led from the school into
-the woods, branched away from it and came upon
-a stile. Upon this stile he settled himself to wait.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_136'>136</span>He had not to wait long, and this was fortunate,
-because he was continually looking about him in
-fear lest somebody should come upon him waiting
-there.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last, looking over the open fields, he saw a
-distant figure coming towards him along the trodden
-pathway, and he knew it at a glance. He jumped
-up and waved, saw the answering gesture and started
-forward; then suddenly remembered and stopped
-and looked round dubiously. He was best hidden
-from prying eyes in the corner where he had waited,
-and so he drew back under the trees and possessed
-himself in patience until at last the man had come
-and he could grip him by the hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Father,” said he.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The man drew him affectionately against the
-stile, and leaned there in real content for a while
-before he spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s a roundabout way from the station,” he
-said at last. “Still, I know the country. It’s a
-good meeting-place.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He paused. There was clearly something else
-upon his mind—something that had made him come;
-something that Bobbie had read between the lines
-of his letter. He asked at last quietly enough:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You’ve kept the secret, Bobbie? Nobody’s
-found out? Nobody knows?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For the fraction of a second Bobbie hesitated.
-Then he spared his father the truth that need not
-necessarily be told, and shook his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ve told no one, of course.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The man seemed honestly relieved. He began
-to ask questions about school and the new life; the
-conversation opened on to a wider field. Time passed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It must have been an hour later that his father
-at last held out both hands, said good-bye abruptly
-and turned away. Bobbie watched him as he went
-slowly back along the pathway, and for the first time
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_137'>137</span>since he had been at school he was conscious of a
-kind of home-sickness. His father was so evidently
-lonely.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He did not turn until the figure on the pathway
-had passed out of sight, and then he did so regretfully
-and started back to school. And as he went his
-father’s warning drummed in his head: “Just this
-once and then, I think, never again. But until it
-is over you must promise me that not even your
-best friend here shall know your secret. You can’t
-understand as I can what they would say of you here
-if they knew. And I may not be able to keep my
-right name out of the papers.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Those had been his father’s final words. And
-all the way back to the school he kept remembering
-them.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Outside Morley’s Coles met him. He was carrying
-a handful of belongings and he wore a cunning smile
-upon his countenance.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Carr,” said he, “I have something to say to
-you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes,” said Bobbie.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’m leaving Morley’s.” He paused. “It’s the
-Head,” he explained. “For some reason or other
-he wants me in Seymour’s. There’s no help for it.
-I’ll have to go. It’s an order.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He gazed into the distance. Bobbie’s heart beat
-quickly with delight. To lose Coles would be an unprecedented
-joy. It was a stroke of luck upon which
-he had never reckoned. He turned to Coles with
-shining eyes and seemed about to thank him cordially
-for going.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles looked down upon him with calculated
-craft.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Don’t be under any misapprehension,” said he.
-“I have explained to the Head exactly how things
-are—and you—are going too.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie gaped.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_138'>138</span>“What? <em>Explained to him?</em> What have you
-explained?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That I know your family, and that you are
-rather specially entrusted to my care. I have told
-him how anxious I am to have you under my wing,
-and so—he has at last consented to you coming
-too.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>After a minute’s utter silence he spoke again.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You don’t seem overjoyed?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Still Bobbie did not answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He was wondering how he would get on without
-Henry Hope at his side, and what Henry would say
-about him going without a word of protest.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Anyway,” said the persecutor, “don’t forget
-our bargain. If there should be any talk of you
-staying behind, if they should ask you, you’ll know
-what to say, won’t you?” He waited a moment,
-looking at Bobbie straightly. “Won’t you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes,” said Bobbie at last. “I suppose so.”</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>It was evening.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Over a study table Terence and Rouse faced one
-another. Rouse had his chin resting in one hand,
-and his expression was that of a young man wrestling
-with a mighty problem.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You see,” said he, “Seymour’s have challenged
-us to a friendly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Who really issued the challenge?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That,” admitted Rouse, “I don’t quite know.
-It appears to have originated from Mr Seymour
-himself, and to have been received by Mr Morley—probably
-in a parchment envelope handed up on
-a silver salver.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Never mind,” said Terence. “Let’s play them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Oh yes, we’ll play them. Only I’m trying to
-reason out what’s in the wind. You see, Roe is in
-Seymour’s.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“True. I’d forgotten that.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_139'>139</span>“And the chances are that if he wants to captain
-the side the other fellows in Seymour’s will have
-something to say about it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I suppose they want to play us because we’re the
-strongest house and they rather fancy their weight.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“One would imagine that was the idea. Only
-neither Betteridge nor Saville seems to know much
-about it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse suddenly leaned forward.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Nick,” said he, “there’s villainy afoot.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Villainy?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes. I don’t know what that means. It’s a
-phrase of Henry’s concoction. We might get hold
-of a cheap dictionary and get an interpretation of
-the words.... Anyway, that’s what he says—and
-it’s impossible to listen to Henry for long without
-coming to the conclusion that there’s something
-in what he says.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What is the villainy?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Henry is now out on the trail trying to find out.
-But his judgment arises from a variety of facts and
-certain suspicions.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He paused and for a while there was silence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“As a matter of fact,” said Terence, at last,
-“there’s something on your mind, old top, and you
-may as well tell me what it is.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse succumbed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He leaned forward, almost as if grateful for this
-touching invitation.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, it’s this. Supposing the chaps get tired
-of all this? Supposing an agitator or two start
-moving about amongst them, saying: ‘Hang it all,
-what does it matter to you or me <em>who</em> the captain is?
-Let’s get our footer’? Supposing the masters get
-on to them and say: ‘Your schooldays are the
-happiest time of your life and they will never come
-again. Why starve yourselves of all that makes
-them most worth while just because of a silly prejudice?’
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_140'>140</span>You see what I mean? Supposing they
-give in?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, supposing they do?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Nothing,” said Rouse, in a small voice; “only it
-would make me look rather a fool.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Also,” said Terence, “in the light of all they’ve
-said it would show that they hadn’t got much
-respect for the traditions of the school. You still
-don’t understand the temper of the school in the
-least or you wouldn’t talk like that. Why on earth
-<em>should</em> they give in?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Because,” said Rouse, “it’s my belief that there’s
-somebody at work trying to make them. Why,”
-he demanded, after a moment’s pause, “are the Head
-and his abominable son so suspiciously quiet?
-Nearly three weeks of term have gone. Why are
-they making no attempt to bring the chaps to heel
-as promised? Soon the headmasters of other schools
-and the parents of some of the fellows here will be
-writing to the Head to ask why we are not playing
-footer. I tell you they’re sitting quiet because
-they’re waiting for something to happen. I believe
-Henry’s right. There’s villainy afoot.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He glared at Terence challengingly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>In the following silence there came the sound of
-footsteps in the passage and both looked up. The
-footsteps were stopping at the study door. There
-came a knock.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Come in,” said Rouse.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They turned in their chairs to see who came.
-There was a second’s dramatic wait. Then the door
-moved open and the visitor came in. He looked at
-them over the tops of his spectacles and made slowly
-for the table, and reaching it, he stood there looking
-first at one and then at the other.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What is it, Henry?” asked Rouse.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s this,” said Henry. “All that I told you is
-true. This evening Coles is moving into Seymour’s.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_141'>141</span>He says that it’s an order from the Head.” He
-stopped and watched the effect of this news upon
-them. And then he said: “All Coles’ friends are
-in Seymour’s. Of course you know that.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Still they made no comment. They were only
-looking at each other significantly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry made ready to drop his bomb.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That’s enough,” said he. “It makes a lot of
-things clear to me. But it’s not all. I told you
-Coles had a hold over that kid Carr. Well, Carr’s
-going over to Seymour’s <em>with</em> him—and he’s very
-nearly blubbing about it. That’s all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse had struck the table with his fist. The mystery
-of the challenge was at last transparent to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But&nbsp;... Carr?” said Terence. “Why? Why
-Carr? Why’s <em>he</em> going?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Because,” said Henry, “Coles says that he was
-put in his care by Carr’s own people, and the Head
-believes him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, what’s <em>Coles</em> going for himself? What’s
-the idea? Why is it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry drew himself up. His eyes were blazing
-behind the round windows of his spectacles. He
-clenched his hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What’s he going for?” said he. “It’s as plain
-as a pikestaff. He’s going to join hands with the
-enemy. He knows that he hasn’t a chance here, in
-the very house where Rouse is loved most, and so
-he’s going. Coles has got something up his sleeve.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Henry,” said Terence, “you may be right. I
-believe you are. But there’s one thing you don’t
-know.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What?” said Henry, as if unable to believe the
-accusation.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“This. If Coles is reckoning on playing upon the
-feelings of the chaps who want their Rugger, then
-Smythe has got something up <em>his</em> sleeve that’ll knock
-Coles silly.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_142'>142</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER XIV<br /> <span class='large'>THE FIRST ROUND</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>Christopher Woolf Roe was in a painful predicament.
-Behind him, urging him on, he felt the hot
-breath of impending paternal wrath, and knew that
-if he failed in this, the most important duty his
-father had ever set him, he would be disgraced; as
-likely as not he would at no far distant date be cut
-off with the proverbial shilling. Already his father
-was growing impatient. The notion that he was
-having to await the school’s pleasure before securing
-their obedience was to him exceedingly displeasing.
-The exemplary patience he had displayed when
-first the helpfulness of Coles had come before his
-notice had not proved of an abiding nature. Moreover,
-the gradual attention of outsiders was being
-attracted to the school. The scratching of their
-fixtures for the season had been commented upon,
-and he felt that unless evidence of the successful
-nature of his handling of this situation were forthcoming
-very shortly his dignity would be seriously
-endangered. Of all this his unhappy son was fully
-aware, yet he could see before him only the adamant
-forbearance of a school unanimously resolute, and
-the keen dislike in which he was personally held was
-not at all encouraging.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Altogether things were rotten.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles, however, had certainly been exceptionally
-decent, and his charm of manner had weighed a good
-deal with the Head too. There was comfort to be
-gained from the certainty that Coles knew what
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_143'>143</span>was what. Coles was a very good fellow. He was
-very grateful to Coles.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Leave it to me,” Coles had said, and he had left
-it to Coles willingly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Standing in the centre of a small group Coles was
-striving one afternoon to justify this touching confidence.
-He had spoken at length. Ultimately he
-looked round the solemn countenances of those
-about him to judge the effect of his words. Except
-upon the faces of his two cronies, who, since they
-were not prominent footballers, were not of great
-account, he could not see one hopeful sign. For the
-rest there was a stiffly decorous silence. At last
-Saville, who, as one of the only two old colours in
-Seymour’s, had been leaning gracefully against a
-wall, raised his voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The point at issue is this,” he announced. “You
-can’t get away from the fact that the Head has insulted
-our house by thrusting his son on us like this,
-and we’re very sore. So far we haven’t even had
-the face to turn out a house team at footer simply
-because we were afraid that Roe might want
-to play. Now some misguided idiot—apparently
-Seymour himself—has gone to Morley in secret and
-arranged a challenge which Morley’s have accepted,
-and after that it’s clearly up to us to play. But we
-don’t want Roe on the side, and we’re not going to
-have him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Oh, come,” said Coles, plausibly enough. “Be
-broad-minded about it. You don’t suppose Roe’s
-very happy about all this, do you? It isn’t a very
-jolly position for a fellow. I’ve had a few chats with
-him, and I can tell you he’d far rather not be here.
-What’s the use of denying ourselves even house
-Rugger just to spite him out of a game? What’s
-wrong with playing for the house? Most of us are
-nearly eating our hearts out for a game.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You haven’t got much to grumble about,” said
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_144'>144</span>Saville pertly. “You had two games for Morley’s
-before you came here. And now that I come to
-think of it, why <em>did</em> you come here? Can you tell
-us that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ve never been able to find out. But it’s my
-personal belief that it was just an idea of the Head’s
-to break up what he thought was Rouse’s clique.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Why didn’t he move Nick, then?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles was unable to reply. He made a little
-further play with his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ll tell you why it was,” said Saville. “It was
-because, having shoved his confounded son in here,
-he wanted to build up a strong house side for him to
-have at his back. And he pounced on you for a
-start because he thought you might be amenable to
-reason. A little later on he’ll move someone else in
-here, so that eventually Rouse will be left with a dud
-house team, and we in Seymour’s shall have the
-nucleus of a school Fifteen. He thinks we shall be
-as pleased as Punch about that and keep on clapping
-his son on the back every time we see him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles shook his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I don’t think that for a minute.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, I do,” opined Betteridge, from a modest
-position on the outskirts of the group.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles turned and looked at him as if pointing him
-out with his beak-like nose.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“And,” added the interrupter, “so do a good
-many other people.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You’re all making a great mistake,” said Coles.
-“In years to come you’ll be sorry you mucked your
-Rugger like this. Personally I was always in favour
-of Rouse as skipper, and I think that to have brought
-his own son here was a beastly thing for the Head to
-have done, and so does Roe himself. But that’s no
-reason for cutting off your own nose to spite your
-face. It’s agreed that we don’t lose any dignity by
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_145'>145</span>indulging in house friendlies, and if we’re going to
-play a match let’s get out our best side. I believe
-Roe is a very hot forward, and even if we won’t let
-him be captain that’s no reason why the poor blighter
-shouldn’t have a game. He needn’t be skipper.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Ah!” said Saville, “that’s just it. He’ll want
-to be.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles made a sly gesture with his hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You leave it to me. I’ll have a word with him.
-He’ll quite see your point of view. We’ll fix that
-up all right.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“We should like him to come on the field walking
-a modest distance behind everybody else,” said
-Betteridge. “That’s what we should like. You
-might tell him that, will you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You leave that to me,” repeated Coles magnanimously.
-“He’ll quite see the sense of not forcing
-himself to the front. And I do think it’d be a pretty
-rotten exhibition of sportsmanship to tell him he
-can’t even play on the side at all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He paused and looked round them blandly. Nobody
-responded to his glances; every head had
-turned instead towards the big clock over the school
-which was striking the hour, and next moment the
-group had swiftly dispersed and Coles was left alone
-looking after them. He was himself in no special
-hurry. As a matter of fact, he had an appointment
-with the house master.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last he slowly pursed his lips and nodded his
-head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They would let Roe play. Half the battle had
-been won.</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>It was a day to be appreciated, and in token of the
-fact the whole of Morley’s were ranged along one
-touch-line and the greater part of Seymour’s along
-the other, whilst sprinkled here and there in the
-crowd were representatives of lesser houses expressing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_146'>146</span>their opinion on this game in the detached manner
-of disinterested onlookers. There were also a couple
-of spare balls being kicked about, and even those
-who had never the patience to watch houses other
-than their own playing had come running to the scene
-at the prospect of getting in a few kicks themselves.
-After all, in these days good Rugger was rare. Except
-where Morley’s were concerned, there had not
-been any great zest in the house friendlies played to
-date. It had been too evident that these games
-would not lead to anything.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>But a trial of strength between Morley’s and
-Seymour’s, with the latter strengthened by the inclusion
-of Coles at the expense of the former, gave
-promise of being a little out of the ordinary. Besides
-Rouse was playing on one side, and it was understood
-that Roe might be discovered upon the other.
-There was a chance of the two meeting.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Perhaps,” one young man said hopefully, “perhaps
-Rouse’ll scrag him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There came at last a significant stir along the
-crowded ropes. The reason was apparent. Morley’s
-were coming out.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>From the stone steps beside the cloisters from
-which the chosen of Seymour’s would presently
-appear Coles had stood watching, and now he turned
-suddenly to those below and nodded to them.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Morley’s have gone out,” said he. “Are we all
-here?” There was no immediate answer. He
-glanced at the young man beside him. “Come
-along, Roe. We’ll move off.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The words were scarcely above a whisper, but Roe
-turned obediently and proceeded into the open
-beside him, seemingly proud and happily at his ease.
-Out on to the gravel path he went, and then quite
-suddenly he was struck by a curious silence behind
-him, and he turned and cautiously looked over his
-shoulder. Then he understood. The team were
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_147'>147</span>huddled in a group at the bottom of the steps, staring
-after him dully, very still and very haughty, and
-not one fellow amongst them all had so much as
-moved his foot.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He reached out nervously and plucked at Coles’
-arm.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I say&nbsp;... stop&nbsp;... I say&nbsp;... they aren’t
-coming! They haven’t moved!” The peculiar
-stupidity of his position struck him then with force.
-“We’re <em>all alone</em>.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles stopped and spun on his heel. Next moment
-he had darted back down the steps, but Roe stood
-like a derelict pig where he had been left, frozen with
-astonishment, looking first towards the field where
-Morley’s were waiting and then towards the team
-who wouldn’t come. From every possible direction
-boys were staring at him rudely. He knew the
-horrifying shame of some scene-shifter slow in removing
-himself from the stage and discovered in a
-ridiculous attitude at the lifting of the curtain.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles had darted into that flock like an angry
-shepherd, but they stubbornly refused to scatter.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What is it? Why don’t you come? Morley’s
-are waiting.” He made an impatient gesture.
-“What’s the trouble?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Betteridge replied. He was standing with folded
-arms, Napoleonically, outside the changing-room,
-and he spoke emphatically:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s only a matter of form. But isn’t it usual for
-the captain of the side to go out first?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Great Scott, what does it matter? Isn’t the
-game the thing that counts most? As a matter of
-fact, you may not know it, but the Head’s outside.
-He’s been standing over there in the corner for the
-last ten minutes and he’s waiting to see us come out.
-The reason Roe went out with me was because if he
-didn’t the Head would be as wild as anything. He’s
-only walking with me so as to satisfy the Head.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_148'>148</span>He doesn’t care twopence whether he’s captain of
-the side or not.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“And what’s the idea of <em>you</em> going in front?”
-asked Betteridge, and his tone was very cold.
-“Until to-day the supposition has been that Saville
-was captain of footer in Seymour’s.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was a moment’s ominous silence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles stared at him fixedly. At last he answered:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I see what’s in the wind. A little petty jealousy.
-As a matter of fact, I believe I’m the senior man in
-the First Fifteen here, and I saw no particular need
-to wait for anyone else to go first. All I wanted
-was to prevent giving the idea that Roe was shoving
-himself to the front.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The understanding was,” said Betteridge, “that
-Roe was going to walk behind. As for you being
-senior in the First Fifteen, there isn’t any First
-Fifteen! All we’re concerned with here is the house
-side, and Saville happens to be the elected captain.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It doesn’t matter a cuss to me,” snapped Coles,
-“who walks on first. It isn’t a confounded Court
-procession, is it? My idea is to get a game of
-Rugger, and you raving idiots are going the right
-way to get house Rugger stopped altogether by the
-Head. You can bet your life that if the Head sees
-Roe walking on all alone and behind everybody else,
-when he’s been appointed captain, he’ll have something
-rather interesting to say about it.” He made
-a sudden angry gesture. His hot temper was rising
-swiftly to the surface. “Personally, I’m going out
-to the field how I like and I’m not going to wait
-for anyone else to tell me when I’m to go, and if by
-the time I get to the half-way line you chaps are
-still crouching down here, I’ll tell Rouse the match
-is off.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I think he’ll understand that as soon as he sees
-you walking arm-in-arm with Roe,” said Saville,
-speaking for the first time. “And I rather imagine
-you’ll be chased off the field. It may turn out that
-these seats will be the best after all for watching
-that part of the show.”</p>
-
-<div class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/i_148fp.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic001'>
-<p>“‘THE MATCH IS SCRATCHED, SIR,’ SAID HE.”</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_149'>149</span>“What the deuce do you mean?” cried Coles,
-in a sudden scream of wrath. “Do you mean to
-say I’m trying to curry favour with the Head?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I mean to say,” said Saville, “that it was your
-idea that Roe should be allowed to play, and we
-agreed on the distinct understanding that he wasn’t
-going to be captain. Now it’s your idea that he
-should walk in front, and I wonder you don’t
-want to go and sprinkle roses in front of him as he
-goes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s for the sake of the game, you utter ass!
-What do I care who goes in front! I want my
-Rugger.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Then you can jolly well have it,” snapped
-Betteridge. “And you can play it in your own
-backyard.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles turned towards him, and for one moment he
-looked as if he could have jumped down and attacked
-him with his fists. But there came instead a new
-diversion. Across the steps there swept the shadow
-of the Head. Then he stood magisterially before
-them, and finally he singled out Coles.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What is the delay?” said he. “What are you
-waiting for?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Before Coles could answer Saville had stepped
-forward.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The match is scratched, sir,” said he. “I am
-just going out to apologise to Rouse for keeping them
-waiting so long.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He ran up the steps and went out into the open.
-The Head turned and stared after him indignantly.
-His own intended words had been taken out of his
-mouth. He had meant only to ascertain without
-doubt that this scene was on account of his son
-before himself stepping in and forbidding play. He
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_150'>150</span>had been forestalled. Saville was trotting towards
-the touch-line. The ranks of expectant onlookers
-opened and let him through. The Head saw Rouse
-come to meet him, saw him lift his hand and rest it
-upon Saville’s shoulder, watched them as they spoke.
-Then Rouse had turned to those nearest to him and
-explained. The air became very still. Saville
-had been so clearly the forerunner of sensation.
-Heads were turned towards the unhappy Roe still
-standing in splendid isolation on the gravel path,
-then back to Saville. Finally all eyes settled upon
-Rouse. He was collecting his team regretfully and
-there was something in his manner that showed how
-sorry he was that this had happened. Then Morley’s
-were walking off the field.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>All this the Head watched with set eyes, and at
-last he turned again to that sullen group at the
-bottom of the steps, regarded them for a moment,
-then snapped out his dictum:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Find Mr Nicholson for me, one of you. Tell
-him that I wish to speak to him in my study at
-once.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And all the while Coles stood beside the Headmaster,
-staring dully into the distance. For this
-was the first round and he had lost.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was Betteridge who found Toby and told him,
-and with just a nod of the head Harley’s games
-master went sorrowfully along the pathway toward
-the Head’s room and disappeared through the old
-oak door, whilst the crowd who had been expecting
-a dashing game of Rugby football turned almost
-disconsolately to watch him go. The next five
-minutes were full of the calm that precedes the
-outburst of a storm. No one so much as kicked a
-football into the air. They could only wait now
-for the worst, knowing that somehow or other the
-Head was going to hit back.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Those dull five minutes were barely passed before
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_151'>151</span>Toby came into sight again, walking just as solemnly
-as before. Saville was moving his way and Toby
-stopped him. His voice was very tense.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The Head has just told me that after to-day he
-forbids house friendlies, or any football of any kind,
-until the captain he selected is recognised by the
-school. The fellows have chosen a hunger strike and
-so he intends that it shall be a proper one. He’s
-hit back with your own weapon.” He paused and
-looked at Saville earnestly. “It’s going to be a
-lean year in earnest now. And I only wish I could
-see where it’s going to end.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_152'>152</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER XV<br /> <span class='large'>THE SAFETY VALVE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>There is splendour in storm and flood and tempest,
-and no man regrets that now and again in life
-thunder and lightning spoil some chosen holiday.
-But those long grey days that come in stretches and
-blot the calendar for weeks on end with the dreary
-misery of heartless and unbroken skies are only
-mean and uninspiring, and they have no single use.
-They are discontented days and they bring with them
-discontent.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The first thunder-burst of a revolution had come to
-Harley as a vast excitement, and those who had no
-real part to play in it had stood at their windows
-watching the threatening majesty of its power unfold.
-But days had passed, and with them had
-departed much of a schoolboy’s first intense delight
-in bold rebellion, so that when the time of cheering
-and singing had gone, and only grey days empty
-and wearisome remained, a sulky discontent slowly
-wrapped Harley in its mantle. All days were grey
-days. There had been no school Rugger and each
-week was devoid of interest. Saturdays were not
-holidays but hollow days. The only interest that
-had helped to keep Harleyans awake out of school
-hours had been house friendlies. Now these had
-gone from their ken. The Head had hit straight
-and hard.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Directly Coles heard the news he smiled again,
-for he knew that this blow would provide a first step
-towards the school’s collapse. For a minute their
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_153'>153</span>pride would steady them. Members of the Fifteen
-who were suffering most would set the example, but
-by degrees fellows would be found in favour of
-giving in. The call of Rugger in their blood would
-be too strong. He and his friends would move
-quietly amongst these wobblers and encourage them
-in their notions. In this way a reactionary party
-would begin to grow, snowball fashion, each newcomer
-persuading some crony of his own to think
-with him. Then would come Coles’ chance.
-Fellows would look round for a leader, some bright
-spirit who could show them a way out of their
-dilemma that would be in keeping with their dignity.
-That bright spark would be forthcoming without
-delay. Coles would be the man of the hour. He
-was the best drop-kick in the school. He was an
-old colour. He would be their philosopher.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Let the Head have his way to this extent,” he
-would say. “Let Roe be the official captain. It
-will be too late to print cards with his name on
-this season, and many outside the school will never
-know. And I will be secretary. I will guide his
-hand. I will choose the teams. I will award the
-colours. We will end the term gloriously. The
-Head will think he has won, and he will be affable
-and amenable to reason, but in reality we shall
-be laughing up our sleeves, for the captain of footer
-will have to do just what his secretary tells him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles was very cautious. He did not allow the
-fact that time for these plans to mature was short to<a id='t153'></a>
-interfere with him. It was not yet half-term and
-he knew that the school’s collapse once started would
-come suddenly. When it came he would be ready.
-But he must not arouse suspicion by attempting to
-hurry things on their way. He watched from afar,
-and he kept Roe quiet. Only his friends were
-subtly busying themselves with intrigue. And
-whilst Coles watched and waited, that terrible
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_154'>154</span>listlessness that is the forerunner of a dry-rot was
-spreading over Harley. Only Morley’s kept up
-their heads. In Mainwright’s Smythe tried to lead
-his men in the proud path, but it was too much for
-one man. Presently, to stand about at corners and
-kick one’s heels became a habit. Boredom became
-a plague and the infection spread.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Carr felt it more, perhaps, than any other boy
-in Seymour’s because he was constantly in Coles’
-society and was borne down by the shadow of it.
-Football would have been his one great relaxation.
-Rugger would have helped him to throw off the yoke.
-It would have brought him more into touch with
-fellows like Rouse and Terence Nicholson, whose
-very presence filled a room with optimism.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry Hope did not desert him, but he clearly
-considered him a perplexing and unsatisfactory
-young man, and he seemed to regret his silence over
-the thing that mattered most; nevertheless, he persevered
-daily. The fact that he had at least some
-kind of hold over Coles, if he could only get the
-opportunity to use it, was, moreover, a considerable
-comfort to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>These grey days had their effect too upon Saville,
-and on one of them he wandered wretchedly into
-Rouse’s study and stood like a man with a hump
-on his back before the trio whom he found there.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Don’t stand there with that weight on your
-shoulders,” said Rouse. “Take it off and put it
-down in a corner.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Saville straightened his back bravely.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s the hump,” said he. “It’s enough to give
-anyone the hump. Things are rotten bad.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He paused as if to let this information sink in.
-The others did not deny it.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Saville sighed. “It’s not so bad for me, or chaps
-like me. What is so frightful is having to stand by
-and watch this dry-rot setting in amongst all the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_155'>155</span>middle school chaps. It’s like watching a lot of
-strikers being starved into submission.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse glanced at him significantly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You think they’ll give in?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The other hesitated. “No. At the moment I
-can’t think of any particular fellow who’s specially
-likely to give in, and of course it’s no use just one
-or two giving in, anyway. But you see what I
-mean. At this very moment we’re losing. We
-asked for this fight and it’s going against us. We’re
-getting more than we’re giving. And that weighs
-on the chaps’ minds. They’re just crazy to hit
-back. It was different before. House friendlies
-were a sort of safety valve. Fellows who were
-longing for a school match could at least put their
-hearts and souls into a house game. You saw how
-they turned out in the hope of seeing Seymour’s play
-Morley’s. It was pretty nearly pathetic. And in
-a sense I feel that mine is the responsibility. It was
-because Betteridge and I wouldn’t play under that
-yahoo’s captaincy that house Rugger was stopped.
-And I can tell you I’m precious sorry about it all.
-We’re being absolutely sat on, and the chaps can
-see it. Isn’t there any way at all of getting a bit
-of our own back? Isn’t there anything we can do?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse made no answer. He had been listening
-to Saville attentively, and once he had nodded his
-head in total agreement. Otherwise he had made
-no move. Now he turned to the two young men
-who were sitting with him, one upon the table and
-one upon the window-sill, and looked at them
-inquiringly. Saville was at a loss. He stared first
-at Smythe and then at Terence Nicholson, and
-finally at Rouse. On the face of each he perceived
-the same significant expression.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You may think I’m mad,” said he resentfully,
-“but it’s perfectly true all the same.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I know it is, old horse,” said Rouse.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_156'>156</span>“Then, dash it all,” repeated Saville, “isn’t
-there anything we can do?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Still Rouse made no move. He just looked at
-Saville steadily.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There is,” said he. “And Smythe has done it.
-Take a seat!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Where?” demanded Saville, looking mournfully
-round the study.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Sit on that box. There’s something we want
-you to know. The safety valve of which you spoke
-has, as you say, gone bust. Let there be no panic.
-Smythe has another up his sleeve. As soon as there
-are sufficient pennies in the hat he will produce it.”
-He paused. “We told Smythe to scratch our
-fixtures for the season. He obeyed except in one
-respect. He did not scratch the Rainhurst match.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The effect of these words was remarkable.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Saville rose from his box in the stiff, unnatural
-manner of a man under the influence of hypnotism.
-Then he lifted his hand and pointed at Smythe
-with an extended forefinger:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You didn’t?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Saville sat back, and for a little while he leaned
-against the wall with a distant smile, seeming to be
-recalling some memory of the long ago. At last
-his lips parted and he spoke in a half whisper:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The Rainhurst match!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He leaned forward. The other three were looking
-at him in appreciation.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Smythe began to explain. “I looked ahead
-and I saw what things would be like if the worst
-came true. My idea was that if, in the end, it had
-to be done, we could scratch that match last of all,
-but I decided to hang on to the fixture. I said
-nothing to anyone until a fortnight or so ago, when
-the Rainhurst secretary wrote and said that he’d
-heard we’d been scratching a lot of matches, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_157'>157</span>did our fixture with them still stand. Then I
-consulted Nicholson. And he wanted to ask Rouse.
-So we all three discussed it and I wrote back.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“And what did you say?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I said,” admitted Smythe, “that we should be
-there.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The silence was acute. At last Rouse broke it.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“We realised what you are realising now, old
-sportsman—the danger of a rot and the value of a
-safety valve. You ask what we can do to hit back.
-Well, we voluntarily scratched our fixture list. The
-Head has gone one better and forbidden house games.
-We shall go one better still. Our defiant answer
-will be the playing of the match of the season. The
-Rainhurst match will come off.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“How can we do it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s not very difficult,” said Terence. “Rainhurst
-is within cycling distance. There is also quite
-a good service of trains. On the afternoon of the
-second Saturday in the second half of term the First
-Fifteen will simply go to Rainhurst by various secret
-ways and meet there. The Rainhurst team will
-be on the field and the game will be played. Then
-we shall all find separate ways home. The Head
-will probably never know. Who’s going to miss
-us?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But how about the Rainhurst Head? He’s
-bound to know what’s the matter here. Won’t
-he smell a rat?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Not,” said Smythe, “unless Roe is on the field,
-and then we should all smell one. And we can do
-that without going to Rainhurst.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Saville considered the matter from every side.
-At last he looked up again.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What I mean is, he must know that we’ve
-scratched all our matches. Won’t he wonder a bit?
-Supposing he writes to the Head and mentions it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Why should he? When their secretary wrote
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_158'>158</span>to me the other week he just said he’d heard that
-we’d scratched some of our matches. Was the
-Rainhurst match to stand good? He didn’t say
-anything about the Head asking.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>So at last Saville emitted a hoarse chuckle of
-delight: “Glory be! What a terrific rag! But
-it can be improved on. Why not form up in a body
-outside the school and march there?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“So soon as there’s any procession,” put in Rouse,
-“I always cease to take any interest in things.
-Nothing causes me more suffering than to be called
-upon to process.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Besides,” said Terence, “that would only be
-asking for trouble. Someone would be expelled.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Also it is too far,” observed Smythe. “The
-idea is to get there in a fit state to play football.
-We don’t want to reach Rainhurst on our hands and
-knees.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It had never occurred to me that this was going
-to be possible,” said Saville. “In my wildest dreams
-I never imagined anything like this. Have you chaps
-been keeping this to yourselves all this time?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“A short while ago,” said Rouse, “I was beginning
-to brood, and so they told me. Now it’s you who
-are beginning to brood, so we’ve told you. We’ve
-been keeping it as a kind of tonic for those who get
-downhearted. The fewer people who know, the
-safer the secret.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Only,” said Terence, “it’s getting near the time
-now when we ought to tell some of the chaps. There
-ought not to be any harm now in letting the news
-filter through to some of the young ’uns. If they’re
-getting restless it’s just the kind of thing to steady
-them and keep them solid.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’ll be our saving,” said Saville. “If this gets
-known, the Head’s idea of wearing them down hasn’t
-got an earthly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Smythe leaned forward.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_159'>159</span>“There is one other point. We’ve got to consider
-what the Head will do if he finds out, and I think
-we can take it he will. The best part of the school
-will go to Rainhurst to see the match and that will
-give the show away.... Then what will he do?
-Whom will he drop on?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Me,” said Rouse, in a meek voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Precisely. It <em>will</em> be you, and we’ve got to
-guard against that. We must stand together. If
-he blames you, every man jack must step forward
-and take his share of the blame. I shall say that
-the idea was mine. Terence will declare that he
-made the plans, so on and thusly. We shall all
-agree that the only part you took in the affair was to
-captain the side. And if he tries to expel you——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“We’ll cut his throat,” said Saville.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Then he rose to his feet and stretched himself.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I feel a different man. I should very much like
-to burst into song. Tell me, is there any objection
-to my repeating this to anyone else?—Betteridge,
-for example? I should absolutely love to. There’s
-a touch of the dramatic about it, and I should just
-enjoy laying myself out to break this news to him
-in my best style. He’s decidedly broody too, if
-that’s the chief qualification for admission to the
-secret circle.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes, I don’t see why you shouldn’t tell
-Betteridge,” said Rouse, and hesitated. “But I
-shouldn’t tell anyone else in Seymour’s just for the
-moment.” He looked at Saville shrewdly, and
-Saville caught his meaning and nodded his head.
-Then Rouse rose and stood dreamily with one hand
-extended as if to indicate the beauty of the distant
-landscape.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I seem to see a certain Saturday afternoon.
-There will be an unwonted calm about the old
-school. The Head—God bless him!—will be sleeping
-by the fire. His carpet slippers will be dangling
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_160'>160</span>from his toes. His waistcoat will be comfortably
-loosened.... Suddenly he will wake with a start
-and he will be struck by the eerie stillness everywhere
-about him. He will rise and look out of the window.
-At first he will see nothing. He will climb to a
-window on the top floor, and then with a kind of
-telescopic eye he will see everything at once. He will
-look along every road that leads towards Rainhurst
-and he will see several small clouds of dust. Dimly
-he will make out the figures of all kinds and conditions
-of Harley fellows footing it along at a good pace,
-some even riding bicycles or getting lifts in carts.
-He will see the railway station crowded with the
-chaps who can afford to buy railway tickets. He
-will see trains on the move with our chaps leaning
-out and waving coloured handkerchiefs at him. It
-will be like a Derby day. At last he will send for
-the bursar. ‘Look here,’ he will say, ‘What is
-all that commotion? What’s on?’ The bursar
-will look at him wisely. ‘Didn’t you know?’ he’ll
-say. ‘There’s a very big match on to-day. The
-school are playing Rainhurst.’ The only thing I
-regret,” he added, “is that by going to Rainhurst
-to play I shall not be able to be present in the Head’s
-room at that moment.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Saville jumped suddenly forward and flung out
-his hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Look!... Betteridge! He’s walking by the
-window. I must go and——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He never finished. He just made a delighted
-gesture of farewell, and was gone.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last Rouse turned again to his companions.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The safety valve is open,” said he. “By to-morrow
-the welcome whisper should be passing from
-lip to lip.”</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>A careful onlooker casting back his mind in after
-years to the ten days that intervened between the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_161'>161</span>greatest depth of the school’s dejection and its complete
-recovery has said that the countenance of the
-average Harleyan of that day was to him the face of
-a good barometer showing a steady rise from storm
-to set-fair by regular upward moves from day to
-day.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>From the moment when Rouse, by breaking the
-news to Saville, had, as it were, thrown that message
-like a pebble into the pool of Harley’s dejection, the
-rippling circles of water that showed just where it
-had sunk spread with almost mathematical precision
-until the outermost circle had reached the outermost
-boys in the school. The countenance of the school
-was, therefore, more than a barometer. It was a
-graph, showing exactly how far the whisper reached
-each day.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The manner in which the quickly passing word
-somehow avoided masters was enigmatical. It may
-be that some few of them knew without seeming to
-know. If so, there was not one enemy amongst
-them. For all the groups of boys that the Head
-might have seen any day standing about school deep
-in some earnest discussion, their eyes newly bright,
-all symptoms of their depression vanished, he never
-guessed the truth, so that each little band of friends
-were able to make their own arrangements for the
-journey to Rainhurst on that great day that was
-surely coming without one single obstructing order
-from the Head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Directly the school had reassembled after half-term
-Rouse sent for Henry Hope.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Henry,” said he to Terence, “can always indicate
-to a man the temper of the school in a few well-chosen
-words. Henry knows everybody. In short,
-what Henry thinks to-day Harley will think to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry appeared before him without delay, and
-was interrogated.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_162'>162</span>“As far as I know,” said he, “there’s nobody now
-who hasn’t heard.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Has there been upraised,” demanded Rouse,
-“one single dissentient voice?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There has not,” responded Henry; “except in
-places where it doesn’t matter.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse nodded his head thoughtfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“As far as you know, after moving about amongst
-all classes, you can safely say that the plan has the
-whole-hearted support of the school? Anyone who
-split now would most likely be lynched?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Why, sure,” said Henry.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There is one other point. Do you think that
-amongst the rank and file who had been hit hardest
-by the great staleness of life up to half-term there is
-a general convalescence? Has the fever passed?
-In other words, are those sad eyes of which you
-spoke to me a while back now shining with the light
-of a great enthusiasm?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Everybody seems frightfully bucked.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse nodded once again, and this time with an
-air of finality.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Thank you very much for the very thorough
-manner in which you have carried out your investigations,
-Detective Hope,” said he. “You
-have been of the utmost service to Harley. It is
-only by keeping one’s finger continuously upon
-the pulse of the school that one can really hope
-to save them from their melancholia.” He turned.
-“That being so, Nick,” he observed, “we will
-go visit Smythe and he can commence operations
-forthwith.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was late that evening that Smythe, on his round
-of selected studies, reached the little room that Coles
-called his own. Coles did not seem surprised to see
-him. He rose hospitably and produced a chair from
-a dark corner, turned to the fire and poked at it
-lustily.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_163'>163</span>Smythe, however, proceeded to the business of the
-day without hesitation.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You’ve heard about the scheme that I’ve come
-about already, of course. All I’m doing now is
-interviewing the team that Rouse has picked. It’s
-a novel way of acting secretary. I’ll just show you
-this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He produced from his pocket a piece of paper. It
-bore the names of fifteen Harleyans, who had been
-selected to play in the great match of the year, and
-the name of Coles was included. Smythe drew his
-attention to the fact.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I just want to know,” said he, “that you’re
-quite willing to turn out, and I want your word of
-honour that in the event of there being a big row
-about this when it’s found out you’ll stand with the
-team and take a fair share of any blame that may be
-going. I ask this because the probability is that the
-Head may try to drop on Rouse and make him the
-scapegoat. I also want your word of honour that
-you will say nothing and do nothing that could lead
-to this secret being discovered by the Head or any
-beak at all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles looked at him oddly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You want my word of honour? Why mine?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“We’re asking for everybody’s,” said Smythe
-coldly. “You needn’t be alarmed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But why? What makes that necessary? Who
-do you suppose might give it away?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“We’re asking this of each fellow who’s going to
-play, purely to avoid giving offence to any one man.
-The temper of the school at present doesn’t permit of
-taking risks. That’s all. Do you mind giving
-what we ask?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No,” said Coles at last. “Why should I?
-What’s all the suspicion about?” He paused,
-glancing at Smythe resentfully. “What is it you
-want me to promise?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_164'>164</span>Smythe repeated it.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He jerked his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“All right. I’ll give my word.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Smythe solemnly put a little tick against his
-name on the list, stayed a few moments talking over
-arrangements, and finally took his departure.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>In the corridor outside he came upon two boys.
-One he identified without difficulty as Henry Hope,
-but as he passed Henry drew his companion into the
-shadow of the wall behind him. For Henry had just
-made a regrettable discovery. He had reported that
-nobody of importance existed in Harley who was
-not delighted at the prospect of the Rainhurst match,
-and he had overlooked one case, a case that had only
-just come properly to his notice. There was a young
-man in Harley who showed no pleasure at the
-arrangements made, who seemed, on the contrary,
-smitten with some foreboding. The young man
-would give no explanation. He would offer no definite
-opinion. It was merely a case in which the
-symptoms of depression had increased rather than
-decreased, and were it not for one outstanding fact
-the matter might have been exceptional, and therefore
-of no real importance. But Henry could not
-lose sight of that one fact. The young man concerned
-was Coles’ fag. Henry would have to watch
-out.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_165'>165</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER XVI<br /> <span class='large'>YESTERDAY’S CAPTAIN</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>The men of Rainhurst were undisguisedly perplexed.
-For the last two hours Harley fellows had been
-arriving at the school, not openly, but in mysterious
-driblets, looking about them as if in fear of being
-spotted and yet decidedly proud to be on view. Moreover,
-as each party had arrived they had been greeted
-by their predecessors with cordial hand-shakings as
-if by way of congratulation on their safe arrival.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Now they were all gathered together in one great
-concourse just inside the entrance to the school,
-whilst one amongst them, a strangely thin boy with
-tremendous spectacles, stood out from the crowd
-and from a position of vantage in the roadway was
-peering into the distance. Whenever one of the
-Harley Fifteen appeared in sight this boy turned to
-the waiting throng, lifted his hand in dignity above
-his head as if for silence, and in a loud clear voice
-announced the gentleman’s name, whereupon there
-followed a momentary silence until the player himself
-appeared at the gate, when he was greeted with
-tumultuous applause.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was all exceedingly odd.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The First Fifteen were coming, too, not in the
-appointed brake from the station but just as the
-boys themselves had come, clandestinely and by
-various routes, some by train, and others by cycle
-or by trap. The captain of Rainhurst, who was
-watching it all with a frankly curious stare, had
-never seen the like.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_166'>166</span>As time passed, however, it became evident that
-there was still some further treat in store for those
-who were waiting at the gates. There was that in
-their watchful attitude that one may see in the
-vast crowd at any state procession that cheers its
-favourites as they pass, yet waits in tense expectancy,
-keeping its greatest outburst for the great one whom
-they have really come to see.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There became noticeable, too, an increased alertness
-in the manner of the boy who was making the
-announcements. He peered more frequently and
-rather more impatiently up and down the road.
-Sometimes he left his position to secure a better view
-from the other side of the way.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Clearly the arrival of someone of real importance
-to them was expected at any moment.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It came at last. The looker-out, who, though
-wholly self-appointed, seemed to be treated with a
-tolerant courtesy and some respect by his fellows,
-darted suddenly towards them and threw up his arm
-stiffly erect above his head, pointing the way to
-heaven.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The silence was immediate.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“They’re coming,” said he. “Look out, it’s
-Rouse!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>In the respectful hush that had fallen upon the
-crowd there could be heard distinctly a noise like the
-beating of a drum. Boys turned, one to the other, in
-surprise. There was a minute’s keen expectancy. At
-last solution came. Rouse hove into view, not as one
-might have expected a popular hero to have appeared,
-nobly upon the shoulders of his comrades, but
-hunched upon a bicycle, and the noise accompanying
-him was not the beating of a drum: it was the bumping
-of a punctured back tyre on the roadway. His
-long legs were driving the pedals with laborious care,
-and between the strokes his knees were rising under
-his armpits. He was flushed with exertion and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_167'>167</span>suffering from acute self-consciousness, and in this
-manner he turned in at the gate and came unsteadily
-along the gravel path.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Now when Rouse had said that so soon as he was
-invited to process he lost all interest in events he had
-spoken truly. He was never more hopelessly uncomfortable
-than when he was the centre of admiration
-or the object of prolonged applause, and during
-the present term he had had more of this than he
-could manage. When he had first come into sight
-his mind had, moreover, been so concentrated upon
-the importance of making the turn at the gate without
-colliding with the wall that he did not properly
-understand what all the cheering was about. He
-found out quite suddenly, and in that moment,
-looking along the deep ranks of his applauding
-followers and realising suddenly that it was all for
-him and that he was once again the unwilling hero
-of the hour, he lost his nerve entirely, slowed to a
-snail’s pace and suddenly fell off.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He stood up, not knowing where to look or what
-to do to stop their cheering. Smythe came to his
-side and Rouse turned to him gratefully.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I say, do tell them to shut up, will you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He was sorry to notice that Smythe brushed the
-point aside.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Where on earth have you been?” he was demanding.
-“I thought you were coming by trap?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse considered the point absent-mindedly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I thought so once, too. It seems a long time
-ago. I can hardly remember the time when I wasn’t
-sitting on that bike.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What happened?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I don’t know. That has yet to be discovered.
-But when twenty minutes had gone by and there was
-still no trap we decided we’d got to do something
-about it. Every bicycle for hire in Harley had been
-booked up a week ago, so there was nothing for it
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_168'>168</span>but to try our luck at cottages, and at one I managed
-to borrow this.” He paused and took a deep breath.
-“Until the old man of the house had lifted me into
-the saddle and given me a lusty shove off down the
-hill I wasn’t at all sure that I could ride a bicycle,
-but once the thing was fairly under way I didn’t
-dare to fall off for fear I should never be able to get
-on again, so I just kept on pushing the pedals round,
-and until I got inside these gates I thought of nothing
-else but sticking on. It was all that cheering upset
-me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Something upset you I could plainly see,”
-said Smythe. “I thought you’d ridden over a
-brick.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse turned with a haughty gesture and cast a
-contemplative eye upon the bicycle.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s been making that bumping noise ever since
-I started. I don’t know whether there’s anything
-the matter with it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s punctured,” said Smythe instructively.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Is it? Quite likely. I’m no real judge of a
-bicycle, but I should think it’s got everything the
-matter with it that it could have, including mumps
-on the front tyre. Nick couldn’t borrow one at all,
-so he stopped a kid who passed us on the road and
-they’ve been taking turn and turn about ever since,
-one of them riding and the other balancing on one
-foot on the step. I’ve seen worse trick cyclists at a
-music hall. They’re both walking up the hill at
-present. The kid offered to walk all the way and
-let Nick come on, but Nick said: ‘No fear. We’ve
-both got to be at this match and they’ll wait for me,
-but they won’t wait for you.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He smiled reminiscently, then turned sharply on
-his heel. The cheering had broken out anew. A
-small boy eaten up with pride was wearily riding a
-bicycle into the school grounds, and as they watched,
-a tall fair-haired young man dropped off the step
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_169'>169</span>and began to walk somewhat stiffly through the
-crowd.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That’s Nick,” said Smythe. “We’re all here
-now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Next moment another young man was at his elbow.
-A voice had interrupted them apologetically. They
-turned and saw that it was the Rainhurst captain,
-and with a slow whimsical smile Rouse held out his
-hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I say, is this true? One of your chaps has just
-been telling me. Do you mean to say you’ve come
-here absolutely on your own? Has your footer
-been stopped? Don’t they know anything at all
-about it at the school?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse began to explain. Half-way through the
-other stopped him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, all I can say is that if you fellows have
-gone to all this sweat just to save this match being
-scratched then you deserve to win it—and,” he
-added thoughtfully, “I’m only sorry you won’t.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse laid a hand upon his arm.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I wonder if you could show me where I could
-get a rub down? I don’t know whether you’ve ever
-ridden from Harley on a punctured bike, but I
-have—and only just.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>As he followed the other away down the gravel
-path he looked round at the record crowd that, the
-cheering over, was now lining up along the touch-lines.
-His eyes passed thoughtfully over those
-members of the home side who were already taking
-casual place kicks on the field, and then came back
-and settled in turn upon certain of his own team who
-were coming slowly towards him from the changing-room.
-And in those few moments a strange solemnity
-obsessed him. He found himself remembering all
-that this lean year had meant to Harley. This was
-their first school match, and it would be their only
-one. The season would stand alone in history, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_170'>170</span>it was all on his account. He wondered whatever
-they could see in him, or what sympathy he had
-aroused in them that could warrant such devotion
-to one man. He was suddenly conscious of the
-weight of responsibility that was his. He, who had
-meant the season to be so famous in the annals of
-the school, had been the sole cause of the miserable
-fiasco that it had become. And it seemed to him
-that if only the school side could play such a game
-to-day as would be worth the fellows having come
-to see, it might make some amends. As a team
-nothing out of the way could be expected of them.
-They were only a scratch Fifteen, and they had not
-yet had one single practice game together. No one
-could foretell their capability. But he was their
-captain, and it was possible that by setting the
-example he might get each man on the side to play
-the game of his life. In the eyes of the Head he was
-yesterday’s captain, and Christopher Woolf Roe was
-to-day’s.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Well, when the story of this one match came to be
-written it should, if he could by one day’s captaincy
-ordain it, stand out as the greatest in the school’s
-long history. That would be some slight consolation
-to all those who had missed the game that was
-so near their hearts throughout this miserable
-term.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He changed and came out into the open and found
-his team, and all the while he could not find a word
-to say to anyone. Yet as they stood waiting silently
-for him to lead them out, he turned to them with a
-sudden spontaneity.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Look here, the fellows have come no end of a
-distance and some of them may not get back before
-roll-call, but it’s in our power to give them a game
-that’ll keep them talking till the end of the year and
-make them proud to have been at school this term
-instead of half ashamed. I want you to do it. This
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_171'>171</span>is the only chance we shall have. Let’s make this
-match worth having played in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He stopped abruptly. It suddenly occurred to
-him that he was talking heroics for perhaps the first
-time in his life. And so with a sudden awkward
-smile he turned and led the way out. No one spoke;
-but as they followed him out into the open the spirit
-that had prompted Rouse was stirring in every breast.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The moments passed. The teams were lining up.
-The whistle blew. Rouse stood in readiness behind
-his team, casting an affectionate eye over each
-member of it as he moved to his appointed place.
-Then at last, to the tune of the most whole-hearted
-shout of “Harley” that Rouse had ever heard, the
-Rainhurst captain lifted the ball gently over the
-heads of Harley’s forwards and the school half had
-misfielded. There was a rush of hurrying forwards
-towards the mark and the Rainhurst pack were down
-and shoving. Now the handicap of a lean year was
-transparent. The school men were slow in getting
-down. Before they were properly packed the ball
-had been in and out, and the Rainhurst threes were
-slinging it away to the wing, where a youngster with
-the pace of a stag was coming down the touch-line
-to take his pass. There flew across Rouse’s view
-sudden patches of the Harley colours; the school
-backs racing across and bringing down man after
-man; but the ball had travelled too fast for them
-to reach and the Rainhurst wing took it safely, ran
-in and kicked high and faithfully across. Rouse
-watched with set eyes as in mid-air the wind caught
-the ball and carried it swerving out of its course;
-then, as it began to fall, he saw his chance, darted
-along the goal-line and cut in under it. He had one
-hurried vision of a man in the Rainhurst grey and
-green flying towards him and gazing upward. He
-took no notice. He just fetched out a sudden burst
-of resolute speed, took the ball from the other’s
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_172'>172</span>reach in his stride, bowled him over and left him
-on the grass. Then he kicked. The ball sailed up-field
-like a bird and, far over the distant touch-line
-by the Rainhurst twenty-five, fell neatly out of
-play.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He had gained the school relief, but now he grew
-gravely anxious for the future. He did not like the
-way those Rainhurst threes had come away to
-threaten his line so early. It was ominous. He
-contracted his mouth severely as he saw the ball
-thrown out of touch and the forwards scrambling
-round it for possession. Once his own men had it,
-but the pack were not properly together and it was
-lost. Then the game opened up and the Rainhurst
-backs got on the move again. Somebody dropped
-a pass. There came another scrum. Rouse saw
-that Rainhurst had it once more and were heeling
-like clockwork. The Harley forwards were being
-beaten every time. From his own position on the
-field he could watch all this as if from the pit stalls
-of a theatre, and it kept him on tenterhooks. Once
-he was moving up happily behind his team, driving
-them on with mighty punts up-field whenever the
-ball came within his reach, when, quite suddenly,
-there flashed into the picture the Rainhurst backs
-racing across the field, wheeling and coming down
-upon him with the ball, and the whole phase of the
-game was changed. He drew back. He saw the
-Harley men move up against the coming line, watching
-with beating heart to see if they could shatter it.
-But the combination of this team in the attack was
-paramount. Every Harley back had made his
-tackle, and the ball was still in the hands of a man in
-grey and green. There were others running beside
-him. Where they had come from he had no time to
-guess. But so soon as a Rainhurst man was down
-another seemed to have darted into his place. He
-waited cautiously. He was the last line of defence.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_173'>173</span>If he made but one mistake now Rainhurst were
-through. He must choose the psychological moment
-and he must pick the right man. There was not one
-second to spare. Everything in his wide field of view
-faded away, and the only thing that he could see
-was the fast magnifying picture of a line of figures in
-grey and green on top of him. The moment had
-come. He picked his man, and as he moved to take
-the ball, Rouse hurtled across his front, swung round
-his legs, and, breathless with the thud of collision,
-hung on. The ball flew wide, but he was too late to
-reach it; a gigantic boot whizzed past his face and
-carried it on towards the Harley line. The Rainhurst
-forwards pattered past him. The game had
-gone by and he was out of it, but he had given his
-own side time and the Harley men were back and
-defending stoutly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>After that it was give and take, and the game
-would not shift out of the Harley twenty-five. One
-high punt carried the ball out of the ruck, and Smythe
-came in from the wing and gathered it neatly. There
-was a quick expectant hush whilst he started away,
-and Terence was up alongside with safe hands ready
-for his pass. The ball jumped into his arms and he
-had it safely and was cutting with lowered head into
-the bunch of forwards who were hovering round him.
-A new shout of hope went up from the Harley side
-of the ground, but it was premature. The last to be
-seen of Terence was the vision of his body being
-dragged to earth by three men in grey and green,
-whilst the ball worked out into the open. Without
-delay those dangerous Rainhurst forwards,
-perfectly together, were round it in a herd. They
-were coming down-field with it at their toes as if it
-were merely a practice dribble. The sight of Coles
-darting into the picture, and flinging himself upon it,
-relieved anxiety for a moment, but he was somehow
-bundled out of the way and the pack came on.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_174'>174</span>Rouse got ready again. The fellows on the touch-line
-saw him crouching for his spring and knew that
-he would never let them through. But in the tenseness
-of the moment their voices grew hushed and
-they could only wait. A sudden diversion saved
-the day. One hulking forward in the front rank of
-the Rainhurst pack had kicked the ball too hard and
-it had bounced out of reach. In a flash their chance
-had gone. Smythe came across their front at a
-sprint, gathered the ball with extended hands and
-carried it clear.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Again the shouting started. Smythe had it safely
-and his wing was clear for twenty yards. He bent
-to his task and ran. One of the Rainhurst halfbacks
-was pounding behind him, but had not the pace
-to make the tackle. Smythe shook him off and
-looked for his own three-quarters. They had shaped
-out into position and were well in motion. Then
-the Rainhurst wing, whose duty was to mark Smythe,
-came in with a rush and he passed the ball; but as
-he spun sideways and was dragged down on to his
-back he had the horrifying vision vouchsafed him
-of another man in grey and green speeding away
-with that same ball on his chest, whilst Terence was
-pounding after him and reaching desperately for his
-jersey. There was one tense moment of doubt and
-fear, then the sprinting man had swerved past Lister
-and had only Rouse to beat. Just as before, Rouse
-came into the picture with a dashing enthusiasm
-and took his man at a gallop. The Rainhurst runner
-had no chance. In two seconds it was all over and
-Rouse was scrambling to his feet, whilst the school
-forwards, a badly bustled pack, came round and
-struggled for the ball. It came out and somebody
-fell on it, so that there followed another scrum.
-Again it worked loose on the Rainhurst side, but Coles
-smothered the lucky half before he could get it away,
-and not an inch was gained. At last Saville, seeing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_175'>175</span>the ball bouncing before his eyes, grabbed at it and
-punted for touch. But the Rainhurst blood was up
-and they meant to score. The game had settled
-upon the Harley twenty-five and nothing could
-move it on. Rainhurst were too good. Every
-scrum went in their favour. They could do everything
-but cross the line. Time and again their threes
-seemed safely away and would have scored, had not
-there shone from out the Harley Fifteen a wondrous
-individuality of play that held them. There was
-always one who darted in at the critical moment
-and scooped the ball into his keeping or downed the
-man who had it. His instinct of defence was magical.
-He seemed ubiquitous and impregnable, and through
-Harley’s rough time he held together a team that were
-weary of tackling by an outstanding energy that
-made him a standard-bearer to his side.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Wherever he could be seen at grips with the attacking
-host the Harley men rallied around him. He
-grew discoloured with mud and the bruises of continuous
-collision and became unlike himself, but so
-long as they could identify his shape the vast crowd
-never ceased to shout his name.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And so when half time came and play stopped
-suddenly there was set upon the field a tableau.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Yesterday’s captain stood unconquered upon his
-line, with his scratch team gathered round him, and
-the Rainhurst men were held.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There came a gracious interval, and on to the field
-moved streams of enthusing Harleyans who clapped
-upon the back each member of the team that they
-could reach, whilst Rouse moved this way and that
-amongst his men, whispering words of counsel for
-the even greater battle that was to come.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You were fine,” he said to each in turn, “but
-we haven’t scored yet.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They nodded grimly, making their own resolve in
-secret, and so when the whistle blew again, and the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_176'>176</span>ball was once more lifted into the air, it was Harley
-who started the attack.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The forwards, as if in an effort to make up for
-their clear defeat in the scrum, gathered the ball
-amongst them and took it away up-field with an all-devouring
-dash. For a little while the Rainhurst
-men were staggered. Harley made way by grim
-degrees towards their goal. Close up, Betteridge,
-who was long in the arm, contrived to reach the ball
-and toss it back over his head to the neighbourhood
-where the three-quarters were waiting eagerly.
-Terence jumped sideways and took it as it bounced;
-but a stalwart figure in grey and green was upon
-him before he could make away, and the chance was
-gone. Yet Harley would not be denied. The great
-shouting from their fellows on the touch-line kept
-them at it. Again and again the ball was taken
-forward at a pell-mell rush, only to be suddenly
-gathered and punted back by Rainhurst.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And at these times it was Rouse who nipped in
-and fielded it as it fell, so that great punts into touch,
-far up, kept the school at the right end.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The suddenness with which Rainhurst turned
-their defence into attack proved the greatness of
-their side. For a full ten minutes they had been
-hard pressed, and no one knew how it was that their
-stand-off half found that wonderful opening. Yet in
-some way he had caught the Harley men all on
-one side of the ground. A high punt carried the
-ball towards him and he took it on the run, and
-kicked down the field. It dropped midway between
-Rouse and himself, and he had just that extra turn
-of speed that enabled him to get to it first. He held
-it for a bare moment whilst he swerved, then he had
-kicked again, high over Rouse’s head, and was
-following up as before. The luck was all his. The
-try depended on the bounce of the ball, and it bounced
-straight into his hands. Afterwards it was only a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_177'>177</span>question of pace; he had that pace and he scored
-far out.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Slowly and solemnly Harley lined up under the
-posts. They heard the frenzied cheering of the
-Rainhurst boys and bore it patiently. But Rouse
-said never a word, and only those who took a covert
-glance at him knew what must be passing in his
-mind.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The place kick went wide, and so the game restarted.
-And now the shouting for Harley, hoarse
-with strain, seemed, nevertheless, redoubled into a
-roar of pleading. Just once Rouse looked towards
-them. Then he turned back to the game and was
-pacing slowly across the field, staring with set eyes
-at the scramble for the ball as it came out from touch.
-Time passed. Fellows on the line began to glance
-nervously at their watches, but he seemed to take no
-count of it. He just moved always behind his team,
-nursing each movement with consummate understanding
-and calling to them gently by name when
-the play opened up.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last their opportunity came.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Almost upon the Rainhurst twenty-five a free
-kick was awarded Harley. The shouting died away.
-The crowded touch-line suddenly grew still. Rouse
-moved forward. He looked round for Coles. Coles
-was the best drop-kick in the school. It mattered
-not to Rouse that this might prove the winning effort
-of the match, and that if so the certainty existed that
-Coles would know how to turn it to good account.
-The school came first. He called to Coles:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Try for goal.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles went to the mark, looked round him almost
-nervously, took careful aim; the ball fell and he met
-it beautifully on the bounce with his toe. It was a
-great kick, and at first it seemed to have scored. Yet
-just beside the goal the breeze caught it and held it
-up. It dropped slowly just on the wrong side of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_178'>178</span>posts. Coles turned away distressfully. He took
-no notice of the cordial clapping. He had failed.
-Rainhurst took heart again. Over and over again
-they broke away, only to be smothered by the irresistible
-tackling of Rouse’s chosen backs. They had
-earned one try and it was clear that it had been the
-most they could do. It was not an effort that could
-be repeated. Harley could prevent it, but there was
-something they could not do. They could not find
-the way through to that other goal-line that would
-mean so much to them. At last this seemed to be
-borne in upon them slowly and they began to tire.
-They were losing and their hearts were failing them.
-Rouse could see it. He said no word. Instead he
-grew more resolute in manner and more wonderful
-in his own kicks, knowing that nothing can pull a
-tired team together like example. Somehow or
-other they would have to score. He was their captain
-and it was his task to whip them into a last desperate
-effort that would carry someone over that line. If
-they could not win this match, then at least they
-should not be beaten. He began to grow restless.
-Time was passing quickly. He felt that great responsibility
-upon him again. He had been chosen
-captain. If he could not somehow get one try out
-of this side from Harley then he was not a worthy
-leader. They had to cross that line. It was his
-task to make them. Only so could the greatness of
-this match be capped. Only so could this day be
-marked for always in red letters on the school’s
-official calendar.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And then, suddenly enough, the ball worked loose
-and a Rainhurst man, bearing down upon it, had
-gathered it into his arms and was away. Smythe
-was out of position and he had a clear field. Coles
-sped diagonally across the field and with a gallant
-effort almost reached him, but the Rainhurst man
-had too great a pace and escaped by inches. As he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_179'>179</span>ran he looked urgently for his partner. Not only his
-own centre but the whole of the Rainhurst line were
-with him. He glanced along it delightedly, saw it
-moving with him at top speed, and then he looked
-ahead. There was only one man to pass—a tired
-man, discoloured with the stain of battle. One
-man against a line. He ran in a little, ready for
-a swerve, prepared to pass. The one man watched
-him as he came with glassy eyes. The moment came.
-Rouse moved to make his tackle. As he did so the
-Rainhurst man flung the ball towards the centre,
-and in that moment he realised his mistake.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>In those precious seconds that Rouse had had in
-which to make his quick decision he had realised that,
-with a complete line running with him, the man with
-the ball would not attempt to get through on his
-own. It was an isolated case in which he would be
-justified in not tackling that man. Once he, the
-last line of defence, was down and out of action, the
-Rainhurst line were through and a try was a virtual
-certainty.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He had bent to a dummy tackle, then straightening
-instantly he sprang into the air and intercepted the
-pass. Next second he was away with it on his chest.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>In that moment the little world around the field
-went wild. The whole of the Rainhurst line had
-passed him and were looking back dazedly over their
-shoulder. Before him the field of play opened out,
-and he saw that the way was clear. Until he had
-summoned his utmost speed he looked neither to
-right nor left, but when at last he was running as only
-a man extended to the last degree can run he
-glanced around for aid, and it was there. Terence
-was sprinting beside him like one possessed, and his
-voice rang wildly across the open:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“With you! With you!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was enough. Rouse turned again to his front
-and called out one extra yard of inhuman pace. He
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_180'>180</span>knew now that he was not alone. The day was
-saved. A man in grey and green sprang across his
-path, and Rouse handed him off and sent him staggering
-aside. Then he could see that, just as when the
-Rainhurst line had come upon him, so now he had
-come upon his rival back, and he saw him preparing
-for his tackle.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He moved his hands and began to circle them ready
-to give his pass.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Just beyond Terence he caught a quick glimpse of
-Smythe flying down the touch-line in an effort to
-draw alongside. The deafening cheers of young
-men leaning over the ropes and beating the air with
-caps were urging him on.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Then the moment had come. He swerved in
-slightly, made ready, and flung the ball straight and
-true into Terence’s hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>A baby could not have dropped it.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And as the Rainhurst man came at him and brought
-him down on his side, he saw the flying figure of
-Terence darting over the line and grounding the ball
-between the posts.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At that moment he would have given his kingdom
-to have stayed where he fell upon the grass, and to
-have lain in peace until the aching in his weary limbs
-had passed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Yet he scrambled up. The air was thick with
-waving hats. He shouted to Smythe, but in the
-din no one could hear his voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>So he signalled the order, and Smythe went slowly
-to the mark and took the kick. In a deadly hush the
-ball rose into the air and dropped truly and gracefully
-over the bar.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>In the turmoil that followed the referee’s no-side
-whistle was scarcely heard. Rouse looked round
-hopelessly. There was no way out. Wave upon
-wave of shouting Harley maniacs were bearing down
-on him from every side.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_181'>181</span>He was seized and shaken, found himself lifted up
-by the legs. He tried to break free. It was utterly
-useless. So at last he looked at them wearily in
-turn.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And then he smiled.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For this one day he had been their captain.
-Nothing mattered now.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_182'>182</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER XVII<br /> <span class='large'>SALVE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>Alone upon the wide deserted expanse of the playing
-fields at Harley there stood, a picture of misery,
-the only fellow in the school who had not dared to go
-to Rainhurst. There were, it is true, somewhere in
-the school, other boys, but they had mostly remained
-behind under compulsion. Some were in detention
-and some in the infirmary. A round dozen or so
-were of a type who never did watch football even
-when it was taking place under their noses, and they
-had played no part in that clandestine excursion
-simply because it had had no attraction for them.
-But there was only this one boy who had been
-afraid to go.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was Christopher Woolf Roe. He was by no
-means happy, and he was obsessed with a melancholy
-interest as to what his father would have to
-say when he knew what the school had done. He
-gazed out mournfully over the forsaken football
-ground. No sound of any boyish voice reached his
-ear. It might have been holiday time. So when a
-step sounded unexpectedly behind him on the gravel
-path he turned in surprise. The school porter was
-crossing from the neighbourhood of the Head’s
-room, and something in his manner suggested that he
-was conveying a message. Roe, starving for company,
-looked at him as a pig looks at some farm hand
-carrying a pan of swill.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Do you want me?” he asked hopefully enough.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The porter answered with dignity. As a man of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_183'>183</span>discrimination he had been on the school’s side
-throughout this strife, and he was not disposed to
-make conversation with one whom he considered
-something of a traitor.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The Headmaster wishes to speak to you, sir,”
-said he, and withdrew.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Without a word Roe moved away dejectedly
-towards the stained-glass windows of his father’s
-room, and passed through the old oak door beside
-the steps. He had not even the heart to whistle as
-he went.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He knocked at the door and was greeted by
-ominous silence. He went in. The Head was standing
-by the fireplace, leaning against the mantelpiece,
-and by every line of his face Roe could see that
-he was going to address him not as a father but as
-the Headmaster of a Public School. He moved
-silently across the carpet.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Did you want me, sir?” said he respectfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He placed one hand in the other and rubbed them
-gently together.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head looked at him grimly. Half-an-hour
-ago he had stood at his window looking out upon his
-kingdom. It had struck him quite suddenly that
-the neighbourhood of the school was strangely quiet.
-He had leaned out a little farther. He could still
-see nobody about. Finally he had craned his neck
-to its limit and turned his head all ways. There was
-no doubt about it. The school was deserted. He
-had never seen the place so quiet on a Saturday.
-The seats under the trees were all unoccupied. No
-sound came from the fives courts. No figure could
-be discerned on any pathway. The only houses that
-he could see looked uninhabited. Sudden perplexity
-had settled upon him. He had furrowed his brows....
-Next he had left his room and had gone into
-the school and along the corridors to places from
-which he could see the playing fields from every angle.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_184'>184</span>He peered into the common rooms, inspected the
-library.... His suspicions became a certainty.
-There was something wrong. He went back to
-his own room, and all the way along the corridor the
-tap of his footfall produced a hollow, echoing ring
-that spoke of utter emptiness.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>From his own window he took one final peep on
-to the football ground. There at last he had seen
-a solitary youth, Harley’s Cinderella, walking with
-downcast mien aimlessly across his front. It was
-his son.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>In the five minutes that had elapsed since that
-moment he had endeavoured to reason things out,
-but it had been like groping one’s way in the dark
-through some strange underworld. He was utterly
-bewildered, and he was conscious of fast-growing
-anger. He eyed his son for a little while petulantly,
-and at last he spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There is nobody anywhere about the school,”
-said he indignantly. “The place is deserted. Can
-you offer any explanation?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Roe did not hesitate. He was, in point of fact,
-glad to get it off his chest. Besides the news was
-sensational and there is always a certain gratification
-in breaking news of a kind that makes a man
-jump out of his slippers.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He spoke incisively.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes,” said he, “I think I can tell you what’s
-happened. The First Fifteen have gone to Rainhurst
-to play the match of the season, and every
-fellow in the school who could has gone over to see
-the game.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The effect of this news exceeded all expectation.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For one moment his father merely looked dazed.
-But as he began to recover Roe slowly backed towards
-the wall. Then he found himself staring helplessly
-towards his father’s table, absolutely fascinated by
-the fixed glare of his wide eyes shining with concentrated
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_185'>185</span>anger from behind their spectacles, just as a
-rabbit is frozen still by the cold eyes of a snake.
-His father did not speak. He just subsided slowly
-into his chair and his eyes never left his son’s unhappy
-countenance. He was looking him through
-and through, and Roe could see that he was at the
-same time turning it all over in his mind and looking
-at this outburst by a fettered school from every
-possible angle. Nothing was going to escape consideration.
-The probability was that he was no
-more vexed at the open lawlessness of such a match
-than at the astounding fact that the officially appointed
-captain of football at the school had been
-left out of the team by those who had selected it.
-He was very clearly taken aback.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last his lips jerked open and he spoke, but no
-muscle of his body moved, and his eyes never for one
-instant shifted from their close examination of his
-son. His voice was ominously hard and dry. He
-said:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“If you knew that this was going to happen why
-did you not mention it in time for me to stop it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Roe moved a pace nearer to the wall.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Coles said——” he began.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Coles?” snapped the Head. “What part has
-he in this? Has he gone with the team? Is Coles
-playing for the school?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Roe tried to steady himself before he spoke. He
-answered after a moment’s pause:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“He’s playing. But he had a reason. He thought
-that if he refused suspicion would settle upon him
-and spoil our chance of doing any good later on.
-There was another thing too. He had made a
-plan.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What plan?” The Head stood up. “Coles
-seems to imagine,” he exclaimed, “that I wish him
-to come to my support with underhand plots. I
-require no such help whatever. His suggestions of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_186'>186</span>late have been an open insult to the power of my
-authority. You will tell Coles that whatever I require
-of him will be obtained by exacting his obedience
-to my instructions and not by lending my
-ear to subterfuges. Coles utterly misconceives his
-position. You will tell him that I am exceedingly
-angry to find that to advance some plot of his own
-he agreed to disobey my orders.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Roe shivered miserably.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“And you,” declared his father, “what have you
-done to <em>stop</em> this open defiance of my instructions?
-You are captain of football here, and as my own son
-you came to this school with a ready-made reputation.
-You could, by strong action, have swayed the
-school to my support within a fortnight. Instead
-you have been crassly inactive. This match has
-taken place under your very nose and you have not
-so much as lifted a finger to prevent it. We are well
-into the second half of term, and instead of showing
-determination in tackling the state of affairs you are
-content to be made ridiculous by a youngster whose
-sole qualification to captaincy is his popularity. I
-am amazed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Roe moved a step farther back.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I thought——” he began.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Be silent,” commanded the Head. “Listen to
-me. Immediately Rouse returns you will tell him
-to come to my room without a moment’s delay——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Roe interrupted.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s no use sending for Rouse,” said he. “Everybody
-who’s playing has sworn to take a share of the
-blame.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head stared at him. Roe proceeded to
-explain, but the Head was impatient.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I shall see Rouse,” he repeated. “And you, as
-captain of football, will make it your business to give
-him those instructions personally. There is another
-thing. Mr Nicholson has gone up to London for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_187'>187</span>the day. I understand he is returning by car very
-late to-night. Instruct the porter to send to his
-rooms and leave word that I require to see him here
-to-morrow morning immediately before chapel.
-You yourself will remain about the school until
-Rouse returns. Whatever time it may be you will
-see that he comes here forthwith. If I am not here
-he will wait until I return. You clearly understand?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes, sir,” said Roe, in a melancholy whisper.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head pointed towards the door, turned in his
-chair and picked up a paper with hands that were
-trembling with suppressed wrath. Roe closed the
-door gently behind him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>As soon as he had gone the Head threw his paper
-on to the floor and stood up. He moved to the window
-and stood there a moment looking out upon the
-school’s strange solitude. It was tea-time. By now
-the match must be nearly over. Within a few hours
-those who had broken his strict command would be
-returning and going to their respective houses.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He had until then to make up his mind as to the
-penalty that must be paid. Rouse had challenged
-his son’s authority, and his son had proved hopelessly
-unable to compete with him. Sudden keen
-disappointment came into the Head’s heart. He felt
-extraordinarily alone. There was no single being
-in the whole school who was upon his side. He had
-sent for his son in the belief that his son stood out
-amongst ordinary boys as he stood out amongst
-ordinary headmasters. His son had failed. He had
-nobody now to depend upon. He stood entirely
-alone. But the school had challenged him and he
-must find an answer.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_188'>188</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER XVIII<br /> <span class='large'>THE UNCOUNTED COST</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>Now and again words spoken in a hollow tone drifted
-through the night and reached Terence in snatches.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Occasionally he answered, but it was evident that
-one of those moods was upon Rouse in which he
-loved to maintain a rambling monologue, content to
-speak his changing thoughts or to register opinions
-as they came to him without requiring any answer
-at all.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Most of the boys had travelled by train, but many
-had returned as they had come, by trap or bicycle;
-some were walking, however, and it was for this
-latter reason that Rouse and Terence had elected
-to walk too.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“We shall lose half the fun,” Rouse had affirmed,
-“if we do this thing in too great comfort. Let’s
-have the satisfaction of knowing that, as some of
-the kids have had to walk, we’ve walked too. It’s
-only sporting.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He was talking again now. Terence pricked his
-ears politely.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It is not,” he was saying, “until you have
-wheeled one of these infernal machines for about
-twelve miles without getting a ride even down a
-bit of a hill that you properly understand why they
-are called push-bikes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence turned to look at him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse was plodding a little in rear. It was
-pouring with rain and his overcoat was soaked and
-shining; rain was even dripping from his very ears.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_189'>189</span>Yet the night was cheerfully illumined by his smile.
-Terence, who had a handbag in one hand and the
-other in his pocket, nodded ahead.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“We’re nearly there. You see those lights?
-That’s Harley!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He stepped out with new hope. One might have
-imagined that he had no care in all the world.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse’s response came in a sober monotone:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You are quite right. That one red light, shining
-all alone, is the end of the Headmaster’s cigar, I
-think. He will be waiting up for us with a tray of
-cold supper. May heaven reward his kindly nature.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They walked on for another mile in contemplative
-silence. For a time Terence took a turn at wheeling
-the bicycle. At last the cottage from which they
-had borrowed it was reached, and it was gratefully
-returned with the price of a new back tyre.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Twenty minutes later they finally came to Harley’s
-gates. In the distance they could just distinguish
-a group of youngsters who had been walking ahead
-of them making their way stealthily across to
-Mainwright’s house.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They turned, and behind them they could hear
-the steady tread of another couple who had been
-plodding along behind change suddenly to a cautious
-softness.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse looked round him quizzically. At last he
-returned his gaze to Terence. “Nick,” said he,
-“it would be well to rise on the toes.” Next
-moment he was leading the way with a mysterious
-and ghostly tread along the gravel path towards
-Morley’s. “It is the last lap,” said he. “I wonder
-if we are going to secure a cigar or nuts.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence made no immediate reply. He was
-looking watchfully towards the Headmaster’s room.
-But the blinds were drawn and only a dim light could
-be seen within.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They moved across the open. The rain was still
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_190'>190</span>beating down relentlessly upon them. Little pools
-of water were spreading across the football ground.
-There was a melancholy mist about the distant
-houses. They were dog-tired. Whilst they went,
-their heads bowed a little to the downpour, Rouse
-spoke no further word, not, however, because he
-was wondering in his heart what was to be the
-outcome of that great game, but curiously enough
-because his mind was busily planning how he could
-manage to get another hot bath before he went
-to bed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>When, therefore, right outside Morley’s, a figure
-came suddenly towards them, Rouse looked up with
-a start. Then he stopped. It was impossible to
-mistake the build of that young man. It was
-Christopher Woolf Roe. Instinctively the captain
-of cricket and the captain of football drew near to
-one another and waited for him to speak. They
-had not long to wait. He stopped in front of them
-and looked at Rouse.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The Headmaster would like to speak to you,”
-he said.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse eyed him good-humouredly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Did the Headmaster give you a <em>note</em>?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No, he didn’t. He said you were to go to his
-room directly you came in and wait there till he
-came back.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse shook his head sadly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I wonder if he knows that in my present condition
-I shall leave a pool of water wherever I stand?”
-said he. “It seems such a pity to spoil his carpet,
-doesn’t it? Besides, I shall sneeze so. And sneezing
-always makes him cross.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Roe looked him slowly up and down with his pig-like
-eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The fact is,” said he, with ill-concealed delight,
-“you’re in for it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“If you mean to imply,” said Rouse, “that the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_191'>191</span>Head is getting up a raffle, let me say that you are
-mistaken. I shall not be in for it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was a moment’s pause.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“All right,” said Roe at last. “I’ve told you,
-haven’t I?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He moved haughtily away, his duty done. Rouse
-and Terence looked thoughtfully after him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I think I’ll go along,” said Rouse, in a low voice.
-“When he sees how wet I am he’ll cut it short.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ll come along too.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse laid a restraining hand upon his shoulder.
-“No. Leave things alone for now. I’ll go and
-see what he’s got to say. There’ll be plenty of time
-for you afterwards. Go in and see if you can’t bag
-me a hot bath! And,” he added over his shoulder
-as he was moving off, “somewhere in my study
-there’s a tin of sardines. It would be a rather
-pleasing thought if you bust it open so that we can
-give them a decent burial on a slice of bread.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence made no answer: he just stood hesitantly
-where Rouse had left him watching as he went to
-meet his doom.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And now the way across the sodden football
-ground seemed very long. Only now that he was
-alone, and going backward instead of forward, did
-Rouse thoroughly realise the ache that was in his
-legs. Each footstep became a dragging effort.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It suddenly struck him that this would never do.
-Roe would be watching him. Very likely the Head
-was peeping out from behind his curtains. He would
-look to them as if he were going guiltily to the
-scaffold. He assumed an extravagant jauntiness
-after that. On the gravel path he met the group
-of enthusiasts who had been walking behind him
-all the way from Rainhurst, and he stopped and
-curveted humorously before them, his overcoat
-shining like oilskin, raindrops flying like spray
-from his sleeves and trouser legs.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_192'>192</span>“The performing sea-lion,” said he. “My next
-will be Sir Henry Irving.” He suddenly whipped
-his bowler hat from his head, dented it with one blow
-of his clenched fist and pulled it far down over his
-ears. Then he stood before them with folded arms.
-“Fifty faces under one hat—Napoleon!” His
-hands flew to the battered bowler and twisted it
-round with wild movements. “Charlie Chaplin!”
-Again he bounded about. His hat received another
-violent buffet. He faced them again. “A Nun!”
-Then he pulled it to one side and declared “Father
-Christmas!” Finally he made one swift gesture
-and struck another pose. “The Head Man of
-Harley,” said he. “Hard Roe.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>So far as it could be, it was lifelike. The hat was
-perched well forward over his forehead and his mouth
-was drawn down into a scowl. One knee was bent
-a little and his hands were clasped behind imaginary
-coat-tails.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For perhaps two seconds he held the pose. Then
-a thunderous roar reached him from almost immediately
-above his head. It was the voice of the
-Head, and the noise shaped itself at last into the
-word: “<em>Rouse!</em>”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse shot to his full height like a man electrocuted
-and looked up.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>That which might very well have been the head
-of a bloodhound was silhouetted against the lighted
-background of an open window.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse slowly punched his hat to its right shape
-and placed it tenderly upon his head. The window
-was shut with a resounding bang. He began to
-move along thoughtfully towards the old oak door,
-and long after he had passed out of sight beyond
-it there still stood huddled aside in the darkness
-his erstwhile audience in attitudes of absolute
-astonishment.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Alone for a moment, Rouse spent a brief period
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_193'>193</span>of time in an attitude of reverence striving to recover
-his proper dignity. Then he moved solemnly forward
-across the small space that separated him from the
-oak door wherein he was to learn his sentence. He
-knocked respectfully. At first he could hear no
-answer. But at last the silence was broken and a
-stern voice said to him: “Come in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He went in cheerfully. Except for one electric
-candlestick upon the writing-table, the room was
-in darkness, but the candle was so placed that it
-shone directly upon the Head’s lined countenance,
-and Rouse could see that it was very grimly set.
-He moved across the room and stood before the table
-in readiness to learn the worst. Their eyes met.
-Rouse did not give way. He looked at the Head,
-not impudently, but with evident self-reliance. And
-the Head looked at him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Where have you been, Rouse?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For one moment Rouse was in doubt as to how
-much was known, and it was on the tip of his tongue
-to say: “Bird’s-nesting,” or: “I’ve been out into
-the country, sir, and I was a bit late back.” But
-something in the other’s expectant eyes warned him,
-and finally he answered simply enough: “It was
-the Rainhurst match, sir. And we’ve been to play
-it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head made no move. “You led me to believe
-that the whole of your fixtures for the season were
-cancelled.” He paused. “In this school—or
-indeed in any school—there must be one Head and
-one alone!”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It occurred to Rouse to murmur brightly the
-truism that two heads are better than one, but he
-remained discreetly silent.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“My orders were that, until the captain of football
-was properly recognised in this school, football was
-to cease. In addition, you have been out of bounds.
-I find that the whole school have been with you and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_194'>194</span>there is no doubt that it was you who persuaded
-them to go. You have dared to challenge my
-authority. By posing as a martyr to my stern
-ruling you have earned such easy popularity that
-your vanity has grown into a foolish bubble. I
-think that when the school wakes up to-morrow to
-find what you have led them into that bubble will
-be pricked. You will be no longer a self-appointed
-hero; you will have very little to be proud about.
-No doubt you considered that by devising the
-expedition which you led this afternoon you were
-covering yourself with fame. It might have been
-so. But those who knew me at Wilton could tell
-you that it was a very idle hope if you thought
-that you could defeat me.” He paused. “Why
-did you do it?” he demanded, in sudden violent
-anger.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse was about to answer, but the Head leaned
-forward across the table and pointed at him with a
-thick forefinger. It was clear that he required no
-answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I can tell you why,” said he. “It was to
-gratify your self-conceit. In the face of my stringent
-order, you deliberately arranged a match in which
-you could pose as captain of the school team, purely
-to appease your injured vanity.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He stopped suddenly. Rouse’s countenance had
-undergone a surprising change. There was no longer
-any expression at all to be discerned upon it. His
-face had become a mask. He was a little pale.
-The only signs that there was any life behind it lay
-in the brightness of his eyes and the occasional
-movement of his mouth.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>A gentle glow of satisfaction spread over the
-Headmaster. His words had been meant to hurt
-and they had succeeded. He went on ruthlessly:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You had no thought whatever for the school.
-It was nothing to you that junior boys were missing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_195'>195</span>the whole of their football through your blind
-selfishness. To retire from your false position
-was more than your crass conceit would let you do.
-But to justify yourself in remaining a kind of
-figurehead in the school you arranged this match.
-No doubt you have considered the possibility of
-your expulsion. It may be that you think your
-safety lies in strength of numbers.... You will
-tell me that you are no more to blame than any
-other boy in the school. I believe others are ready
-to say the same. I am fully prepared to find you
-eagerly shirking the blame that any worthy captain
-would accept for the conduct of his team. You, who
-were eager enough to pose as captain, are quite
-unready to take responsibility. That you require
-the school to share with you. I have considered
-that fact very carefully this evening whilst I have
-sat here waiting for your return, and I have already
-said that when the excitement of this afternoon has
-passed, and the aftermath sets in, when the school
-looks round to-morrow for something freshly interesting
-to attract them, they will receive a shock. I
-shall be interested to notice how much you personally
-suffer from that shock. I do not intend to
-expel you. I intend to demonstrate to the school
-exactly what you have led them into, and your
-own punishment will lie in the slow realisation that
-will come to you of the great injury which you,
-in your vain bravado, have done to your school.
-From to-morrow games of every conceivable kind
-will cease. Hitherto the boys, robbed of football,
-have been able to glean some satisfaction from minor
-forms of sport. To-morrow all such opportunities
-will have vanished. By my orders the fives courts
-will be closed. The gymnasium will be locked up.
-I have written a note this evening to the school’s
-boxing professional to tell him that his services will
-not be required next term. Every kind of sports
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_196'>196</span>kit in the school will be impounded. Any boy seen
-in athletic attire will be placed in detention. In
-addition, the town will be placed out of bounds.
-School hours will be increased. The only recreation
-allowed will take the form of outdoor walks by forms
-under a form master.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head suddenly sat back in his chair and made
-a gesture of final triumph.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You have sinned,” said he, “but it is the school
-that will do penance.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse had never so much as moved a muscle of
-his face. Just as he had foretold, the raindrops
-had trickled into a pool about his feet. Now at
-last his lips parted.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Thank you for telling me your intentions, sir,”
-said he. “I shall know now what to do.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head rose slowly to his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Your tone signifies that you still do not thoroughly
-understand the great punishment you have brought
-upon the school. That decides for me the one point
-upon which I was still uncertain. It is clear that
-there is no hope of an altered attitude on your part.
-Let me then add this. I have explained that all
-sports will cease and I have no intention of relaxing
-my decision. It follows that every coach at present
-here will be unemployed, and will therefore leave the
-school. Since there will be no games, and no coaches,
-there will be no necessity for a games master. Mr
-Nicholson will therefore go to another school. And
-it will be your fault that the school has lost him.”
-He paused. “Now that you understand the punishment
-that your bravado has brought upon those
-whom you essayed to lead,” said he, “you may go.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was a moment’s silence. Their eyes met.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Then Rouse turned and out of the room he went;
-slowly, stiffly, as one who walks in his sleep.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_197'>197</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER XIX<br /> <span class='large'>THE CUP OF BITTERNESS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>The Headmaster’s forecast of how the school would
-feel when they woke up on the morning after, and
-of how they would take the news, was very tolerably
-correct. Some heard the truth overnight and
-scarcely slept. But it was not till breakfast-time
-on the Sunday morning that the report could
-properly be spread. By dinner-time it had found
-its way into the farthest corners of the school, and
-that everybody knew was evident by the bump
-with which the school’s good spirits fell. Most
-boys had wakened in excellent humour, refreshed
-after a good night, eager to talk over with others the
-outstanding points of that great game, and full of
-satisfaction at having been at the school during a
-term when such an historic match had been played.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They were ready, too, for fresh sensations. That
-followed as a matter of course. Very few really
-believed that that expedition could have taken
-place without somehow coming to the notice of the
-Head, and the air was alive with surmise as to what
-he would do.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The news of what he had already done hit them
-with a thud.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At first it seemed incredible—that part which
-concerned Toby, anyway. And then when confirmation
-of it came from every available source, and
-there could be no further doubt, the school bowed
-their heads to the blow, and Harley passed into
-mourning.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_198'>198</span>There were many who could not believe that there
-was not some way out. The ban on games was not
-so very terrible. But that, because of that match
-with Rainhurst, Toby Nicholson should go, and with
-him the school boxing coach and the gym. instructors,
-was too shockingly bad to be true. Everybody had
-known why Toby had gone to town that day. He
-had known about the match, and so he had kept
-away. Now he was to pay the penalty for not
-denouncing it. For a while brains were dulled.
-The brightest boys could think of no way of escape
-save humble apology to the Head or open riot. The
-latter could scarcely save Toby; it might in the end
-only serve to aggravate the general position, and the
-former was almost more than they could visualise.
-It would, in any case, only mean sacrificing Rouse
-to save Toby.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>In every study friends sat together in silent
-wretchedness. There was scarcely a face in all the
-school that had not grown noticeably longer since
-morning. Rouse was little to be seen. A few had
-passed him walking across the open, with head erect
-and a face that was quite expressionless, but none
-except seniors had had a word with him, and even
-they could not guess accurately what his real feelings
-were. That he was keeping them to himself, and
-that he was very badly hit, was the most they could
-report.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence only was with him in his study when Toby
-knocked quietly at the door, just before dinner-time,
-and came in, and Rouse got up stiffly and stood at
-the table watching him as he entered, palpably afraid
-to hope for any better news.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Is it true, sir?” said he at last. “Did he
-mean it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby rested his hands cheerfully upon his hips.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s true, yes; but after all, term’s nearly over.
-It’s not so very awful.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_199'>199</span>Rouse drew away.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But it’s my fault. That’s the trouble. The
-Head told me so. He got at me.” He paused.
-There was silence for a moment. Then he said
-again: “He got at me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“How?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Somehow he’d come to know that the fellows
-had planned to share the blame. He said I was
-afraid to take it on my own shoulders. He said it
-was my personal vanity that the school would have
-to suffer for now. Because I was too conceited——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby stopped him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“He didn’t tell me that. He said that I was
-clearly too recently a schoolboy to carry proper
-weight with the fellows here now. His idea was
-that it would do me a great deal of good to go to
-another school for a while and gain experience in
-handling youngsters, and then in a year or so’s
-time perhaps come back here, with a heavier manner
-about me, and try again. He considers that half
-the trouble here this term has been because I have
-not exercised proper influence with you chaps. He
-is prepared to recommend me to a post at another
-school. But to strengthen his own position here,
-he wants me to go this week and not to wait till the
-end of the term. That’s all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse shook his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No,” said he. “He was right. It’s my fault; and
-besides, how about Wilcox and the gym. sergeants?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Wilcox has had notice,” answered Toby. “The
-Head is going to recommend him for another job,
-too. The gym. sergeants are to shut up the gym.
-and go for a holiday. And they’re to wait instructions.
-But he doesn’t want me to come back whilst
-you two are here. He thinks I’ve a bad influence
-over you somehow or other.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What shall we do?” asked Terence, speaking
-for the first time. “Where will you go?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_200'>200</span>“I shall go for a holiday,” he answered. “And,”
-he added, “<em>you’ve</em> got to cheer up. You’ve had your
-good time. You played the match. My biggest
-regret is that I wasn’t there to see it. I don’t mind
-my gruelling. You mustn’t mind yours.”</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>Now there was throughout this mournful Sunday
-only one study in Harley that held a young man
-whose countenance was not distressed. Upon this
-young man’s lips there was, as a matter of fact, a
-decided smile. He sat at his table looking cheerfully
-across the room at Christopher Woolf Roe, and when
-he spoke his voice was light.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“When I first heard it,” he was saying, “I was
-frightfully fed up, because I’d a pretty decent chance
-of being captain of boxing next year and I’ve been
-practising a good deal, whilst there’s been no footer.
-It seemed to me that this rather upset my apple-cart.
-I had a sudden vision of boxing being barred next
-term, just like footer has been this, and I can tell
-you I didn’t like it. But I can see now that after all
-it isn’t at all a bad scheme of your father’s. He’s
-caught them on the hop. To-day everybody will
-be Rugger mad. And this is the time to get them.
-You and I may be able to give some colours away even
-yet. Did you tell your father about my plan?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, I told him you had one, but as a matter of
-fact he got rather annoyed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles was decidedly taken aback.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Annoyed? Why?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“He seemed to think it was a bit patronising of
-you to make a plan at all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Oh, nonsense!” snapped Coles. “He didn’t
-understand. You didn’t explain it properly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I didn’t have time.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, anyway, I shall try it all the same, and
-then when he finds out how successful it turns out
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_201'>201</span>perhaps he’ll alter his mind. When I first got the
-idea I never thought I’d have such a topping chance
-as this to put it into effect. Just imagine Rouse’s
-feelings now. If ever he’s going to do what we want,
-now’s the chance. If he needs anything to help him
-decide we ought to send it to him. My original idea
-was just to play on the fact that he’d had his day
-and he ought to be satisfied, and let the school get
-on with it. This is twenty times better. It’s a
-dead snip.” He laughed shortly. After a moment
-he opened a book upon the table and took from
-between the pages a sheet of plain paper. This he
-passed with evident pride to Roe. “Would you
-recognise that writing?” said he.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Roe peered at it thoughtfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No,” said he at last. “It looks like some kid’s.”</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>Curiously enough, Terence expressed exactly the
-same opinion when that sheet of paper was handed
-to him a few hours later. He added, however, a
-brief proviso.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Naturally,” said he, “a fellow who wants to
-write an anonymous letter doesn’t use his own handwriting.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse had moved to his side and was reading it
-through again with solemn eyes. At last he spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Do you think that’s true? Whoever he is, do
-you think he’s right?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I think he’s off his nut.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse laid the paper upon the table and carefully
-smoothed it out. Then he sat down and began to
-read it through all over again.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was quite a short note. It had no proper beginning
-and no ending. It purported to be a mere
-statement of fact.</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-<p class='c013'>“There is a general feeling in the school,” it read,
-“that as you have had your ambition and led the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_202'>202</span>school team on the footer field you ought to give
-way now. The fellows think that if it’s a question
-of sacrificing either you or Mr Nicholson, it ought
-not to be Mr Nicholson who must suffer for what
-was your idea. Some of us have decided to let
-you know this.”</p>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a little while Rouse sat with his head propped
-in his hands staring at it fixedly, and eventually he
-sat back.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Whoever it was,” said he, “he read my thoughts
-very well indeed. What he’s written down is exactly
-what I’ve been thinking all day. The only thing
-I’m afraid of is this. Supposing I go to the Head
-and give in. Supposing I promise to play under Roe
-and get the school to recognise him as captain.
-What will the Head do? Will he play the game?
-I’ve got a horrible fear at the back of my head that
-he won’t. I can picture the way he’ll smile. He’ll
-say that he’s very glad to hear it. And then if I
-say: ‘Now, will you let Mr Nicholson stay?’ he’ll
-open his eyes at me and say: ‘Good gracious, boy,
-I’m not here to make bargains. My decision of last
-night was not a threat; it was a punishment.’ And
-then I shall have humbled the school for nothing.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence moved towards him again and gripped him
-by the shoulders.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Look here. Don’t you do anything confoundedly
-idiotic. Leave the Head absolutely alone. We’re
-not going to let a man win a fight by hitting below
-the belt. Toby can look after himself. As he says,
-it’s nearly the end of term already. We’ll see it out.
-This rotten note is a lie from start to finish. There’s
-no such feeling in the school at all. Don’t you be
-guyed by a thing like this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, who’s written it?” demanded Rouse.
-“Tell me that. The thing was left lying on this
-table. Somebody must have put it there.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_203'>203</span>Terence took it up once more.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Let’s have another look,” said he.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Next moment there came a gentle tap at the door,
-and the one who in all the school Rouse would
-have least wanted to see that note came in, and he
-sprang up quickly. It was Toby.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse looked at Terence with quick meaning, but
-Terence ignored him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Here, Toby,” said he, “you’re just the chap we
-want. Have a look at this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse sprang towards it.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No. Give it to me. It’s mine. My mind’s
-made up. That doesn’t make any difference at all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes, it does,” said Terence sharply. “It’s
-getting at you. You believe it’s true.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It is true. Give it to me. I want it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence pushed him away, then stretched out his
-hand towards Toby.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Take it,” he said. “Tell Rouse what you think
-of a thing like this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby came towards him with a puzzled manner.
-He glanced quickly at Rouse, and noting his expression
-turned to Terence; then in the scramble for
-possession, he suddenly snatched the sheet of paper
-out of his hand and moved aside with it. Rouse
-stopped abruptly and looked at him hopelessly, while
-Terence, glaring defiantly, sat down at last in a
-chair and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Don’t be such an ass. Why shouldn’t he see
-it? It’s only Toby.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was a short silence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last Toby looked at them each in turn.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Where did you get this?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“He found it on the table when he came in after
-dinner,” said Terence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Who do you suppose put it there?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I only wish I knew.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“D’you know who wrote it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_204'>204</span>“No,” said Terence. “Either someone’s disguised
-his handwriting or else it’s a mere kid.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What does it matter anyway?” said Rouse.
-“It’s true, and that’s an end of it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby was reading it through again and looking
-carefully at the writing.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“As a matter of fact,” he said at last, “I can tell
-you who wrote this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The two chums turned to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There’s only one fellow I know of who makes a
-‘T’ like that,” said Toby. “It’s a pretty good
-effort at hiding his hand, but it’s not quite good
-enough. I could identify that ‘T’ anywhere. I’ve
-seen it too often. The fellow who wrote this is in
-my form.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He waited a moment as if that were an intentional
-hint.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well?” said Terence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Carr wrote this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was a moment’s utter stillness. At last
-Terence made a peculiar noise in his throat and
-turned contemptuously away. Rouse moved slowly
-towards Toby, and taking the note from him again
-looked at it once more.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Then he said:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Carr? Why on earth should Carr write a thing
-like this?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Oh, you ass,” cried Terence, jumping up with a
-wild gesture. “Can’t you see it? Haven’t you
-tumbled yet? Why, good Lord, man! whose fag is
-Carr?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Coles’,” said Rouse, in a whisper.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes,” repeated Terence, “Coles’.” He waited
-a moment. “And so,” he added, “Carr wrote that
-because he was made to. Hasn’t Coles got a hold on
-the kid? Didn’t Henry tell us that Carr was the
-only fellow who wasn’t delighted about the match?
-Do you wonder he wasn’t delighted when he knew
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_205'>205</span>he’d got to write something like this on the strength
-of it? Coles probably intended to send you a note
-like this anyway. The Head’s given him a better
-opening than he ever bargained for, that’s all. Carr
-wrote it, yes. And Coles made it up.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse turned very slowly upon his heel and faced
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Then,” said he, “if that’s so, it may have been
-Coles who let the Head know that all you fellows
-had promised to share the blame if there were any
-trouble about this match.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I should say it most certainly was. He probably
-told Roe and got him to pass it on.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes,” said Rouse thoughtfully. “Yes. I suppose
-that would be it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a moment or two he stood like a man awaking
-from a trance. His eyes passed slowly and unseeingly
-round well-known objects about the study, and
-came to rest at last upon Toby’s thoughtful countenance.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Did you want to see me, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What I came in about will wait,” said Toby.
-“But now that I’m here I should just like to say this.
-If you do anything fat-headed—anything on the
-lines of that letter—it will be strictly against my
-wishes, and absolutely against the best interests of
-the school. If you lose your nerve now you may
-undo all the good that your example has done for
-the school throughout this term. I am going to-morrow,
-and when I leave here I want to be sure that
-you will carry on the good work you have been doing
-all the way through the term. I want you to promise
-me not to give in just because—it hurts. It’s
-not for your sake, it’s for the good of Harley.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes, that’s all right, sir,” said Rouse, in a peculiarly
-small voice. “I quite understand. You can
-trust me to see that the chaps hang on to the end&nbsp;... now. I wasn’t thinking of that so much. Only
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_206'>206</span>if you don’t want me particularly I’d like you to
-excuse me a moment?” He paused. “I should
-like,” he added, “to go along and find Coles.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The brothers Nicholson looked first at him and
-then at one another. Clearly the same thoughts
-had entered either mind.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was Terence who spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There’s only one thing,” said he. “I ought to
-just mention it. You haven’t forgotten that Coles
-is something of a boxer? You remember he won
-the heavyweights last year?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse nodded his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I know.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That’s all right then,” said Terence. “Would
-you like me to wait here?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You can wait anywhere you like,” said Rouse,
-“as long as you don’t come too.” He began to
-walk out of the door, then turned and spoke over
-his shoulder. “Yes,” he said rather more graciously,
-“I <em>should</em> rather like you to be here when I come
-back if you don’t mind waiting.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He went out and closed the door behind him, then
-he began to walk quickly along the corridor and
-down the stairs. Out in the open he became an
-object of general interest. He was conscious that
-all who met him glanced at him in curiosity. He
-gave no sign of his feelings at all. He looked at one
-or two that he met and nodded to them cheerfully.
-At last he was opposite Seymour’s, and he went in
-and mounted the stairs two at a time.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Outside Coles’ study he stopped just for a second
-and knocked. Then he went in. At first there
-appeared to be nobody inside. But he glanced into
-the corner where an easy-chair was placed before
-the fire and observed a tuft of hair showing above it.
-He moved forward and leaned over. Coles was
-sitting there asleep. His mouth was open and his
-features limp. A plain young man awake, he was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_207'>207</span>widely renowned for his extreme ugliness when asleep.
-Rouse dropped his hand on to his shoulder and shook
-him vigorously. There came a distant growling.
-Rouse continued to shake.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What on earth is it?” muttered the object in
-the chair, slowly opening his eyes. “Who wants
-me? Why don’t you——” He recognised Rouse
-with a start and stopped abruptly. “Hullo!” he
-said. He rose somewhat foolishly and began to
-smooth his hair with his hands. “I was asleep.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes,” said Rouse calmly. “So I noticed. I’m
-just about to put you to sleep <em>again</em> too.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Eh?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse explained.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’m going to hit you under the chin,” said he,
-“and I hope it’ll hurt. I thought you’d like to
-know.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At first Coles only stared at him confusedly, but
-presently the effects of sleep began to pass from him,
-and he collected his thoughts and made ready to
-deal with the situation. He went over Rouse’s
-surprising statement word for word, in silent
-communion with his inner self, analysing it with
-evident care, and at length he looked up at Rouse
-queerly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You’re going to hit me under the chin? But
-why are you going to do that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He did not seem particularly disturbed at the
-prospect. He was merely politely interested.
-Possibly this was because he was very well aware
-that he himself could box and that Rouse could
-not.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse did not waste words. He laid that strangely
-significant sheet of paper upon the table rather as if
-it were a mandate, and pointed at it wrathfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I think you’ve seen that before?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles leaned forward indifferently.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What is it? I can’t see.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_208'>208</span>Next moment it was thrust angrily before his eyes
-and held there.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Can you see it now?” said Rouse. “Is that
-<em>your</em> composition?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles read it through coolly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Are you under the impression that I wrote this?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I know who wrote it,” said Rouse. “I’m asking
-you whether you made it up.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles weighed his answer with care.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“If I wanted to write a note to you I should put
-my name to it. This has been written by some kid.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse folded the paper up and put it in his pocket
-with some deliberation.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“We won’t argue about it. I didn’t really expect
-you to admit the truth. But I wanted to mention
-it to you so that you’d understand what the trouble
-was about. There’s another thing as well. Can
-you tell me how the Head found out that everybody
-who played in the match yesterday had promised
-to take a fair share of the blame if there were any
-trouble?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I wasn’t even aware that he did find out.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well, he did. And that’s one reason why he
-decided to punish the whole school by sending Mr
-Nicholson away. I suppose, as a matter of fact,
-you told Roe?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles pushed his chair angrily away from him and
-faced Rouse across a clear space. When next he
-spoke his voice was thick. His wicked temper was
-rising rapidly beyond control.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Is this all you came in for? Did you butt in
-here and wake me up just to chuck lies at me, or is
-there anything else you want to say? If not you
-can get out, and as quickly as you like. You may
-think you’re still captain of footer, and you may
-think sheer swank will carry you through to the end
-of the term. But it won’t go much further with me.
-I’ve had enough of it. Either get out or apologise.”</p>
-
-<div class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/i_208fp.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic001'>
-<p>“I THINK YOU’VE SEEN THAT BEFORE?”</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_209'>209</span>Rouse drew back a little. He was slowly turning
-up the sleeves of his jacket.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I came in here to hit you under the chin. As
-soon as you’re ready I’ll begin.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles looked at him with a certain narrow satisfaction,
-then pushed the table to one side and moved
-a chair.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You can see how much space there is here.
-You’ll have to stand up to it. It won’t be much use
-running round the room when you find how it hurts.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Then as he put up his hands Rouse stepped in
-without delay and struck at him with his clenched
-fist. What followed was very much what might
-have been expected. For a little while Rouse
-appeared likely to slaughter his man before the fight
-had really got going. His blows knew the utter
-fury of one who fights with right upon his side but
-very little science. Any one of these blows would,
-had they landed fairly and squarely upon their target,
-have put Coles down and out. Unhappily they were
-all partly warded off. Coles merely seemed to stand
-aside and watch Rouse interestedly as he strove to
-find an opening, and at last, when the opportunity
-arose, he hit back at him with all his force and
-brought him up short.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>As Rouse came in again Coles took up the defensive
-rôle once more. He had never shown better form.
-The cramped nature of the room prevented any
-possibility of footwork. It was incumbent upon
-him to stand his ground and fight, and this seldom
-suits a boxer who can use his feet, but Coles suited
-himself to the circumstances with outstanding success.
-His temper, which a few moments ago had been at
-fever heat, slowly cooled off as he found himself
-gaining the upper hand. The thought that a few
-moments hence he would have Rouse at his mercy
-acted as a sedative upon him, and presently he smiled.
-Rouse noticed it and drew back for a breather, collecting
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_210'>210</span>his energy the while for a greater and fiercer onslaught
-yet. Next moment Coles’ left shot out and
-tilted back his head. The pain of the blow was
-considerable, but in his present mood it counted with
-Rouse as naught. He set his teeth, adopted a new
-pose and prepared to dash in again. Before he had
-finally made up his mind, however, which hand to
-hit with, that long left had come out again and drawn
-a trickle of blood from his nose. He moved forward
-wrathfully and suddenly let fly with his own left.
-Coles caught the blow neatly with his elbow and
-slammed in a right swung. For a second or so it
-seemed to Rouse that his neck had been broken.
-He was not at all sure where he was. It came to
-him quite suddenly that he had fallen sideways and
-hit his head against the wall, so he straightened himself
-with an almost deprecating smile and put up
-his hands again.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Just as before Coles’ left shot out and tapped his
-nose. Rouse became decidedly annoyed. He sprang
-in and swung up his fist towards Coles’ chin. To hit
-Coles on the chin was all he had come for, and he could
-see no reason for delaying any longer. The blow never
-landed. Coles merely tilted his head tauntingly out
-of reach and countered again with his right. Rouse
-swayed giddily backwards and was brought up
-straight again by a blow in the middle of the waistcoat.
-Then for a few short moments he stood still,
-considering the situation in a puzzled manner whilst
-he faced Coles with a badly bleeding countenance and
-glassy eyes. The worst of a fight with bare fists is
-that it makes such a mess. He could feel that his
-face was rapidly growing unsightly; he was aware
-that blood was dripping down his chin and on to
-his collar. Unfortunately he could do nothing to
-stop it.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He had had no fights since his early youth. Coles
-was hitting very straight and cruelly hard. He
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_211'>211</span>seemed to be planting blows on the same place over
-and over again too. Rouse could tell that from the
-pain of their landing.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last he found himself rocking groggily on his
-pins and he pulled himself together sharply, and
-when next Coles came at him he struck out lustily
-with either hand. One blow landed and he was delighted
-beyond measure. The other was somehow
-lost in mid-air, and before he could puzzle out what
-had happened Coles had hit him again with his
-straight left and dazed his thinking powers.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse’s eyes recovered their normal vision slowly,
-and he looked before him. The walls seemed to be
-caving in, the chairs and the tables were dancing
-before his eyes. Coles looked disproportionate and
-rather horrible. He wondered if all this meant that
-he was going to be beaten. He could not believe it.
-To be licked by Coles, particularly when it was he
-himself who had started the fight, would be the last
-drop in his cup of bitterness. He dimly conceived
-what he would feel like when the news went round
-the school. What would Nick say when he crept
-back with a disfigured countenance and a look of
-shame? These thoughts passed through his mind
-at high speed but with peculiar clearness, and their
-effect was immediate. He poised himself squarely
-upon his feet. Somehow or other he had got to hit
-Coles on the chin, and if he could not do it by attack
-then he would do it by countering with all his force
-each time Coles himself came in. As he waited he
-furtively wiped his mouth with the back of his hand.
-His lips were very bruised. One of his teeth was
-loose. He felt quietly angry and decidedly disappointed.
-But under no circumstances whatever
-would he give in. He was not going to admit defeat
-even if it were pointed out to him whilst he lay stiffly
-outstretched upon the floor. In point of fact he
-found himself wondering whether there would be
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_212'>212</span>room for him to lie stiffly on that particular floor
-anyway. He very nearly smiled at that. Then
-with sudden resolution Coles was moving forward.
-To Rouse he seemed strangely magnified. He came
-with a watchful attitude, his eyes brightly ashine, his
-clenched fists ready as if for a final blow. Rouse
-made preparation. With alarming suddenness Coles
-was on top of him. His fists were striking out with
-terrible intent. They were landing almost as they
-liked. Rouse rocked this way and that. At last
-he caught a sudden glimpse of Coles’ face for once
-temptingly exposed, and he hit out on the spur of
-the moment. His fist landed gloriously, and with
-delightful accuracy, upon the chin, and he gave a
-sigh of content. Whatever else happened now he
-had at least done what he had come for. He had
-hit Coles on the chin. The blow gave him a second’s
-respite. He had evidently hurt Coles a good deal.
-Yet in the end it availed him little. Before the faint
-smile of satisfaction had died from his lips Coles was
-up against him again, driving at his face with long
-arms that could not be properly avoided. He fell
-forward, and finding himself leaning against Coles’
-waistcoat, struck at it cheerfully with each hand in
-turn, and heard Coles grunt distressfully. He drew
-back to give himself more room. Coles was a little
-unsteady upon his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They could face each other now upon more level
-terms. Rouse watched him closely, wondering what
-his next move would be. His own strength was
-giving out and he had no intention of wasting it in
-fruitless attacks.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Then Coles began to spar for an opening. Rouse
-waited dubiously, not knowing quite what this portended.
-He received a blow full in the mouth with the
-utmost surprise, and found himself falling backwards
-against the wall again. He strove to stand upright.
-Coles’ chin showed again for one moment clearly
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_213'>213</span>exposed, and he struck at it with all the enthusiasm
-which he still possessed, but the blow only half
-landed. Then he became suddenly angry at the
-absurdity of fighting in the preposterous amount of
-space afforded by Coles’ study. In his last tumble
-he had barked his leg against a fallen chair. Unless
-his eyesight deceived him there was not a picture in
-all the room that was hanging straight.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Blood had splashed across a part of the wall-paper.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>But he remembered again that after all it had been
-he who had started the fight. It was his own fault.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles was coming again. Rouse strove to stand
-steadily. His face was to be the target again. He
-could see severe intention in Coles’ face. But now
-resolve came to him anew. He would not be knocked
-out. He would fight to the end. So long as he stood
-up he could not be considered beaten. He looked
-for Coles with fiery eyes and smote at him. Coles
-was grinning. As he smote that grin vanished suddenly,
-and he knew that he had got home. He
-steadied himself and smote again. Again he landed
-nicely. Then it was Coles’ turn. He struck cleanly,
-and once again Rouse tumbled sideways. His
-hand went out and found the wall, and he steadied
-himself like that for a moment, then turned and
-looked for Coles again. He began to wish he had
-taken off his coat. He might have done better. He
-was uncomfortably hot. There was a nasty taste in
-his mouth. His eyes were closing. His head sang.
-He was giddy. Coles caught him in the face. He
-rocked a little more. At last he began to slither
-foolishly down the wall. Half-way he stopped, one
-hand propping him up. He tried to give himself a
-shove off towards Coles, and floundered towards him
-hopefully. Coles loomed up against him with fists
-like small hams feeling their way towards his face
-again. One of them landed with a resounding
-smack. He sank down on to the floor and stayed
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_214'>214</span>there for a moment. At last he got up. Coles said
-nothing. He just got ready to hit again.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse saw it coming. He would not be beaten.
-He struck out for himself gamely, missed, and hit
-again. Coles got in the way of that last one and
-received it on the chin, and Rouse tried to follow it
-up. He was half afraid that if Coles hit him again
-he would succumb. He drew away from the friendliness
-of the wall and tumbled against the table.
-They were out in the only clear space in the room
-again at last, and, facing Coles, he saw him preparing
-for a final blow; he put up his tired hands doggedly,
-leaned forward and struck at the dim shadow
-that was Coles, but the shadow slipped aside. Then
-he received a thudding blow in the mouth, heard
-himself give an unwitting sob of despair, felt himself
-falling. He was on the floor. He tried to get up.
-His limbs would not answer his behests. He kicked
-out uselessly with one leg trying to find support.
-At last he lay still.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>When at length he came vaguely to his senses and
-looked round and about, Coles was sitting on the
-table staring at him sullenly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He noticed with interest that Coles was marked
-about the face rather more heavily than he had supposed.
-Then he closed his eyes again. At last he
-struggled up. He looked for Coles politely, found
-himself standing with his back towards him, and
-turned.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His lips were swollen and difficult to control, so
-that he spoke with a certain indistinctness.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well,” he said, “I’d misjudged things. You
-can box and I can’t. You were too hot for me.
-If you don’t mind we’ll go on with this another
-day. And between now and then I’ll learn to box
-too.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles looked at him contemptuously.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You’re too late,” said he. “There isn’t going to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_215'>215</span>be any boxing. It’s knocked on the head. That’s
-one of the thoughtful things you’ve done for the
-school, and I hope you’re satisfied.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse turned and went out. The corridor was
-deserted and he was grateful. He was not anxious
-to be seen coming out of Coles’ study like that. He
-went unsteadily down the stairs and out into the
-open. The cold wind cut at the broken skin bitterly,
-but now he held his head high and went almost
-proudly across the open towards Morley’s. He was
-not of the type that show their inner feelings to one
-and all. He knew that fellows of all kinds and conditions
-in Harley would be looking to him for a lead
-as to the correct behaviour at this final crisis, and he
-must set the right example. It was possible that
-they might think his face had suffered like that in the
-match, and in any case he was not going to look
-ashamed about it. Even when Coles began to boast,
-and people came to know that he had picked a
-quarrel with Coles and had got a hiding, there were
-only a very few in the school who would not understand
-that Coles could box and he couldn’t.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He came at last to his own study and went in.
-Toby had gone, but Terence rose from a chair and
-moved towards him. He took one glance at Rouse
-and turned away. There was a moment’s silence.
-Rouse went to the table and sat down. He was
-trembling a little. His hands would not keep still.
-At last he looked up.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Presently he made his confession.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“He put me down,” said he.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Often?” asked Terence gently.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes. Quite often.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence nodded his head sympathetically. He
-saw that there was no need for words.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last Rouse leaned his elbows upon the table
-and buried his battered face in his hands. There
-was nobody but Terence there to see, so what did it
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_216'>216</span>matter? He was suddenly brave no more&nbsp;... he
-was speaking his inner feelings.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“This is the term that was to have been an unbeaten
-season, and it’s come to pieces in our hands.”
-He waited. The room was very silent. “The chaps
-haven’t got to look far to see what I’ve done for the
-school. I’ve ruined the footer, and now because of
-me every game that a man can think of has been
-stopped, and I’ve got Toby the sack—the finest
-fellow who ever stepped. Last of all I’ve had a
-licking from the fellow who always said that I wasn’t
-any good. What will the school say to that? Perhaps
-now they’ll see through me. Perhaps they’ll turn
-to somebody else. Supposing it’s Coles? I wonder
-whether it’s too late to get the Head to do the right
-thing.... P’r’aps if I did something outside the
-pale he might expel me—and keep Toby.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence moved to him quickly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Listen,” he began. “Don’t talk like that.
-You’re forgetting. You promised Toby you’d hang
-on. Every chap in the school’s looking to you for
-a lead. And the side that wins this fight will be the
-side that can stick it out. You’re not going to
-weaken—now. This is the crisis. Every day we’re
-giving him more rope. Maybe he’ll hang himself
-if we only hang on. But if we give in now he’s
-won.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was silence. Rouse did not look up.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Toby’s going to-morrow, and he told me to tell
-you the Head will find that the worst thing he ever
-did was to send him away. Toby’s not the only old
-Harleyan. Some of the others have influence. Lots
-of them have brothers here now—and sons. Sooner
-or later there’ll be a thundering row. I’ve got an
-idea Toby’s going to get amongst them and that all
-this will work out to the Head’s destruction. But
-we’ve got to stick it out. You see that, don’t you?
-If you were to get expelled—we should have lost.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_217'>217</span>We’ve got to play a safe game till Toby gets to
-work.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He stopped.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse got slowly to his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes,” he said at last, “that’s right. We’ve
-got to stick it out.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_218'>218</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER XX<br /> <span class='large'>THE LAST ROUND</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>They were like days of drought. Wherever one
-moved about the school one noticed everywhere the
-same set look on every fellow’s face of patient
-resolution. There was very little ragging. Harley
-had become a kind of expanded orphan school. They
-took their exercise in crocodile formation, moving
-shamefacedly two by two. The only permitted recreation
-was the reading of heavy books. No boy so
-much as dared to kick a fives ball before him along
-the gravel path. Few had the heart to whistle. To
-those who were onlookers of it all—the masters, school
-servants, neighbouring inhabitants—this had never
-been expected. So soon as the news had sped its
-rounds that Toby was leaving, and that all games
-were to cease, those who were wisest shook their
-heads and foretold whole-hearted revolution. Some
-vividly imagined the Head being captured by boys
-and ducked. Others anticipated open refusal to
-do any work whatever in school hours. Yet Harley
-took them by surprise. They went like lambs, and
-this was because they had a memory to give them
-heart.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was the day that Toby had left. He had caught
-an early train. With barely half-a-dozen exceptions
-the whole school had turned out to say good-bye.
-It had been like a ceremonial parade on Founder’s
-Day. Toby had shaken hands with every fellow he
-could reach. He had said nothing at all. He had
-just shaken hands. And the fellows had understood.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_219'>219</span>They had started to sing: “He’s a jolly good fellow.”
-Rouse had stopped them. He had got up on to a
-pile of boxes at the station and addressed them with
-some hesitation and an uncertain voice, and he had
-explained things to them.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“We’ve got to stick it out.” Those had been his
-words. Toby had foreseen this possibility and he
-had sent that message. “Hang on till he can bring
-up reinforcements from outside. Do nothing that
-may make it harder for you to wait. Get nobody
-expelled. Wait. Things will come out all right if
-you only show your grit. All you’ve got to do is to
-stick it out.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They had understood.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby was leaving then, not for good, but merely
-as their messenger to every other old Harleyan who
-still loved the school, and every parent, and he would
-fetch help. They need write no whining letters home.
-Toby would know how to do it. There would be no
-unpleasant scandal, no trouble with the Press. Toby
-had the honour of the school at heart. He would
-know how to do it. Sooner or later the Head would
-find that out. Then it would be their day. Till
-then their duty lay in knowing how to wait. Every
-day that passed and left them idle and bored to tears
-would, nevertheless, be a day upon which Toby
-would without doubt have gone another step on the
-road of retribution.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Whether he could call up the outside forces in
-time to avail during the present term could not be
-guessed. But he would be working for them. That
-would be enough. This was the memory that those
-who looked on in wonder at the school’s forbearance
-did not understand. It was Harley’s secret.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>So the days passed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head, for his part, found them pleasant days.
-He knew at last the wonder of his power. His
-strength had triumphed. He had the reputation of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_220'>220</span>never doing the expected. His answer to their
-challenge had taken the wind completely from their
-sails and left them open-mouthed with awe. They
-were spellbound with his invincible strength of
-purpose. They realised at last that they had met
-their master. Slowly but surely he was making
-them bow before him. They had counted upon him
-making Rouse the scapegoat and they had prepared
-to defeat him. Instead he had defeated them. The
-feeling was delightful. He went his way with a
-shrewdly grim expression befitting a man of such
-resolution, but at heart he was laughing in delight.
-He began to overlook the disappointment he had
-experienced in his son. Perhaps his son was not to
-blame. After all, one of his stamp in one family was
-all that folk could reasonably expect. He looked
-round and about him each day and saw boys wriggling
-under his iron rule. He did not wonder why
-they did not defy him. He was content to know
-that they were learning a lesson they would never
-forget as long as they lived, and he gloried in prolonging
-it. Once he reminded them that their
-punishment could not be lightened in any way until
-Rouse came to him to say that the school would bow
-to his ruling and would recognise his son. They just
-ignored him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>So days passed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Soon Toby had been gone a fortnight. No news
-came. Terence had had letters but they conveyed
-only one exhortation. They gave no such message
-as the whole school longed so feverishly to hear.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And then at last, when the utter weariness of life
-had grown almost more than they could bear, and
-some had begun to doubt if Toby could really do
-anything for them, something happened. Terence
-was sitting with Rouse in his study one evening when
-there sounded upon the door a sharp, peremptory
-knock. Then the door swung on its hinges and there
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_221'>221</span>entered one who held himself strangely erect, whose
-chin was so proudly uplifted that he seemed a living
-example of the proud and patient spirit that was
-keeping Harley solid during this the last round of
-the long fight. His glasses had slipped a little over
-the bridge of his nose, and when he stopped and
-brought his gaze to bear upon them each in turn he
-looked at them quaintly over the rims. At last his
-bearing relaxed. Safely inside the room with the
-closed door behind him he became suddenly a human
-boy, and it was clear that he was somewhat unsettled.
-It made him rather more likeable.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I want to tell you something,” he began.
-“P’r’aps I ought to have come before, but I’ve been
-waiting to make sure.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What is it, Henry?” said Rouse.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry cast a deprecating eye at his clothes and,
-following his gaze, Rouse perceived that they were
-smeared with dirt. He held out his hands and revealed
-their blackened palms.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ve been climbing up another drain-pipe.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“How many is that you’ve climbed up now?”
-asked Rouse. “What is your average for the
-season?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry ignored him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There’s a drain-pipe at Seymour’s,” said he,
-“that takes you on to a ledge, and you can walk
-along the ledge and look into Coles’ study.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What did you want to look into Coles’ study
-for?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I didn’t look in,” said Henry. “I listened.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He paused. Rouse was looking at him dubiously.
-Terence had moved from his chair and was leaning
-over the table.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Why couldn’t you listen at the door, then?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry looked at him scornfully. It seemed almost
-superfluous to explain that in the cinematograph
-world nobody listens at a door if they can climb
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_222'>222</span>up a pipe and listen at a window. He heaved a
-sigh.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Something has happened,” he said. “Until now
-no single fellow in the school has let us down. If
-the Head’s been looking for a chance to put the
-screw on a bit, he’s been disappointed. No one’s
-been caught out after the hours he laid down. No
-one has broken bounds. No one’s played games.
-The chaps have hung together. But to-night I came
-across Bobbie Carr creeping out of school just before
-seven o’clock.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well,” said Rouse, “what did you do?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I stopped him and asked him where he was going,
-and he wouldn’t say. I jawed him a bit and told
-him that no matter what he was going for he wasn’t
-playing the game. I said he was bound to be caught,
-and he’d be the first one who’d let us down.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Did he turn back?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No,” said Henry soberly. “He shook me off
-and went on.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“And where do you think he’s gone?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a moment Henry hesitated. Then he spoke
-up boldly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Seeing how much I know,” said he, “I hadn’t
-got any doubt. It was my idea that Coles was
-sending him down to the town to get something to
-drink.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The captain of cricket and the captain of football
-looked at one another gravely and finally looked at
-Henry.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“And so,” continued Henry, looking at them
-modestly over the tops of his glasses, “I decided to
-get additional information, and I climbed up the
-drain-pipe and listened at Coles’ window.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well?” said Terence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There isn’t any doubt about it at all. Coles was
-in there with some of his pals and they’re drinking.
-Young Carr’s been sent for another bottle.” There
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_223'>223</span>was a brief silence. “That’s isn’t quite all,” said
-Henry presently. “I went back to the little gates
-and waited for Carr to come back. I meant to take
-the stuff away from him and bring it to you. But—he’s
-never come back. I’ve waited an hour and
-a half. One of two things has happened. Either
-he’s broken the bottle and gone back for another, or
-else after what I told him he’s afraid to come back.
-Perhaps he’s run away.” Henry concluded on a low
-note. He was clearly distressed. “Any day now,”
-said he, “Mr Nicholson might make something
-happen. The chaps have hung together all this time
-and given the Head no loophole. Now this will
-be found out.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was Terence who answered first. He turned
-to Rouse.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You’ve tackled Coles once,” said he. “It’s my
-turn. I might have better luck. I’ll go to his study
-and make him say where Carr’s gone.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse shook his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No, it would be no use. If he’s at all tight he’d
-only make an unholy shindy. That’d be worse than
-anything. I’ll go out. I’ll see if I can’t find young
-Carr somewhere or other between here and the town
-and bring him in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Why should you go?” demanded Terence.
-“Supposing you get caught yourself? The Head
-isn’t going to give you a second chance, you know.
-It’s asking for trouble.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ll have to go,” said Rouse, “because all the
-trouble is my fault. I’ve brought enough on the
-school to justify me in trying to save them something.
-There’s another thing. This is the footer season,
-and according to you I’m captain of footer. This
-is my job.” He smiled disarmingly. “You can
-help too,” he added. “Go over to Seymour’s and
-find Saville. Tell him what’s up, and see if he can’t
-get Carr reported present until I can get him in.”
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_224'>224</span>He stood up. “There’s no time to waste. It’s
-nearly nine now, and if Henry’s idea is right every
-minute’s of value. Even if he’s back by now we
-may be able to stop him taking the stuff to
-Coles. I’m going out. You get across and find
-Saville.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He moved to the door.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Aren’t you taking a coat,” said Terence, “or a
-hat? It’s precious cold.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ll go as I am. At this time of night it’s less
-conspicuous. And I can get out by the pavilion—the
-way you and I used to go when we were
-kids.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He waited one moment, as if wondering if he had
-forgotten anything, then he opened the door and
-went out.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence turned to Henry and looked at him in
-queer anxiety.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You oughtn’t to have told him,” he said. “You
-ought to have told me alone. You might have known
-he’d want to go out. He’s nearly worried to death.
-He feels it’s his personal responsibility to Toby to
-make the chaps hang together and stick it out till
-he can do something for us. It’s getting on his
-nerves. All day long he’s moving amongst the chaps
-telling them to keep their pecker up. He can hardly
-keep still. In the face of news like this he was
-certain to go out and try to find the shocking little
-ass.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry looked a trifle crestfallen.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I thought he ought to be told,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes, yes, I know,” retorted Terence. “But
-supposing he gets caught himself? Supposing he’s
-seen?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry made a comforting grimace.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“If I know Rouse as well as I think I do,”
-said he, “he isn’t the sort of guy to go and get
-caught.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_225'>225</span>Terence slapped one hand into the other distressfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You don’t know what you’re talking about.
-That’s just the sort of guy he <em>is</em>. He’s never made a
-plan since I knew him that ever went right.”</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>The Headmaster of Harley sat at his table, his
-elbows resting upon the handsome blotting-pad that
-graced it, and in his hands he held, with a curious,
-unnatural stiffness, a letter. His head was bowed
-a little, and his attitude was so very still that one
-who came unawares upon him sitting there might
-almost have thought that he had fallen asleep;
-but presently he moved his head and looked up
-and around him with a quick movement of uncertainty,
-as if the silence of that vast room were
-oppressing him. And if one might then have seen
-his face and noticed the setting of the deep lines
-upon it, one would have known the truth. Hard
-Roe was beaten.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The pages of history are crowded with the names of
-men whose rise to eminence was aided by daily self-aggrandisement,
-but there is no record of any one
-amongst them all whose besetting weakness did not
-sooner or later compass his fall.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>If Hard Roe had ever properly understood this
-truth he had forgotten it long before it would have
-been of most use to him to remember it. For some
-few minutes he merely read the letter through and
-through, and at last, when he knew the words by heart,
-he found himself wondering whose influence lay
-behind it. He did not know the Governors of
-Harley well enough to understand how much they
-were likely to know of things at the school, and it
-never occurred to him at all that a man of Toby
-Nicholson’s stamp could have any means of influence
-at their councils. He was unaware how many
-parents might have lodged complaint against his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_226'>226</span>ruling, or what influential Old Harleyans had sided
-against him. These were wheels within wheels
-which he could not understand. Now he was to
-leave. His term of government ended with the
-coming of the holidays. There was nothing in the
-letter that could properly offend. One might almost
-have thought that the regrets which it expressed were
-real. But there was nevertheless a coldness in its
-phrasing which succeeded tolerably well in conveying
-a stern rebuke. That he understood.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He braced his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His mouth took on again a natural grimness.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He looked round the room over his spectacles
-with little jerky movements of the head, seeing no
-single thing save pictures in his mind’s eye portraying
-that phase of the future which was of the
-first importance to his personal pride.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>In ten days term would be over. The probability
-was that the school would never know this sequel to
-the long fight until he had really gone. Rumours
-that he was not to stay might reach them during
-the holidays, but not until they reassembled for the
-Easter term and found that they had really triumphed
-would they be sure. His imagination presented him
-with a mental vision of how things would be then,
-and in the forefront of the picture he saw the boy
-who throughout the term had fought him, gloating
-over his fall. The flood-tide of Rouse’s popularity
-would carry him in wild idolatry to the top of the
-school. And Rouse would ascend, laughing bombastically
-at the memory of the master who had
-challenged his hold over the school and who had
-been defeated. He slowly shook his head in grave
-unhappiness. Always there had been strong in him
-a deep desire to make a reputation and to hold
-it throughout his life. He would like, after he had
-gone, that all honest fellows in the school should say
-of him that he delighted in every crisis to stand alone,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_227'>227</span>that he had always taken them by surprise, that he
-had never done what they had counted upon him
-doing.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Now he was defeated. The school would say of
-him instead that all his life he had done wrong and
-that he had never been exposed till now. The bubble
-that would be pricked would not be Rouse’s but his
-own. He suddenly stood up. To be relieved of his
-post was not so terrible a blow as was the certain
-knowledge that he would be remembered by the
-school only as one who had been a three months’
-wonder and who had failed. That was more than
-he could bear. He looked round the room in sudden
-petulance, and thought it stiff and unresponsive.
-The sober pictures and the heavy curtains were
-glaring at him stupidly. He moved hesitantly
-towards the door as if to escape from this environment.
-He wandered into the passage, came to the
-old oak door and swung it upon its hinges. The night
-air came round the corner, cooling his forehead with
-the touch of an old friend. He knew then what he
-needed&nbsp;... the friendly solitude of the night.
-For perhaps the last time he would roam his provinces
-alone, fighting the black depression that was slowly
-weighing him down.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He came out on to the gravel path and looked up
-at Harley. Here and there lighted windows, out of
-true keeping with the school’s proud majesty, were
-winking at him as if in teasing. He turned across the
-football ground. The night air did not seem very
-cold. Indeed it served him rather well by clearing
-his troubled mind. So he was moving with hands
-clasped under his gown, his square-built head
-sunken between his shoulders, when his attention
-was suddenly distracted by a footstep upon the pathway
-by the pavilion just in front of him. He stopped
-and looked ahead, his chief hope an anxious one that
-he would not himself be noticed wandering about so
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_228'>228</span>oddly on a winter’s night without his hat. Only for
-one moment was he uncertain as to the identity of the
-young man who was passing. Then clear recognition
-came to him. That young man was Rouse.
-Funnily enough, he too was going his way without
-hat or overcoat, and the Head stared in perplexity.
-Next he considered the time.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His definite order had declared that no boy should
-be out of school after seven o’clock. This was defiance.
-He moved along the grass in the stealthy
-manner of a domestic cat. Rouse, engrossed upon
-his mission, never even turned his head. At last he
-came to a narrow gate that led into the roadway,
-and here he made a moment’s pause before he boldly
-scrambled over and set off unhesitatingly towards
-the town.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head had stopped to watch with eyes that
-were fixed and wide, and now he stood rooted to the
-spot, still staring tensely in the direction Rouse
-had taken. It was as though a star of hope had
-suddenly shone through the darkness of the night.
-The curtain had risen upon a dramatic scene that
-should prove the climax of the play. For ten days
-more he would still be Headmaster of the school.
-They had not yet taken from him the power to expel,
-and Rouse had played into his hands. Here was a
-way to win.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>That sense of crushing defeat lifted from his
-shoulders as if by magic. He turned. Decision
-had come to him. He began to step out towards the
-school houses. He would go to Morley’s and ask for
-Rouse. At this hour every boy in Harley should
-be in his study or in his cubicle. There could be
-no conceivable excuse for Rouse. The whole of
-Morley’s should know that the Headmaster had been
-to the house and had found him missing. His sense
-of dramatic effect bounced around his heart. The
-school should have little enough to laugh at in his own
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_229'>229</span>departure after all. His wish might yet come true.
-It should not be by the folly of his government but
-by the outstanding boldness of his last act that
-Harley should ever afterwards remember him. Before
-he left the school Rouse should be expelled.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_230'>230</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER XXI<br /> <span class='large'>SECRET SERVICE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>The fight was very nearly over. One man was
-covering up with evident caution; his legs were almost
-giving way beneath him. The other was Johnny
-Winter, and Johnny was standing away and waiting
-for his opening.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They had said that he was too old. They had
-even thought it pathetically sad that a man who, in
-his prime, had been unbeaten champion at his weight,
-should be lured back to the ring after three years
-away from it to fight again. Some had supposed it
-was the bombast of the man who was at the top of
-the tree, and who claimed that not even Johnny
-Winter could have defeated him, that had tempted
-the master boxer of his day out of retirement.
-Others argued that the size of the purse that was up
-for competition had had the most to do with it. And
-they had all agreed that Johnny was foolish to have
-yielded to temptation. There was never a boxer in
-all the world who, when his day was passed, came
-back to the ring and fought again just as he had
-used to fight in his own hey-day.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>So they had said. But all his life Johnny had
-known himself better than any of his friends had ever
-been allowed to know him, and he had believed that
-he was not yet too completely old to win one last
-fight. Now he had proved it. It was the fourteenth
-round and his man was done. Already Johnny was
-sparring for his final opening. It came suddenly.
-The other man uncovered and struck out with his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_231'>231</span>right. In the twinkling of an eye Johnny had slipped
-in and swung up his uppercut with deadly accuracy.
-It landed with resounding force. The man reeled
-and fell. There came ten seconds of excited wonder.
-Then he was out; and the air was thunderous with
-a long crash of cheering for that quiet-mannered
-little man with the wispy hair and the patient, deep-set
-eyes who had undertaken to defend his name
-against a young man in the prime of life, and had
-won.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His seconds darted to Johnny’s side and lifted him
-up joyously in their arms. From every seat near by
-men had risen on to their toes and were reaching for
-his hand. Friends were elbowing their way towards
-him. In a moment they had closed round and he
-was hidden from sight. They crowded about him as
-he made for the gangway and went quickly through
-the cheering crowd that was blocking the way. And
-all the while those who were nearest to him could see
-that his expression never really altered. From the
-first round to the last he had fought with a clean and
-modest gallantry that was a natural part of him.
-Now that he had won he wanted only to escape from
-all the inevitable lionising that so troubled him.
-For a while he suffered them patiently, but he was
-longing to be allowed to go to his bath in peace. He
-had done merely what he had set out to do. Their
-praise was kindly meant, but he would be far happier
-alone.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>So at last they let him by and he went gratefully
-into the dressing-room, said just a few quiet words
-to those old-timers who were waiting there to tend
-him, and passed into privacy.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>When, therefore, a little boy came to the door of
-the dressing-room and asked for him, they shook
-their heads.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Better go away, sonny. He won’t want to give
-no autograph. He just don’t want to be fussed.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_232'>232</span>He’s fought his fight. You let him have his quiet
-sit-down. That’s worth more to Johnny than his
-picture rights.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The little boy looked round them gravely.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Would you just give him this?” he said at
-length. “I know he’ll see me. He’ll be angry if
-you don’t tell him I’m here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He waited a moment anxiously, holding the proffered
-envelope in his hand with an air of appeal.
-At last a man with a square head, closely shaven, and
-a perfect imitation of a cauliflower clinging to the
-side of it, reached out his hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What is it?” he demanded. “What’s your
-name?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“If you’ll just give him that,” said the little boy,
-“he’ll know.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The man went slowly away, and when he came
-back his countenance wore an expression of complete
-astonishment.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You’re to go in and see him,” he said resignedly.
-“And I’d like to know who you be. It’s the first
-time he’s ever said ‘Yes.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The little boy went quickly across the room and
-into the little cabin at the farthermost end. Johnny
-Winter was sitting down, and as the little boy came in,
-the man who had been tubbing his legs moved out of
-the way and disappeared. Then Johnny swathed a
-dressing-gown about him and stood up. He was
-frowning, and he spoke vexedly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Bobbie,” he said, “if I had thought you would
-have done a thing like this I would have made you
-promise. But I trusted you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie Carr stood proudly and faced him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ve never seen you fight in all my life,” said he.
-“I’ve never been allowed. And this is the last chance
-I should ever have. You taught me how to box,
-but you never let me see <em>you</em> fight in earnest. Now I
-have and I’m satisfied.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_233'>233</span>His father was looking at him with extraordinary
-sorrow.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You were always ashamed that I should see you
-fight. You said that I should get wrong ideas. I’m
-not ashamed. I’m proud.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His father made a quick movement with his
-hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You’ve never understood. I’ve had to think
-for you. All my life I meant you to go to a Public
-School and mix with the sons of gentlemen. I meant
-you to have the chance to become what I have never
-been. I’ve saved and worked for your education.
-I meant you to be a gentleman, and if the boys at
-your school or the masters there ever knew that you
-were the son of a bruiser—they’d call it a smudge
-on your name. That’s why I made you promise.
-It had to be our secret. And so that no one that you
-mix with should ever see you with me at the ringside,
-I’ve never let you come to see me fight. I retired
-before you ever went to Harley to make quite sure.
-But lately I’ve been afraid. I began to wonder if
-I had saved enough, after all, to give you a fair
-chance. And then they offered this purse, bigger
-than any I’d ever fought for in my life, if I’d come
-back. I never imagined for a moment that you
-would come here to see me. I thought you were
-safe at school. But you’ve come. You haven’t
-played the game. The secret will be out. Somebody
-is bound to have seen you. You would be very
-conspicuous in a Harley cap. When you go back to
-school they’ll know. It’s what I’ve always been
-afraid of. They——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’m not going back,” said Bobbie quietly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His father stared at him with glassy eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Not going back? Why? What’s happened?
-You haven’t been expelled?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No. But I’m not going back to a place where I
-have to be ashamed of my father.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_234'>234</span>Johnny took hold of his arm.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Who did you ask if you could come?” he demanded.
-“What reason did you give? Does
-your Headmaster know that you came to see your
-father fight for money?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I didn’t ask,” said Bobbie. “I ran away.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was a moment’s heavy silence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You ran away?” his father said at last. “How?
-Who paid your fare?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I did. You gave me much too much money.
-You thought I needed far more than I did. I never
-spent half of it. I saved it up; and it brought me
-here and paid for my seat.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His father was staring at him dully, but now his
-eyes lit up again with sudden light.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Nobody knows?” he said. “Are you sure?
-If that’s true we can get you back there to-night,
-perhaps, and they’ll never know you came. If
-nobody has seen you here, perhaps——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’m not going back,” said Bobbie.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His father’s eyes met his evenly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You mean,” said he at last, “that you never
-want to be a gentleman? Is it that the dearest
-wish I have means nothing to you at all?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ll go to another school if you like,” said Bobbie
-in a small voice, “but I can’t go back to Harley.
-There’s somebody there who knows. He holds it
-over my head and makes me do things. It’s awful.
-I—I can’t go back.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Somebody knows?” His father was looking
-at him keenly. “Why have you never told me?
-<em>Who</em> knows?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Coles is there.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a moment his father was silent. He stood
-perfectly still, as a man will who is suddenly stricken
-with ill news. And at last his hands moved to his
-dressing-gown.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ll get dressed. We’ll get away from here.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_235'>235</span>Sit down for a moment. Tell me while I dress.
-What has he made you do?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie began to talk. The secrets came out one
-by one.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“This afternoon,” said Bobbie, “I had to get him
-another bottle. And when I’d got it I came away
-by the train at seven o’clock. I was seen coming
-out. I can’t go back. If they’ve found out that I
-came up here I shall be expelled. And if they
-haven’t found out, and I managed to get in, then I
-shall have to go on doing whatever Coles tells me to.”
-He paused. “Next term,” he said presently, “Coles
-expects to be captain of boxing. How could I enjoy
-boxing with him as captain? Let me go to another
-school, father. Somewhere where nobody need
-know at all if you don’t want them to, but not to
-a place where I have to keep the secret by being
-contemptible.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His father was dressed and he did not look at him
-at all. He just took his arm and began to lead him
-out through the crowded room. Everywhere men
-were calling to him. Johnny took no notice. He
-just made a gesture of farewell and went out into the
-street with Bobbie.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There may be a means,” he said at last. “Perhaps
-I can think it out. It’s a terrible thing to run
-away. You’ll have to go back. If none of the
-masters know you came there may be a way to get
-you back. Who was it saw you leave?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s a boy who wouldn’t tell,” said Bobbie.
-“But I——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He stopped abruptly. A man had come upon them
-from behind, and now his hand reached out and was
-resting upon Bobbie’s shoulder.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie turned with a start, and as he looked up
-he knew the sudden shock of a man ducked suddenly
-in cold water. For the first time since he had left the
-school he felt the touch of guilt, not for his father, but
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_236'>236</span>because by a freak of Fate it was Mr Nicholson who
-had found him out. Toby it was who stood looking
-down at him. He knew as well as any boy that it
-was through Toby’s influence that the fellows at
-Harley had been persuaded to stick it out without
-making a cock-shy of the school. And finding him
-unexpectedly at liberty in London, Toby would not
-understand the truth. He would think that he,
-Bobbie Carr, had been the only boy in Harley who
-had given in.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was a short dramatic silence. Then, as
-Bobbie looked up once again, wondering whether he
-ought to speak or whether to leave this to his father,
-he noticed a most remarkable fact—<i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">i.e.</span></i> Toby was
-smiling. What made this more remarkable was
-that he was smiling not at him but, funnily enough,
-at that quiet-mannered little man, his father. And
-as Bobbie watched he slowly held out his hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You won’t remember me properly,” he said,
-“but I haven’t forgotten you, Johnny Winter.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Johnny had been looking from one to the other in
-acute distress, but now a memory was suddenly
-awakened within him, and he took Toby’s hand and
-looked and gently nodded his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Why, yes,” said he. “Yes, certainly I remember
-you. It’s Mr Nicholson. You used to come in and
-box with us when we were training at Harrow, and
-again at Brighton.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby tapped the little man upon the shoulder
-with an emphatic forefinger.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I used to come in and box with you and those
-other fellows wherever and whenever I could. You
-taught me more about boxing than any man of my
-size I ever came up against. Do you remember——”
-He broke off. “My word, that was a great show
-to-night, Johnny. I wouldn’t have missed that
-fight for worlds. I want to congratulate you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He stopped. Johnny was looking at him with
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_237'>237</span>quaint solemnity. Then the thought of Bobbie
-seemed to recur to him, and as he turned to fix him
-with a reproachful eye Johnny said:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“This is my son.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby gave not the least sign of surprise. The
-closest observer could not have told whether he had
-already guessed. His whole bearing was guided by
-an affectionate appreciation of the reasons which
-had prompted Johnny to speak so shyly. So he
-looked at Bobbie with a slow smile, and then back
-again at the straight-backed little man whom they
-had thought too old to fight. Johnny stood with
-his soft hat set squarely upon his head in a way that
-spoke of quiet respectability. His solemn countenance
-was a little anxious and one eye decidedly discoloured.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Then I am very, very glad,” said Toby, “more
-glad than I can say, that you sent him to Harley.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It was because I knew that it was <em>your</em> old school,”
-said Johnny, with a little nod of the head, “that I
-did send him there. And is it that you are a master
-there yourself now?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Until a few weeks ago I was games master there.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Then you have left?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I am on a little holiday.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>A new light of hope came into the little man’s
-eyes. He was clearly seeking for words.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I wonder,” he began, “if you could possibly
-help. My boy has come away from school without
-permission. He came against my wishes and without
-my knowledge to see me fight.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie looked up at Toby straightly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s the last time he’ll ever fight, sir. I should
-never have had another chance. It’s the only
-time I’ve ever seen him in the ring. And I <em>had</em>
-to come.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby began to nod his head absently.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes, of course,” he confessed, “you had to come.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_238'>238</span>So should I have had to if he had been my father.
-Only why didn’t you ask permission?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Johnny broke in quickly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You don’t quite understand, of course,” said he,
-“but the Headmaster of Harley knows me only as
-John Carr. It would be impossible to let it be known
-that a boy at Harley was the son of a professional
-boxer. I—I wanted to give him every possible
-chance in life. My one ambition is to see him a
-gentleman. What chance would he have if he were
-held down always by the shame of my trade?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What shame?” demanded Toby.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Johnny made a deprecating gesture.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You understand,” said he, “one does not meet
-professional pugilists in the homes of gentlemen,
-except as curiosities.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby looked at him inscrutably.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“My son has run away. Unless I can get him
-back there will, of course, be an inquiry, and I shall
-need to come forward. The papers will sooner or
-later get wind of it and the facts will come out.
-When once it is known that a bruiser sent his son to
-a Public School and that he ran away, I shall never
-be able to get him into another school in England,
-except as a notoriety. Is there any means at all
-by which you could help me to get him back?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’m not going back,” interrupted Bobbie, with
-sudden emphasis.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>They turned to look at him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Why not?” said Toby, in astonishment.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The boy was silent, but Johnny spoke up.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You must tell him, Bobbie,” said he. “If we
-want help from Mr Nicholson we must tell him everything.
-There’s a young fellow at the school, Mr
-Nicholson, who happens to know the secret that
-we’ve tried to keep, and by threatening to tell it he
-has made Bobbie do things that he shouldn’t have.
-No doubt this fellow will guess that the boy came up
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_239'>239</span>to see me fight, and even if we should get him safely
-back to-night perhaps he will say now that unless
-Bobbie does this or that for him he will report his
-absence to the Headmaster.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby was looking from one to the other thoughtfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“How did this boy come to know you at all then,
-Johnny?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a moment the little man hesitated. At last
-he began to explain.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“His father had money. There was a time when
-he acted as my backer, and as I won my fights he
-made a very good profit. Then he came to me one
-day and proposed a put-up job. He wanted me to
-fight a man and lose. It was to sway the betting
-to his advantage. But I told him what I thought of
-him and he never backed me again. I didn’t care
-for him to. This son, from what I know, will be
-much the same as the father, and <em>he</em> knows well
-enough my history.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“His name would be Coles,” said Toby.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The little man looked at him in surprise.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You know him?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Very well indeed,” said Toby. “Strangely
-well.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There came an interval of silence. Toby appeared
-to be considering. At last he looked up.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You are the father of a boy at Harley, Mr Carr,”
-said he. “Do you know all that has been happening
-there this term?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Bobbie has told me,” said the little man. “I
-am very sorry.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby nodded his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The storm is nearly over, and now there is next
-term to consider. I am not sure how much Harley’s
-reputation as a sporting school will have suffered by
-the events of the present term, but the probability is
-that an impression will spread that we shall take
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_240'>240</span>some little time to find our feet again. Not much
-will be expected of us at Aldershot, for example.
-It will be known that our professional was sent away.
-Yet it will be at Aldershot that we shall have to
-retrieve our good name. To recommence football
-and try to catch up next term would be unwise.
-We never do play football in the Easter term, nor
-do many of the other schools we play, and in any case
-we should be a term behind everybody else in combination.
-It will be better to let this stand as a lean
-year at football, and instead we must send such a
-team to Aldershot as has never been turned out by
-any Public School before. All the enthusiasm that
-has been stored up this term must be called out. We
-must go boxing mad and sweep the board. If any
-critics think that a term’s ill fortune can hold us
-down we shall show them that they are mistaken.
-This will be possible because the Headmaster who
-ruined our football season is not coming back.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He paused. The father and the son were peering
-at him intently. A look had come over Toby’s
-countenance which would have told those who knew
-him best that he was following a particular train of
-thought and that he had led up to the crucial point.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Do you want your boy to go back to Harley to-night,
-and box for the school in the biggest year in
-their history next term, Mr Carr?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Johnny turned slowly and looked at Bobbie, then
-back at Toby.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“For the last five years I have been counting the
-days to the time when my boy would box for a Public
-School at Aldershot,” said he.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby smiled. He took a step forward and laid
-his hand on Johnny’s shoulder.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Coles is expecting to be captain of boxing next
-term,” said he. “What do you say to that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a moment Johnny said nothing. At last he
-looked up.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_241'>241</span>“I can hardly imagine a worse boy in the school
-to be a captain than Mr Coles’ son,” said he, “and
-if there is anybody else——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There has got to be somebody else,” said Toby.
-“If we let Coles be captain we might as well chuck
-up the sponge. And there is somebody else.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Then,” asked Johnny reasonably enough, “why
-will they not elect him captain?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Because he cannot box.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was a brief silence. At last Toby drew a
-deep breath.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I am going to get a car and take your boy back
-to Harley,” said he.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Will you be able to get him in?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“If he has not been reported absent by the time
-I get back,” said Toby, “I will get him in. It is
-a service for Harley. We need him to box in the
-feathers for the school next term. And here is the
-bargain. If I get him in, will you in return do
-something yourself for Harley, a secret service of
-your own?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What is it?” asked Johnny.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“If I introduce you to a boy in the holidays,
-Johnny Winter, will you teach him to box, and to
-box well enough to justify the school in electing him
-captain of boxing next term?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Johnny looked dubious.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“In three weeks?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You are a man who could do it,” said Toby.
-“And you see what it means. If Coles is elected
-captain Harley is doomed. If this fellow can keep
-him out the whole school will follow him, and there will
-be such a wave of enthusiasm for boxing that we shall
-knock all the other schools sideways at Aldershot.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The little man slowly shook his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“He would want to pay me,” said he. “He
-wouldn’t understand. The whole school would
-know that Bobbie’s father was a pug.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_242'>242</span>Toby made an almost angry gesture.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“When Rouse understands that you are the father
-of a boy at Harley,” said he, “he will understand
-the honour that you will be doing him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The little man stood looking into the distance.
-Toby spoke again.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The time’s getting short. I’m going to take
-Bobbie back. You get along home to bed. You
-must be tired. Will you meet me in town to-morrow,
-and I shall be able to give you news of your boy?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie looked from one to the other quizzically.
-The question of his return to Harley seemed to have
-been decided for him. There was little to be gained
-by saying again that he would not go back. Besides,
-it would be different now. The Old Boy who had
-been on secret service for Harley would be watching
-over his interests. That inconvenient secret was
-not now entirely his own. He would not need to
-worry about his father’s name. If all went well, his
-father would save Harley from Coles, and Harley
-would understand when Coles told the secret what
-great work his father had done.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He looked up. Toby and his father were shaking
-hands in the ponderous manner of two men making
-a solemn compact, and the troubled doubting on
-his father’s face was passing into a sober, trusting
-smile as Toby spoke to him.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_243'>243</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER XXII<br /> <span class='large'>HARD ROE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>Hard Roe had become a changed man. In a single
-crowded minute he had thrown up the part of
-Napoleon Defeated which for a short while he had
-acted with very tolerable ability, and had assumed
-instead the character of a criminal barrister making
-his way to the Law Courts with secret and sensational
-evidence up his sleeve. His gown was ballooning
-proudly behind him, the tails of it kept aloft by the
-pace at which he moved. His hands were no longer
-gripping one at the other behind his back. Instead
-his arms were swinging vigorously from the shoulders
-as if to assist in propelling him to Morley’s before
-Rouse could return. His lips were parted, and such
-hair as he had was rustling upon his head like meadow
-grass before the breaking of a storm.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The bee-line which he was making took him, first,
-past the Rugby posts—mere symbols of a departed
-game—and here he struck the broad pathway along
-the outskirts of the playing fields. Where the way
-branched into two he came to Seymour’s, and he
-would have passed that tall house at his best speed,
-cutting the night air like a land yacht, had not a
-sudden clamour of excited voices, raised in consummate
-confusion, floated down to him from an upstairs
-window and distracted his attention. So he stopped
-and he looked and he listened.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The bright light in a window immediately above
-him, evidently that of a study, indicated without
-doubt the source of the commotion. For a little
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_244'>244</span>while he stood, his head thrown back, peering curiously
-towards it. There was no law against a light
-in a senior’s study at nine o’clock, but there could
-be no excuse for such disorder as was evidenced by
-those so wildly contesting voices.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last he made up his mind. Enthusiasm
-prompted him to hasten upon his way, but allegiance
-to the dogma of unexpectedness was too strong. He
-glanced round him once, then fixed the front door
-with protuberant eyes, lifted the latch and went in.
-If Mr Seymour was out visiting some colleague, the
-occasion called for action on his own part. It might
-well be that this most memorable evening would
-grant him an all-round victory over the school on
-points.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He could not have chosen a more sensational
-moment to appear.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>As he reached the bottom of the stairs a young
-man came dancing down. It may be that those who
-had been watching and who would have followed
-had peeped over the banisters in time and had
-withdrawn to make good their escape, but this
-one young man was in that condition in which
-loneliness is as nothing. He was singing raucously,
-and his manner of descent was like that of a low
-comedian on a sliding staircase. His hair was
-tangled and his countenance was flushed to fever
-heat.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head had drawn back as if in preparation for
-a suitably sudden appearance from the wings, but
-instead he slowly drew himself now to his full height.
-As if at one touch of a magic wand Hard Roe suddenly
-ceased to look merely a silly old man. He was transformed
-into a lonely monarch in a terrible predicament.
-His rather grim face suddenly aged to that
-of a man who has faced all weathers and seen all
-things. The look that came into his eyes whilst he
-watched was not now merely one of anger or contempt;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_245'>245</span>all thoughts had fled from his mind and left
-him cold and stricken, and his stare was testimony
-to the power of unexpectedness.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The young man was his son.</p>
-
-<p class='c012'>Time passed on leaden wings.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His son had stumbled once on the bottom stair
-and had swung forward towards the wall. As he
-righted himself Hard Roe moved out of the shadows
-to meet him, and they came face to face. At first
-the young man did not seem to comprehend the grim
-reality of it. He just stood swaying upon his heels
-and smiling at the old man kindly. Next he broke
-into cackling laughter.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I can’t help it,” he confessed. “I’m—I’m drunk.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Hard Roe threw out his hand and clutched him
-by the shoulder.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Stand up! You are <em>my son</em>.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Roe made a belated attempt to look apologetic.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head laid his other hand alongside the first
-and shook him savagely.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Where have you been? Why are you like this?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He was speaking through clenched teeth and his
-arms were trembling with the force of his passion.
-But there came only an unresponsive silence. If
-there is one particular phase of drunkenness at which
-one may best appreciate the beastliness of it, then it
-is at that moment when one perceives the subject
-looking around him as if in search of a convenient
-spot in which to be sick.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The Head removed his hands and they fell weightily
-to his sides. He began to jerk words incredulously
-at his son, as if his power of speech was somehow
-dislocated.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You understand—you understand. You are
-the Headmaster’s son. You are captain of football.
-You came as an <em>example to them</em>. I——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His passion slowly subsided. He began to grow
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_246'>246</span>hard and isolated, impregnable. Once he heard a
-hurried scuffling upstairs as if someone were hiding
-away all traces of carousal and vanishing quickly
-from the scene. Now the whole house was very still.
-He had an implicit belief that even if the banisters
-were not lined with the heads of inquisitive boys, at
-least every member of the house was listening at an
-open door, and he knew that they would be wondering
-what Hard Roe would do at this, the crisis of his
-life. He knew that he must not hesitate. He
-gave his son a final shaking.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Have you no explanation at all?” he begged.
-“Have you nothing whatever to say to me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The boy could find no proper answer. His eyes
-were closing sleepily. He had propped himself
-against the banisters. The final exhilaration that
-had sent him downstairs in that eccentric dance had
-deserted him, and a feeling of giddy biliousness had
-come in its place. He shook his head with a comical
-slantwise motion.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Above the many conflicting emotions in his mind
-now the Head remembered his reputation. Throughout
-his life, whenever he had been in doubt, facing
-two roads, he had taken always that way which he
-felt he would not be expected to take. Now the
-unexpected had, in its turn, come upon him with a
-rush. Once again two ways lay open to him, and he
-knew now that the way which would be the unexpected
-way would be a way that was terribly hard,
-albeit absolutely just.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He suddenly tilted up his chin. A glare of dour
-pugnacity had settled upon his features as if in token
-of decision. Then at last he spoke, and his voice
-was resolute and even.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There is one law in this school, and I show no
-favour. It was you that I brought here as an example
-to a school which knew no discipline. Now it is as
-an example that I shall have to send you away.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_247'>247</span>You are expelled. To-morrow you leave this school
-in disgrace.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He stopped.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>In all the house there was not one solitary creak.
-The silence was absolutely cold and merciless.
-And then at last a footstep sounded in the portico.
-Mr Seymour was coming in. The Head turned and
-looked at him with a lofty dignity. It was as if he
-wanted the position to be perfectly clear to the other
-before he spoke. Then when Mr Seymour had looked
-dazedly first at the boy and then at the Head, Hard
-Roe spoke up.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Please have this boy taken to bed at once,” he
-said gently. “I have expelled him. To-morrow
-he will leave the school.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He moved to the open door and, reaching it, passed
-out, whilst Mr Seymour still stood looking fixedly at
-the boy as if he could not believe his eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He went out into the dark with his head a little
-bowed and his hands tight clasped again behind his
-gown. So he made his way slowly back towards the
-distant school, and now the night seemed very chill.
-There was no longer any attraction in seeking Rouse.
-Rouse was saved. Hard Roe’s part at Harley was
-played. The last act was done.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It might very well have ended in his son leaving
-with him, proudly and almost in disdain. That
-could not be now. Had he allowed his boy to stay
-on to the end of term and then to leave quietly whilst
-he expelled Rouse, the name of Roe would have stood
-for ever in disrepute. It was his duty to do all in
-his power to save that name. However keenly the
-school disliked his character, they would know now
-that he had at least been true to it at the crisis of his
-life. His prophecy would perhaps come true.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It might, after all, be the outstanding boldness of
-his last act by which the school would ever afterwards
-remember him. He had very nearly forgotten
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_248'>248</span>how badly he had wanted that to be so a short while
-back.</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>At last the Head passed through the old oak door
-again and back into his own room. Then it was as
-though the veil of night fell gently over the confines
-of the school. Here and there, in the haunts of the
-privileged, lights still glittered for an hour or so,
-showing that some were still up and about in Harley;
-but in the houses and the body of the school they
-vanished one by one, as if the gusty wind were scurrying
-on its rounds and looking in at windows to blow
-them out.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>A full hour passed before the figure of one who was
-weary and inordinately cold appeared with decided
-caution at the little gate beside the school pavilion
-and, climbing over, began to trudge disappointedly
-along the line of trees right round the outskirts of
-the playing fields towards Morley’s. It was Rouse,
-and he had both hands rammed into his trouser
-pockets and the collar of his coat turned up around
-his neck. There was an atmosphere about the school
-that was unusually lonely, and he felt it. His errand
-had proved utterly fruitless. He had no particular
-idea how he was going to get in again. He missed
-the company of Terence. His intention to keep in
-the shadows was taking him a long way round and
-he was in no mood to enjoy the walk. Altogether
-things were rotten. At last he came to Morley’s and
-stopped to look up for a moment at the forbidding
-walls. Then he moved with a kind of ill-humoured
-curiosity to the hall window. There came back to
-him the memory of a night of long ago when he
-and Terence had as youngsters crouched below that
-selfsame window to find themselves locked out,
-and how at last a small boy had tiptoed down the
-stairs to their rescue, had opened the window without
-a word and let them in, and had then gone peaceably
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_249'>249</span>to bed. That small boy had been Henry
-Hope.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse gazed at the window now with the affection
-of an old friend. Terence must surely have made
-some plan to effect his entry without his having to
-ring the front-door bell. His hand reached out and
-passed cautiously across the window-pane. Then he
-seized the framework and tried it gingerly. Without
-a moment’s delay there came the sound of a gentle
-movement within, and he perceived a long arm reaching
-towards him behind the glass. Next the window
-was slowly raised and a tousled head of hair was
-thrust out into the night. Rouse raised himself on
-to his toes and inclined his body forward.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was Terence, and he spoke in a hoarse whisper.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Don’t make too much row. Has anybody seen
-you? Have you had any luck?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse levered himself on to the window-sill and
-poised there miserably for a moment before he
-answered, and even then he did not speak. He just
-shook his head dismally and scrambled in. And
-then he sneezed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence seized him in a steely grip and thrust a
-handkerchief violently into his face. But Rouse
-freed himself vexedly, listened a moment for any
-sign of alarm, and then proceeded, in the time-honoured
-manner of all who keep late hours, to
-remove his boots.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He turned once before beginning to climb the staircase
-and looked thoughtfully through the darkness at
-the shape that was Terence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You have not,” said he softly, “such a thing as
-a hot drink concealed about your person, I presume?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence slowly lowered the window and secured it
-with the latch. When he turned he shook his head
-regretfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Thank you,” whispered Rouse. “That’s all I
-wanted to know.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_250'>250</span>Next moment he was making his way nimbly upstairs.
-Terence looked round him once, then followed
-after. The warmth of a bed had become a strangely
-appealing thought.</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>For two hours Harley had slumbered. The last
-good-nights had all been said. The last lights had
-been snuffed. Only the great clock over the school,
-vigilantly marking time like the ghost of some soldier
-of the king, was still awake and looking far out into
-the country, when a car came droning down the highroad,
-branched along the fork that led past the playing
-fields and stopped beside the school pavilion.
-There was a moment’s muttered conversation, then
-out of the car stepped Toby Nicholson. He turned
-once to the small figure wrapped in rugs that was
-still reclining in a corner.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You understand?” he said. “Wait here till
-I’ve spied out the lie of the land. Then I’ll come
-back and fetch you. I may be some little time, but
-you must wait.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie nodded his head obediently, and Toby
-turned and scrambled over the narrow gate into the
-school grounds. Off he set along the line of the trees,
-stepping, had he but known it, almost in the very
-footprints that Rouse had left in his tracks. He
-went swiftly, and at times, with a furtive glance
-around him, he left the shadows and slipped across
-the open to cut a corner. At last he came to Seymour’s
-and here he stopped, just as Rouse had stopped
-at Morley’s, and glanced up at the windows. Everywhere
-the blinds were drawn. There was not one
-solitary light. He had expected as much, and now
-he had to come swiftly to a decision. By hook or
-by crook he intended to get into the house and rouse
-Mr Seymour. There were several ways and means.
-He could ring the bell or batter upon the door with
-his clenched fists until he was answered. He could
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_251'>251</span>throw stones at windows. These methods would,
-however, necessarily excite undue commotion, and
-this Toby determined to avoid. Since nothing much
-could be accomplished before morning by those
-within, there existed the alternative, of course, of
-camping out under the trees until the first greyness
-of the dawn broke through the night, and surreptitiously
-slipping Bobbie into the house at the
-first opening of the door, if necessary with the connivance
-of a servant. On a winter’s night this
-solution was, however, emphatically inconvenient.
-There remained, therefore, the only really sound means
-of entry, that of the break-in. Without any great
-hesitation Toby decided upon this latter. He had once
-committed a burglary for the benefit of the cinema,
-and he saw no valid reason why he should not break
-into Mr Seymour’s bedroom for the benefit of the
-school. He cast an inquisitive eye at the window
-behind which Mr Seymour would be sleeping, and
-considered the question of the ascent. Mr Seymour
-was a quiet, rather faded gentleman who affected a
-hat-guard all the year round and who looked upon
-school life from the scholarly rather than the
-magisterial standpoint. Above all, he hated to be
-bothered.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Somewhere within him Toby cherished a distinct
-affection for this old-fashioned gentleman, and he
-was aware that this was reciprocated. To how
-great an extent, however, this esteem would be
-affected by his entering the gentleman’s room by the
-window at one <span class='sc'><span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">A.M.</span></span> he did not care to surmise. He
-made a brief inspection, then secured a firm hold on
-the drain-pipe, collected a bunch of ivy in the other
-hand, and commenced to climb. At first his progress
-was slow. By skilful work he nevertheless rose foot
-by foot until he at last reached a window on the first
-floor parallel with Mr Seymour’s own. He swung
-on to this window-ledge and gravely considered
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_252'>252</span>the prospect of his being able to move sideways
-across the face of the wall. So far as he could see
-there was only one practicable route. He must
-climb to the story next above, make use of the attic
-window-ledge, and swing from here to the window
-immediately above his destination. From here he
-could drop from his hands and land neatly and
-daintily, like the falling petal of a flower, upon Mr
-Seymour’s window-sill. This he did with delightful
-grace.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Five minutes later the blade of his pocket-knife
-was moving gently between the upper and lower
-halves of the window, and after a moment’s work he
-had pushed the catch carefully aside. He paused
-then for a moment, like the look-out in the crow’s
-nest of a ship, to gaze down and take in the surrounding
-view. For the first time in his life he was clinging
-to the wall of a house in the loneliest hour of the
-night and about to break into a gentleman’s apartment.
-He sighed happily as a man will who delights
-in new experiences, turned inwards and slowly raised
-the lower half of the window. Then he stepped into
-the room and sat down on the inner window-ledge.
-The blast of cold air which his entry had introduced
-had an almost immediate effect in a noise of pronounced
-discontent from the recesses of the room.
-As his eyes grew used to the dark he dimly perceived
-a long arm reaching a bunch of blanket and drawing
-it gratefully about the pillow. Toby collected himself
-for discovery. The terrifying thought flashed
-through his mind that he might possibly have come
-to the wrong room. Supposing that by some freak
-of Fate Mr Seymour chanced to have changed his
-quarters during the last few days? He cast a hurried
-glance at his only means of escape, then steeled
-himself for the worst and spoke:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Mr Seymour.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At first there was no reply. It was difficult to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_253'>253</span>know, however, whether this was because Mr Seymour
-was not yet awake or whether he was endeavouring
-to decide what to say in reply. At last Toby
-repeated his salutation.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Mr Seymour woke in a sudden convulsion of uncertainty,
-shuddered a great many times, and spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What?” said he. “Oh, please—for goodness’
-sake do shut that door.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby considerately closed the window.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“May I switch on the light?” he inquired.
-“Shall I fall over anything?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Whatever is it?” sighed Mr Seymour. “Put
-on the light, yes. Really, I—— Who is it wants
-me? I——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby stumbled across the room, cannoned violently
-into the bed and, reaching the switch, at last flooded
-the room with light. As he did so he explained
-himself briefly:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It’s me—Nicholson.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Mr Seymour peered at him dazedly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Nicholson? Why, yes, I see it is. But how
-very odd. Do you know, I <em>quite</em> thought you’d gone
-away. Quite. I must have been dreaming. How
-very strange.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby approached and sat down pleasantly on the
-bed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I did go away,” he confessed. “But you know
-how a felon always returns to the scene of his crime.
-As a matter of fact, I have just come in through the
-window.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He paused a moment as if to allow this information
-to sink well in. Mr Seymour took the news oddly.
-He just sat up in bed and looked as if he were about
-to weep.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“What time is it?” he demanded. “Dear me,
-how troublesome a night! It seems only a few
-minutes ago that I was having a boy put to bed.
-Whatever is it now?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_254'>254</span>Toby leaned over him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Were all your boys present to-night?” he
-inquired. “Was anybody reported missing?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The other grew visibly perplexed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Really, I can hardly say. So much has been
-happening to-night. No doubt you have not yet
-heard——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby waved the point aside.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I may have done you a good turn. I hope so,
-anyway. One of the youngsters in your house has
-been bullied into getting whisky for someone amongst
-your seniors, and at last he’s kicked. So this evening
-he ran away.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Good gracious me!” exclaimed the other, “who’s
-run away? Why, only this evening I have had——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Fortunately,” said Toby, pressing on hastily,
-“I came across him myself and I have been able to
-lead him back to the fold. It may be in time for
-you to take this matter of the whisky in hand yourself
-before anything comes out about it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Mr Seymour rose a little farther out of his bed and
-pointed at Toby excitedly. He was suddenly very
-wide awake.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You say this boy ran away? I am not surprised.
-This evening a boy was found in this house drunk,
-and he was expelled.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Expelled?” repeated Toby, cocking one eyebrow
-in surprise. “By the Head, do you mean?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Who was the boy?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It was his own son,” said Mr Seymour, and
-drawing himself completely out of bed he began to
-feel for his slippers. Suddenly he looked up with a
-jerk.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby was still staring at him thoughtfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“He found his own son drunk?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“And nobody else?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_255'>255</span>“Apparently not,” said Mr Seymour. He stood
-up. “Nicholson,” he demanded, “who is this boy?
-And,” he added, “how on earth did you get into
-this house?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“His name is Carr,” said Toby. “And I came in
-via the window. I crawled up the wall.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Mr Seymour approached the window, looked at it
-incredulously, then opened the lower half and peered
-out.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It is a nasty drop,” he declared.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby moved to the window and stood beside
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes,” said he. “It looks worse from here.
-Nevertheless that is how I got in. Those pieces of
-cloth you see there hanging on nails amongst the ivy
-are pieces of my trousers. In other words, you have
-been burgled.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But why on earth didn’t you ring the bell?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby tapped him upon the shoulder.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The boy who ran away is outside in a car. I
-thought you would rather we got him in without
-attracting attention.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But, goodness me,” said the other, “a number
-of boys in the house will know that he was out.
-What will be the excuse?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The other boys in the house,” said Toby, “know
-a great deal more about what’s been going on than
-you do. You can bet your life on that. And after
-this evening’s little entertainment there won’t be
-many who won’t understand the truth. My advice
-to you is to let him come in and go to bed without
-a word. You yourself need know nothing
-about it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Mr Seymour was looking at him dubiously.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The reason I say this,” Toby explained, “is
-that it means a lot to the school if we can come
-through this term without the spirit having been
-knocked out of any single boy by the Head’s idea of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_256'>256</span>justice. It won’t be quite so satisfactory if this
-youngster should be found out. It’s the last lap,
-too, Seymour. In another ten days term will be
-over.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He paused.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“There will be another term following after,” said
-Mr Seymour gloomily.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby nodded his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes,” he admitted; “but it will not be quite
-the same. Next term the Grey Man is coming
-back.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He smiled. Mr Seymour gazed at him with open
-mouth.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Are you sure?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I saw him yesterday,” said Toby. “But it is
-better that the school as a whole should not know
-just yet. If one thing rather than another would
-send Harley completely off its head just now it would
-be the rumour that the Headmaster was defeated
-and that the Grey Man was coming back. Well, we
-must play fair. There is something about the Head
-that at times makes him almost likeable in his loneliness.
-Now the only ally that he had has let him
-down and the Head’s done the right thing by expelling
-him. There will be hard days coming for
-the Head, and, after all, you and I are masters and
-have a master’s point of view. I fancy the Head
-knows his fate already, but I think that we ought to
-respect his position to the end. It’s up to us to let
-him break the news when he feels ready. Don’t you
-think so?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Mr Seymour nodded his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It makes a difference,” said he. “I had always
-rather looked upon you as an Old Boy pure and
-simple, Nicholson. But I see now that there is a
-little of something else in your composition as well.
-If you will go out and fetch this boy I will see that he
-gets in by the front door.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_257'>257</span>Toby held out his hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I hope you’ll forgive me getting in by the
-window,” he said. “It was the only way. I’ll go
-out by the door now, though, and leave it unbolted
-for Carr. I shall see you again soon.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You will be coming back?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I am starting again next term,” said Toby.
-“See you then.”</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>With morning sensation came like a dust-storm to
-sweep Harley in its whirl and leave her spinning.
-The whole of Roe’s own house, of course, knew overnight.
-Those who had been asleep were violently
-awakened to be told. And in the morning the
-members of Seymour’s spread out fanwise and ran
-through the other houses before their breakfast,
-carrying the news.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At morning prayers there was some kind of hope
-that the Head would make an announcement revoking
-his selection of a football captain, and perhaps
-even acknowledging the claims of Rouse, but instead
-he came in without an indication of any kind that
-anything was untoward and faced them. His eyes
-roamed round the sea of their upturned faces. He
-noticed Rouse in the forefront, but Rouse did not
-look his way. Next his eyes turned upon the rebels
-of the Sixth lined up beneath his dais, each in a most
-devout and learned attitude, and finally he turned
-to Pointon and jerked his head at him. So Pointon’s
-voice broke the silence at last as he began to read.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>When, later, the moment came for the Head to
-walk down the aisle between them, his gown majestically
-swinging, and to pass through the open doors
-before their shuffling dismissal to their classes could
-begin, he walked with a quick and irritable step, and
-it was not until he had reached the quiet of his own
-room that he remembered one saving thought in his
-bitter sorrow. They did not yet know that he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_258'>258</span>himself would, at the end of term, leave them in
-triumphant possession of their own unwritten laws.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>One master and one boy were, as we know, in the
-secret, but the boy had honourably promised not
-to speak of it to anyone in the school, not even to
-Rouse or Terence or Henry Hope.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It is not your secret,” Toby had said. “You
-have stumbled upon it, and so it is not yours to
-tell.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>In Seymour’s they had looked at Bobbie curiously
-in the morning, and a great many boys of his own age
-had gathered about him to satisfy their curiosity by
-asking questions. But he had smiled at them and
-shaken his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I went out for someone and I was late back,”
-was all he would say; “but I got in all right.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For the rest, he let their imagination carry them
-where it would. Rouse came upon him and he too
-would have begun to question, but Bobbie gave him
-a note from Toby and this appeared to afford him
-wholesome satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a little while those who knew that Roe had
-found a friend in Coles wondered what part he had
-played in Roe’s downfall, and indeed curiosity as to
-which other boys from somewhere behind the scenes
-had really been responsible for his own son’s defection
-troubled the Head himself; but the awe in which he
-held his father effectually prevented Roe from turning
-King’s evidence. He went quietly, with abashed
-mien, intensely annoyed with his father for ever
-having fetched him from Wilton to become a puppet
-at Harley. Afterwards Hard Roe seemed almost to
-forget the incident, for he asked no questions of anybody
-in the school. It may well be that in certain
-respects his sense of pride was satisfied by the certainty
-that his iron justice would live in the memory
-of the boys he would leave at Harley long after he
-had gone, and that for this reason he preferred to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_259'>259</span>leave things entirely as they were. By digging deeper
-into the mystery and dragging to light whatever
-other miscreants there were in Seymour’s he would
-seem to be finding excuses for his son by sweeping
-away a handful of other boys as bad as he on the
-grounds that they had led him astray, when his one
-expulsion would have all the effect that was necessary
-in curing the evil by making an example of the
-chief wrong-doer.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He had a distaste for excuses of any kind. His son
-should have been strong enough to stand alone.
-Instead he had sinned, and he could not pardon his
-son for drinking whisky on the grounds that another
-boy had given it to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles lived in considerable anxiety during those
-last long days, because he was unaware of the Head’s
-real attitude and quite uncertain whether, before he
-left, Roe had given him away.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He had Bobbie before him and extracted an oath
-of secrecy.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“If you breathe so much as a word of this,” he
-had said, “I’ll tell your secret too, and all the school
-shall know that a low professional pug has sent his
-brat to a school for the sons of gentlemen. Not
-only that. If you let me down I’ll see that your life
-here is a never-ending nightmare. Are you going to
-promise?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I don’t see any need to promise,” said Bobbie,
-“but I’ll do so if you like.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles shook his fist angrily.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I shall hold you to it,” he declared. “One word,
-and you’ll wish you’d been born dumb.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Bobbie turned and left him. After all, there was
-nobody he would need to tell—now.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The last few days of term passed slowly. The
-most sensational thing that could have come about
-had happened. That which followed was only
-aftermath. To the last day they did not know how
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_260'>260</span>completely they had won the long fight, nor guess
-that when Hard Roe stood in the great hall and spoke
-to them of their Christmas holidays in a quiet and
-unemotional voice he was in reality bidding them
-good-bye.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He had not altogether the bearing of a man who
-had failed. It was rather that of a man who knew
-that he would leave his mark.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_261'>261</span>
- <h2 class='c007'>CHAPTER XXIII<br /> <span class='large'>THE DAY OF RECKONING</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>It was the first afternoon of the Easter term, and
-from his position beside the window of his study
-Rouse was staring steadfastly towards the distant
-boundaries of Harley. Presently he turned and
-looked towards Terence, who sat buried to the chin
-in a basket chair, with his feet upon the mantelpiece.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I find myself to-day,” said he, “in a mood of
-the most blissful content. You, sir, can you tell me
-why that is?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“No,” said Terence. “Unless somebody has
-mended that hole in your trouser pocket for you
-during the holidays and your locker key doesn’t fall
-through into your sock any longer. That used to
-irritate you a good deal last term, I remember.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That is not the correct answer,” responded Rouse.
-“And you will, moreover, be awarded one bad mark
-for your stupidity. If you are going to have another
-shot, I think you had better stand half-way, with the
-ladies and the little boys.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence turned away and snuggled deeper into
-the recesses of his chair.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It leaves me cold,” said he.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Then I will speak with more warmth,” snapped
-Rouse, “you poor frozen piece of fish. Let me tell
-you that you are what our American cousins would
-term a boob or bone-head. If you were to unhook
-your heels from my mantelpiece and come and balance
-yourself beside me for a minute, you would perhaps
-understand what I mean. Just now the Grey Man
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_262'>262</span>passed along the top road going towards Mainwright’s.
-When he had gone I found myself casting my eye
-around the old estate, and I may assure you, young
-Nicholson, the place did not seem the same.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You were looking at it from a different angle,”
-explained Terence. “It’s that squint of yours.
-You never know <em>where</em> you’re looking half the time.”
-A brief silence followed. At last Rouse came over
-to the fire and, standing beside Terence, placed his
-hands on his hips and began to explain.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The Grey Man has come back and the good sun
-is shining once more over the old homeside. That’s
-what I mean, you flat,” said he. “When I look
-back,” he added after a moment, “it seems to me
-that two things stand out from amongst the events
-of last term. Passing over those bad times when we
-heard that Toby was to go and that house footer was
-to stop, and such good times as the Rainhurst match,
-the two things that I always remember first are the
-moment when I first knew that I was not to be
-captain of Rugger, and the moment when I realised
-that Coles was giving me a licking.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It is of some interest to me to know,” said
-Terence, “that you are actually able to think of two
-things at once. I was not previously aware that
-you could.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse took no notice.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The fact that I am responsible for the dud year
-Harley has had at Rugger,” said he, “worried me a
-good deal until I had a chow-chow with your brother,
-and then I began to look forward to this term as I
-have never looked forward to any term before. Now I
-am really back again, and the Grey Man has returned.
-I tell you, Nick, my son, I feel good. In other words,
-I am chock full of beans.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That must be what I heard rattling about inside
-your head just now,” answered Terence, “though it
-sounded to me more like dried peas.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_263'>263</span>“The days which I have spent with Mr Carr have
-been some of the happiest of my life,” insisted
-Rouse, “and they have done me such a power of
-good that I am half inclined to catch you a severe
-clip on the head in token.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence rose and stretched himself.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Mr Carr,” said he, “is a white man. What do
-you make the time? I’ve an idea we ought to be
-getting down to the meeting.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse consulted his watch, moved to the window
-and looked out.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes,” said he, “they’re beginning to show up.
-Foster and Pointon are coming down the road and
-Smythe is just going by. Give me your hand and
-we will tag along.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>As they left the house and started across towards
-the hall where the general meeting was to be held
-Rouse became peculiarly quiet. Once Terence
-turned to him and noted the brightness of his eyes,
-and Rouse looked up and spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I wish I hadn’t talked so much about my blissful
-content,” he observed. “I’m beginning to feel a
-bit different. It’s perfectly true that nobody who
-knows Coles wants him to be captain of boxing, and
-it would be a jolly good lesson to him if he missed it,
-particularly during a term when we’re going all out
-to smash the record, but it isn’t everybody who does
-know Coles.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Well?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“And,” demanded Rouse, “why should they want
-<em>me</em> anyhow? I’m not the only fellow in the school
-who goes in for games. I had my innings last term,
-and I played it about as cleverly as a fellow who
-goes into a nursery to amuse a kid and promptly
-treads on his balloon. If anybody <em>does</em> mention my
-name at the meeting as a possible captain, the probability
-is that chaps will get up one by one and go
-out groaning. I should say that most of the fellows
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_264'>264</span>are sick to death of my name. That’s how I feel
-about it anyway.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You feel like that about it,” said Terence gently,
-“because you’re batty. It isn’t your fault. We
-must learn not to laugh at you for it. You just
-can’t help it. You’re batty, that’s all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Not at all. I was as keen as mustard to learn
-to box, especially from a man like Mr Carr, but I’d
-just as soon box for the school like an ordinary chap
-as be stuck on top and made captain.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“They want you as captain,” said Terence,
-“because the whole school will follow you and do
-whatever you say, and they want the whole school
-to go boxing mad. It may interest you to know that
-I intend to don the gloves and clout a few people
-myself in due course.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse shook his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Everybody who’s spoken to me,” concluded
-Terence, “everybody who <em>is</em> anybody——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Nobody’s anybody very much,” observed Rouse,
-“after they’ve once been seen speaking to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Everybody who is anybody,” repeated the other
-indifferently, “has been enthusiastic about it beyond
-all expectations. They reckon——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He stopped. They had come to the entrance to
-the hall, and Rouse made his way in and hurriedly
-deposited himself upon a convenient chair.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Sit down,” he commanded. “Don’t stand up
-there staring. I don’t want any attention called
-to me at all. I feel about the most congenital idiot
-any human being could feel.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Terence sat down.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Are you quite sure you can see all right from
-there,” he inquired. “Shall I ask that pretty
-gentleman in front to take his hat off?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That isn’t a hat,” said Rouse, casting dull care
-aside in the swiftly changing manner that was his
-wont, “that’s the gentleman’s hair. He has it
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_265'>265</span>like that because he’s in the wool-gathering business.
-It isn’t quite the same colour as it used to be last
-term though, is it? There seems a faint suspicion
-of early autumn about it. He’s been reading that
-advertisement, ‘All handsome men are bronzed,’
-I expect, and he thinks it refers to the hair.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The gentleman addressed turned haughtily and
-addressed himself to Terence.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Would you mind asking your little boy to be
-quiet,” he said courteously. “I find his remarks a
-trifle distracting, and I’ve paid for my seat the same
-as what you ’ave.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“One of the curls is missing,” commented Rouse.
-“Is some lady the proud possessor, or has his little
-brother been playing with the shears? It gives the
-head a rather mothy appearance anyhow. Reminds
-me of a part-worn doormat more than anything else.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Oh, rub his face in a bun,” retorted the gentleman
-with the golden locks.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse opened his mouth to reply but his final
-comment was cut short. Toby Nicholson had risen
-and there had come a respectful hush. Then,
-because it was his first official appearance on his
-return to Harley, cheering broke out. He coloured
-awkwardly and stood for a minute waiting the chance
-to speak, and eventually he began. He spoke just
-long enough to explain the position to them, and to
-remind those who might not have realised the fact
-that the school must certainly have suffered in reputation
-by the leanness of the term just past.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The way to win back our name as one of the first
-sporting schools in England,” said Toby, “is not to
-attempt a late cut at a football season, but to put
-the whole of our heart and soul into boxing and the
-sports. For that reason you need a captain who can
-really lead the school into a record year. Boxing
-has always counted for more at Harley than at many
-other schools, and this term it must count as the only
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_266'>266</span>game worth while. We want every fellow in the
-school who’s capable to try his hand at it. Only so
-can we find the very best talent in the school.” He
-stopped. “Who is proposed?” he said after a
-moment.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Without delay a peculiarly villainous-looking
-youth rose from his seat and stood for a moment
-waiting.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse nodded towards him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“That lad has a nice open face,” he observed
-gravely.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Open?” whispered Terence. “You wait till
-he laughs. It opens from ear to ear.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There came the muffled sound of a suffocated
-guffaw, and at the same moment the terrible young
-man spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I propose Coles,” said he, “the senior old colour.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I second that,” declared another, rising swiftly
-from a corner seat.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was a moment’s hesitation, then a totally
-different type of fellow bobbed up from a position
-close to Rouse. It was Smythe, and he spoke with
-vigour.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Mainwright’s house have held a meeting to-day,
-and on their behalf I wish to propose that Rouse
-be elected captain of boxing.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He offered no explanation. He just waited a
-moment and then sat down.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Forthwith Saville rose from beside Coles.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Seconded,” said he.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>There was a sweeping murmur partly of surprise
-and partly of assent, and then Toby looked round
-them quickly.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Is anyone else proposed?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was evident that there was not. But the villainous
-young man who had spoken first rose in his
-seat defiantly and faced Toby.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It is quite natural, sir,” said he, “that after
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_267'>267</span>last year’s disappointment some of the fellows should
-want to pay Rouse this compliment, but it is an unwritten
-law that the captain of any game shall always
-be the senior old colour of the game and, if possible,
-the best man at it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Next Pointon rose.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Is it not a fact, sir,” he inquired, “that when
-one selects a captain one chooses a man with certain
-definite capabilities as a leader, and not necessarily
-the best man at the game? Sometimes the two go
-together, but this year we require above anything
-else the man who can get the very most out of the
-school. Is there any unwritten law which prevents
-Rouse being proposed in that capacity?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby seemed about to answer, but there came
-instead a sharp surprise. Coles himself was upon
-his feet, just as when he had once before been frivolously
-nominated as captain of Rugger, and he was
-looking round them brazenly, as if by making a bold
-show he could effectually hide the fear that was in
-him. And this was the fear. Towards the end of
-last term it had become common knowledge in
-Seymour’s not only that he was sending a fag to get
-whisky for him from the town, but that, although he
-had been the prime instigator in the affair that had
-brought Roe expulsion, he had made no attempt
-whatever to help Roe or to alleviate his heavy share
-of punishment. In point of fact, he had slunk off.
-The school had begun to realise this and Coles knew
-it. The fear that it might possibly prevent his
-unanimous election as captain had troubled him
-during the holidays, but at such times he had found
-comfort in the fact that he could not see any suitable
-rival who could be sent up against him. He knew
-now the limit of their search for a man. The best
-they could find was Rouse, a fellow whom he had
-thrashed in his study. A scornful smile was playing
-about his lips. He began to speak.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'><span class='pageno' id='Page_268'>268</span>“Look here,” he said, “I wanted to keep out of
-this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>That was how one might have expected Coles to
-begin. They listened to him listlessly. For a while
-he seemed to be idly chattering, as if seeking to make
-clear his own great modesty, but at last he came
-to the point. He was suggesting a fight. They
-listened now with pricked ears. A look of surprised
-delight had flashed into Toby’s eyes. Rouse was
-peering at Coles incredulously. But it was true.
-He was claiming the rights of an old colour.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Before a man who has never shown any interest
-in boxing treads on all precedent and makes himself
-a dummy captain,” Coles had said, “other fellows
-ought to be given a chance to see what he can do.
-Let Rouse come into the ring. If he can beat me I
-shall be delighted to vote for him myself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He was rambling on pleadingly in this strain when
-it was suddenly noticed that Rouse too was upon
-his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’m perfectly ready to fight you,” said he,
-“to-day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>To the Grey Man Toby explained it in another
-light.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It was what I had hoped might happen,” he
-said. “Because if we left it to an election they
-would elect Rouse, and that would leave Coles with a
-virtual grievance. But as it is, he himself has chosen
-this means of ballot, and if he is beaten now he can
-have no cause for complaint at all, and Harley will
-be the healthier for seeing a fellow whom they have
-at last summed up thoroughly well outed.”</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>The school gymnasium was packed from end to
-end. Wherever one looked boys of all shapes and
-sizes seemed to be piled one on top of the other to
-the level of the roof. Whoever had not properly
-understood the truth about Coles knew it now.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_269'>269</span>The position was very clear indeed. All that had
-been whispered about him in the last days of the
-Christmas term had been true. The fellows in
-Seymour’s had admitted it. Coles had turned spy.
-He had palled up to the school’s worst enemy. He
-had bullied his fag. He had got whisky into the
-house and through him Roe had been expelled. He
-had done no single thing for which the school did not,
-now that they understood, condemn him with unutterable
-disgust. And Rouse was standing up to
-him now to fight him and, if he could, to give him
-the licking he so richly deserved, as a present from
-the school. Coles’ day of reckoning had come.
-Only one thing troubled them. No one could say
-how Rouse could be expected to win. It was true
-that they had such astounding confidence in his
-ability to do the seemingly impossible that this did
-not worry them very much. After all, he had won
-the Rainhurst match when it had seemed to be lost.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Yet even supposing he had spent his holidays
-learning to box so as to be able to rescue them from
-the dread results of Coles becoming their boxing
-captain, could he with a bare month’s practice really
-hope to defeat the man who had boxed for the school
-at Aldershot?</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles was first into the ring. He came with a
-lofty and contented air, looking significantly round
-the crowded walls. Then he sat down and Rouse
-came into sight. The bearing of those whose only
-part was to look on was very proper. There was no
-hysterical cheering. Each man received a courteous
-round of applause. Toby Nicholson came to the
-ropes and told them briefly the object of the match.
-Once again clapping was the only evidence of their
-approval. The moments passed.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>At last it was time.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>In a breathless silence the two rose to their feet.
-Justice had turned to them now to hold the scales
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_270'>270</span>in a steady hand. They were meeting at last on
-level terms. No study walls hemmed them in.
-Their quarrel was to be fought at last fairly to a
-finish. Staring stolidly one at the other they met,
-and their right hands touched for a moment in token
-that the play was fair. Then they slipped suddenly
-into a ready stance and the fight had begun.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Now Rouse began to realise that the things Johnny
-Winter had told him must be true. That terrible
-nervousness that had been upon him for the last two
-hours had passed. Doubt and mistrust in his power
-to do this thing that the whole school were expecting
-of him had precipitately vanished, as Johnny had
-declared they would when once he was in the ring,
-and in their place had come, not overflowing confidence,
-but detachment.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>His mind grew concentrated upon the immediate
-future in a way that entirely obliterated all that
-tensely watching crowd from the picture. He was
-isolated from them. He could not see things from
-their point of view at all. He only knew that he
-had been appointed by the school to deal punishment
-to one whom they had condemned, and the
-task had so tightened every sinew in his body that
-he was fretting to begin. It had become impossible
-to conceive defeat. Coles had come to the end of
-his innings and was faced with the reckoning of his
-score against the school. And he had to reckon now
-not with a miserable novice but with one who understood
-clearly how to use his fists. Rouse had learned
-no tricks. He had not even acquired the art of easy
-movement in the ring, but he knew how to stand and
-how to hit, and the straight left which was almost the
-only blow that Johnny had allowed him to rely upon
-was ready for its work. The moment that Coles’
-hands were up Rouse slipped in. Coles waited for
-him, just as he had waited when they had fought in a
-study, ready to shoot in his counter the instant Rouse
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_271'>271</span>exposed himself. But times had changed. Rouse
-showed him one quick threatening movement with
-his right, and as Coles slipped to avoid the blow, there
-came at him like a piston, very straight from the
-left shoulder, a closed glove, hard and weighted like
-a loaded stick, and it thudded against his mouth and
-jolted back his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He reeled with astonishment, and jumped in with
-a vengeful counter, under a somewhat mistaken impression
-that the blow was a fluke. But he was met
-by a sure and classic guard that kept out every blow
-he knew; and the moment that he tired of trying
-and drew back to think things over, that left came
-out again and helped him on his way. And suddenly
-he understood. He had been trapped. His pride in
-the use of his fists had led him into a mad challenge,
-and the truth was shining from Rouse’s steely eyes.
-He read the message as many another bully has read
-it sooner or later in a bragging career. This man had
-him cold. Somebody had touched up the fellow’s
-dogged courage with a little science, and Rouse was
-no longer asking to be knocked out. For Coles it
-was going to be the fight of his life. He began to
-move nimbly about the ring, his feet slipping noiselessly
-over the boards as he tempted Rouse this
-way and that in the hopes of drawing him. But
-Rouse had been coached too well. He understood
-perfectly what this meant. Coles had not fought him
-this way before. His straight left had hurt Coles,
-and he was going to keep away.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse began to move steadily towards him. Coles
-danced eagerly across his front, but footwork availed
-him little. Gradually Rouse’s left foot began to
-work its way in, and at last, when it was against Coles’
-toe and he knew that a step would carry him within
-striking distance, he darted in, and his left went out
-again and smashed against the other’s face. There
-was a moment of grim excitement as Coles answered
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_272'>272</span>him with a rain of violent drives and uppercuts that
-displayed his temper, but at last it could be seen that
-Rouse was safely through the trial none the worse
-for wear, and that Coles was flushed with heat.
-For a while he drew back and waited, then as Rouse
-began to work in again with his guard well up and his
-chin covered by the point of his shoulder, Coles sprang
-up against him and bore him back. There was a
-brief grim tussle for supremacy at close quarters,
-and then out of the fury of the rally there gradually
-emerged the undoubted victor. Rouse had thrust
-his man away by sheer strength and had drawn back
-for a heavy blow. As Coles bored in again he struck
-out. The blow took Coles on the side of the chin as
-he bounded forward, and he just staggered sideways
-and fell in a heap.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a moment he lay there. There was no
-applause. The silence was more telling. He lay
-puzzling out what to do, and then at last he got up
-and looked for Rouse with eyes that were ablaze with
-wrath. Rouse had waited for a sign that he was
-ready, and now, as Coles put up his hands, he walked
-in and began the real work that he had to do. So far
-he had merely steadied his man. The last blow had
-been the signal that this phase was over. The thrashing
-that he deserved was to come. Coles could box
-and it was difficult to work him into a corner, but
-his fiery temper was a decided help to Rouse, and at
-length he had Coles against the ropes, standing with
-legs apart and both gloves held in a threatening
-attitude of readiness. Rouse looked at him grimly
-and came in. For a moment there was a whirl of
-fists. Then just as before the better man emerged.
-A glove flashed up from his hip and almost lifted
-Coles off his feet with the force of its landing. Coles
-tried to answer with his left, but he was off his balance,
-and Rouse merely dodged back, then swung in again
-with the whole weight of his body behind his glove.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_273'>273</span>This time Coles fell slowly, like a man struggling
-against unconsciousness, and at last when he hit the
-boards he lay still.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse drew back, watching him inscrutably.
-Still there was no applause. Coles was not yet
-entirely done for. He had not yet been punished
-to the full. He got up groggily and stood waiting.
-Rouse moved in and struck him again. He rocked
-and tried to collect himself for a final effort.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For the crowd who stood watching it was a glorious
-moment. Once again Rouse had achieved the seemingly
-impossible. Coles stood there swaying in
-defeat and no man could rightly tell his thoughts, but
-at last, when he saw Rouse moving to hit him again,
-he leant forward and struck out with left and right
-as he came. One blow landed, but it failed to stop
-Rouse, and he came on slowly, relentlessly. His
-glove swung from the shoulder and landed against
-the other head with a thud. Coles began to fall.
-He made one effort to hit back. As he righted himself
-he exposed his chin, and Rouse let go a blow that
-carried every atom of his strength. This time Coles
-just threw out his hands, and dropped in a limp
-heap at his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse turned to his comer with a sigh of untold
-satisfaction. He had only one fear, and that was
-that Coles might recover in time to come up for
-another round. He wanted to have turned the tables
-on Coles with real effect. Coles had beaten <em>him</em> in
-one round.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a moment he was in doubt. Then Toby
-finished counting and made a quick sign with his
-hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Coles’ second came into the ring and picked him
-up.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse had won. Still there was no applause.
-He looked once towards Terence, but he gave no sign
-of real gladness. His feelings were part and parcel
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_274'>274</span>of the feelings of the entire school. A traitor had
-met with his deserts. There was nothing to clap
-about.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>And then quite suddenly he realised his mistake.
-They had merely been waiting for Coles to be carried
-away. Now they had turned to him, and thunder
-began to roll from every side towards him. It grew
-and grew until the windows were rattling in their
-frames and the rafters of the gym. were trembling
-with concussion. Louder and louder it swelled.
-Wherever he looked hands were beating the air. He
-tried to make his way to the dressing-room. He was
-seized by strong arms and hoisted up. He tried to
-quell them. It was no good. The pent-up excitement
-of the last term’s end was too much for their
-control. Yesterday’s captain had become to-day’s.
-What could they do but cheer?</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>Across the playing fields there came a little man
-clad in a sombre suit and wearing upon his head a soft
-felt hat of great respectability. As he came he
-looked from side to side as if in doubt as to which road
-he ought to take, and so when he came within sight
-of the school gymnasium he stopped. Next moment
-a noise like the crashing to earth of some gigantic
-edifice shattered his very ear-drums, and he stood
-swaying for a moment, shaken from head to foot.
-At last he turned towards the building from which
-that vast explosion had appeared to come, and as
-his senses gradually reassumed their balance he
-realised that the thunderous echo of it was continuing.
-He began to walk on, his head turned in
-astonishment as he went, and as the noise grew
-and grew he stopped again, his blue eyes wide with
-wonder.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Then from the doorway of the gym. there came a
-stream of running youngsters, who turned in the
-open and waited for those behind to form a vast
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_275'>275</span>half-circle. Next he saw Toby Nicholson thrust
-out into the open by the weight of the mob behind
-him, and at last there came a kaleidoscopic mass of
-humanity tumbling out from the doors in a tidal
-wave, bearing upon its crest the boy that he had
-taught to box.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Then he began to understand, and so he slowly
-smiled.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He was still smiling like this when Toby disengaged
-himself and, seeing him, came across to shake
-his hand with extraordinary vigour.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I have come as I promised,” said the little man,
-“because I have found the very man you want, and
-he is ready to start as your coach to-morrow if your
-Headmaster is agreeable. I thought I would come
-down and see him myself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“The Headmaster wants to meet you,” said Toby.
-“And you couldn’t have come at a better time.
-Your man has won.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He turned to look for a moment quizzically upon
-the seething mob, and suddenly moved forward and
-beckoned to a tall thin boy who had detached himself
-from the crowd and seemed to be looking for his
-cap. This he recovered at last and came towards
-them.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Hope,” said Toby, “I want to introduce you to
-this gentleman. He is Carr’s father and he taught
-Rouse to box.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Henry looked at the little man over the tops of his
-glasses, the excited flush still evident upon his cheek
-and his breath still laboured. Then he solemnly
-raised his cap and held out his hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I am very proud to know you, sir,” said he.
-“Your son has come back to Morley’s now and we
-are firm friends.” He suddenly turned his head.
-The scene was growing into one of indescribable commotion.
-He looked once longingly, then turned to
-Toby as if in pleading. “If you would just excuse
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_276'>276</span>me a minute, sir,” said he, “I really <em>must</em> go and
-cheer a bit.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>He went off with a sudden raking stride, shouting
-wild cat calls through cupped hands, and the little
-man turned to Toby.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It would be better for you to tell them who I
-am, Mr Nicholson, than to let them be deceived,”
-said he. “You see—that boy raised his hat to
-me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby nodded his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Yes,” said he, “of course. Any boy here
-always raises his hat to another boy’s father.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The little man did not entirely understand.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“But,” he began, “a professional boxer——”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby stopped him.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“You taught Rouse to box,” he said, “and he
-knocked Coles out. I can’t explain any more. The
-fellows at this school will always raise their hats to
-you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“It makes me feel almost as if I were a—gentleman,”
-said Johnny simply.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>Toby looked at him with a fond smile.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Come to the Head,” said he, “and be
-introduced. You’ll understand better after you’ve
-seen him.”</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c013'>Rouse sat in his bath.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>The comfort of hot water wrapping him round was
-bringing to him a wonderful sense of restfulness and
-repose. The shouting had died away at last and he
-was alone. Somewhere he understood that the school
-were forming into a queue that stretched twice across
-the playing fields, waiting to give in their names as
-desirous of taking up boxing during the coming term.
-He looked ahead and he could see no single cloud
-upon the far horizon. The year was shaping its
-course for breaking record. He was amazingly content,
-and when at last there came a knock upon the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_277'>277</span>door he turned in surprise and waited a moment
-before he said in guarded tones:</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Who’s that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“I’ve brought you a couple of <em>hot towels</em>,” was the
-answer. “I thought you’d like them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>For a moment Rouse lay still, utterly and finally
-at peace with all the world. At last he replied.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>“Terence, my boy,” said he, “you are not, all
-things considered, at all a bad old stick. One of
-these days I am inclined to think that I shall very
-probably learn to like you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>It was, as we know, only in moments of the deepest
-emotion that Rouse ever called Terence by his proper
-name.</p>
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c004' />
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c006'>
- <div>THE RIVERSIDE PRESS LIMITED, EDINBURGH</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
- <hr class='pb c004' />
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-</div>
-<div class='tnotes'>
-
-<div class='section ph2'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c001'>
- <div>TRANSCRIBER’S NOTE</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
- <ol class='ol_1 c006'>
- <li>Silently corrected typographical errors and variations in spelling.
- </li>
- <li>Anachronistic, non-standard, and uncertain spellings retained as printed.
- </li>
- <li>P. <a href='#t153'>153</a>, changed "short interfere" to "short to interfere".
- </li>
- <li>The cover image was created by the transcriber and is placed in the public domain.
- </li>
- </ol>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<hr class="full" />
-<p>***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CAPTAINS OF HARLEY***</p>
-<p>******* This file should be named 60926-h.htm or 60926-h.zip *******</p>
-<p>This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:<br />
-<a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/6/0/9/2/60926">http://www.gutenberg.org/6/0/9/2/60926</a></p>
-<p>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.</p>
-
-<p>Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</p>
-
-<h2 class="pg">START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<br />
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</h2>
-
-<p>To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.</p>
-
-<h3>Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works</h3>
-
-<p>1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.</p>
-
-<p>1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.</p>
-
-<p>1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.</p>
-
-<p>1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.</p>
-
-<p>1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:</p>
-
-<p>1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:</p>
-
-<blockquote><p>This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United
- States and most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost
- no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
- it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with
- this eBook or online
- at <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you'll have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this
- ebook.</p></blockquote>
-
-<p>1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that</p>
-
-<ul>
-<li>You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."</li>
-
-<li>You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.</li>
-
-<li>You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.</li>
-
-<li>You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p>1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause. </p>
-
-<h3>Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm</h3>
-
-<p>Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.</p>
-
-<p>Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org.</p>
-
-<h3>Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation</h3>
-
-<p>The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.</p>
-
-<p>The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact</p>
-
-<p>For additional contact information:</p>
-
-<p> Dr. Gregory B. Newby<br />
- Chief Executive and Director<br />
- gbnewby@pglaf.org</p>
-
-<h3>Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation</h3>
-
-<p>Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.</p>
-
-<p>The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/donate">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.</p>
-
-<p>While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.</p>
-
-<p>International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.</p>
-
-<p>Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate</p>
-
-<h3>Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.</h3>
-
-<p>Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.</p>
-
-<p>Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.</p>
-
-<p>Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org</p>
-
-<p>This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.</p>
-
-</body>
-</html>
-
diff --git a/old/60926-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/60926-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 353eab0..0000000
--- a/old/60926-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60926-h/images/i_028fp.jpg b/old/60926-h/images/i_028fp.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index f34a20c..0000000
--- a/old/60926-h/images/i_028fp.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60926-h/images/i_098fp.jpg b/old/60926-h/images/i_098fp.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 915c3ef..0000000
--- a/old/60926-h/images/i_098fp.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60926-h/images/i_148fp.jpg b/old/60926-h/images/i_148fp.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5f0ed68..0000000
--- a/old/60926-h/images/i_148fp.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60926-h/images/i_208fp.jpg b/old/60926-h/images/i_208fp.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 1b5e97c..0000000
--- a/old/60926-h/images/i_208fp.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60926-h/images/i_frontispiece.jpg b/old/60926-h/images/i_frontispiece.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ec419df..0000000
--- a/old/60926-h/images/i_frontispiece.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ